archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n so_o after_o he_o be_v king_n the_o ambition_n still_o prevail_v in_o he_o and_o be_v not_o we_o see_v easy_o remove_v 6._o early_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o edw._n vi_o and_o when_o the_o reformation_n be_v go_v on_o prosperous_o cranmer_n and_o the_o protestant_a bishop_n understand_v matter_n better_o and_o have_v freedom_n to_o speak_v their_o mind_n deliver_v themselves_o more_o clear_o in_o the_o point_n as_o may_v be_v infer_v from_o sundry_a observation_n belong_v to_o that_o time_n and_o upon_o record_n as_o 1._o it_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o preface_n before_o the_o form_n of_o ordination_n draw_v up_o and_o agree_v upon_o in_o edw._n vi's_fw-la reign_n that_o it_o be_v ãâã_d unto_o all_o man_n diligent_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o ancient_a author_n that_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n there_o have_v be_v these_o order_n of_o minister_n in_o christ_n church_n bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n by_o public_a prayer_n and_o with_o imposition_n of_o hand_n approve_v and_o admit_v thereunto_o cranmer_z it_o seem_v be_v now_o come_v over_o to_o dr._n leighton_n opinion_n declare_v in_o the_o day_n of_o hen._n viii_o 2._o cranmer_z set_v forth_o a_o catechism_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o edw._n vi_o anno_fw-la 1548._o wherein_o the_o three_o order_n be_v teach_v as_o of_o 58_o divine_a right_n from_o whence_o say_v the_o historian_n it_o appear_v that_o he_o have_v change_v the_o opinion_n he_o former_o hold_v against_o the_o divine_a institution_n of_o those_o ecclesiastical_a order_n 3_o in_o the_o day_n of_o edward_n vi_o cranmer_n suspend_v heath_n bishop_n of_o worcester_n for_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v the_o forementioned_a form_n of_o ordination_n 4._o in_o the_o same_o reign_n john_n alasco_n a_o noble_a polonian_a be_v by_o cranmer_n mean_v make_v a_o superintendant_n over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o 241._o the_o foreigner_n yet_o new_o plant_v in_o and_o about_o london_n the_o german_n italian_n and_o the_o french_a and_o superintendant_n be_v but_o another_o word_n for_o bishop_n whoever_o therefore_o will_v impartial_o weigh_v the_o darkness_n of_o the_o time_n in_o henry_n viii_n reign_n where_o the_o above_o mention_v king_n and_o bishop_n book_n be_v write_v and_o the_o answer_v make_v unto_o the_o king_n question_n by_o cranmer_n and_o some_o other_o the_o stifness_n of_o that_o prince_n his_o fondness_n of_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o awe_n which_o the_o archbishop_n and_o his_o associate_n in_o the_o reformation_n stand_v in_o towards_o he_o the_o earnest_a desire_n they_o have_v at_o any_o rate_n and_o on_o any_o term_n to_o be_v rid_v of_o the_o pope_n tyranny_n the_o falseness_n uncertainty_n and_o absurdity_n of_o many_o opinion_n deliver_v by_o the_o bishop_n and_o their_o repugnancy_n to_o each_o other_o he_o will_v be_v force_v to_o confess_v that_o no_o stress_n can_v be_v lay_v upon_o any_o of_o their_o conclusion_n much_o less_o that_o they_o be_v the_o first_o and_o steady_a sentiment_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n of_o england_n for_o even_o the_o popish_a clergy_n also_o general_o subscribe_v they_o but_o the_o sudden_a alteration_n of_o the_o bishop_n mind_n as_o to_o this_o present_a point_n in_o debate_n in_o edward_n vi's_fw-la day_n put_v it_o out_o of_o all_o question_n that_o the_o ms._n of_o my_o late_a lord_n of_o worcester_n belong_v to_o king_n henry_n viii_n day_n and_o that_o our_o first_o reformer_n their_o mature_a and_o settle_a judgement_n be_v that_o there_o be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n three_o order_n of_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n by_o divine_a right_n bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n let_v we_o hear_v the_o reflection_n 289._o of_o the_o learned_a prelate_n the_o now_o lord_n bishop_n of_o salisbury_n 250._o in_o cranmer_n paper_n some_o singular_a opinion_n of_o his_o about_o the_o nature_n of_o ãâã_d office_n will_v be_v find_v but_o as_o they_o be_v deliver_v by_o he_o with_o all_o possible_a modesty_n so_o they_o be_v not_o establish_v as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n but_o lay_v aside_o as_o particular_a conceit_n of_o his_o own_o and_o it_o seem_v that_o afterward_o he_o change_v his_o opinion_n for_o he_o subscribe_v the_o book_n that_o be_v soon_o after_o set_v forth_o which_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o those_o opinion_n set_v down_o in_o this_o paper_n viz._n mr._n stillingfleet_n ms._n in_o the_o next_o reign_v it_o be_v no_o matter_n to_o we_o what_o become_v of_o the_o divine_a right_n of_o episcopacy_n the_o protestant_a church_n of_o england_n suffer_v a_o eclipse_n in_o queen_n mary_n day_n but_o soon_o recover_v itself_o under_o the_o auspicious_a government_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n shine_v so_o much_o the_o bright_a and_o in_o a_o short_a time_n come_v to_o that_o settlement_n which_o it_o enjoy_v to_o this_o day_n without_o any_o considerable_a alteration_n and_o to_o our_o present_a point_n ãâã_d 1._o that_o the_o form_n of_o ordination_n of_o deacon_n priest_n and_o bishop_n with_o the_o preface_n before_o speak_v of_o be_v confirm_v in_o the_o four_o of_o eliz._n 1562._o and_o again_o in_o her_o 13_o year_n anno_fw-la 1571._o and_o which_o to_o make_v short_a work_n of_o it_o continues_z in_o force_n unto_o this_o day_n 2._o in_o the_o general_a apology_n of_o the_o protestant_n the_o 5_o article_n of_o the_o english_a confession_n be_v insert_v and_o be_v draw_v up_o in_o that_o queen_n time_n anno_fw-la 1562._o and_o run_v in_o the_o word_n follow_v farthermore_o we_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v divers_a degree_n of_o minister_n in_o the_o church_n deacon_n priest_n and_o bishop_n to_o who_o be_v commit_v the_o office_n to_o instruct_v the_o people_n and_o set_v forth_o of_o religion_n but_o mr._n o._n object_n unto_o we_o the_o 13_o of_o eliz._n c._n 12._o pretend_v to_o prove_v thereby_o that_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n be_v then_o allow_v 118._o here_o in_o england_n the_o clause_n he_o refer_v to_o be_v more_o at_o length_n thus_o all_o person_n under_o bishop_n who_o pretend_v to_o be_v priest_n or_o minister_n of_o god_n holy_a word_n and_o sacrament_n by_o reason_n of_o any_o other_o form_n of_o institution_n or_o consecration_n or_o order_v than_o the_o form_n set_v forth_o by_o parliament_n in_o edw._n vi_o or_o now_o use_v shall_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o bishop_n declare_v their_o assent_n and_o subscribe_v to_o all_o the_o ãâã_d of_o religion_n which_o only_o concern_v the_o confession_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n comprise_v in_o a_o book_n entitle_v article_n agree_v to_o by_o the_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n of_o both_o province_n and_o the_o whole_a clergy_n in_o convocation_n anno_fw-la 1562._o for_o avoid_v diversity_n of_o opinion_n &c_n &c_n and_o ãâã_d etc._n etc._n from_o hence_o mr._n o._n infer_v that_o the_o statute_n respect_v not_o popish_a ordination_n only_o if_o at_o all_o but_o give_v indulgence_n to_o those_o that_o be_v not_o satisfy_v to_o subscribe_v all_o the_o article_n absolute_o among_o which_o be_v the_o book_n of_o consecration_n and_o that_o the_o statute_n require_v subscription_n only_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o true_a christian_a faith_n and_o of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o he_o will_v prove_v in_o that_o the_o statute_n speak_v of_o minister_n of_o god_n holy_a word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o the_o title_n of_o minister_n be_v rare_o use_v among_o the_o papist_n and_o be_v common_a among_o the_o reform_a church_n the_o ministry_n among_o the_o papist_n be_v a_o real_a priesthood_n and_o therefore_o they_o call_v their_o presbyter_n priest_n ans._n the_o statute_n doubtless_o speak_v of_o all_o priest_n and_o minister_n whether_o papist_n or_o dissenter_n all_o be_v to_o assent_v and_o subscribe_v in_o case_n they_o will_v continue_v in_o or_o be_v let_v into_o any_o ecclesiastical_a promotion_n but_o chief_o the_o papist_n ãâã_d first_o i_o assert_v this_o upon_o mr._n oh_o own_o word_n the_o ministry_n of_o the_o papist_n say_v he_o be_v a_o real_a priest_n hood_n and_o therefore_o they_o call_v their_o presbyter_n priest_n on_o the_o contrary_a i_o do_v not_o remember_v that_o dissent_v minister_n have_v ever_o be_v style_v priest_n in_o any_o public_a instrument_n of_o church_n or_o state_n now_o as_o for_o the_o word_n minister_n even_o that_o also_o it_o may_v be_v point_v at_o the_o popish_a priest_n for_o it_o have_v late_o be_v use_v among_o the_o papist_n i_o meet_v with_o it_o in_o smith_n recantation_n 171._o in_o the_o necessary_a doctrine_n and_o other_o public_a record_n but_o chief_o i_o consider_v that_o at_o the_o time_n of_o this_o act_n of_o parliament_n the_o popish_a priest_n herd_v themselves_o among_o the_o ãâã_d and_o go_v by_o the_o name_n and_o under_o the_o disguise_n of_o dissent_v minister_n for_o the_o more_o effectual_a discovery_n
order_n or_o call_v it_o what_o you_o please_v for_o the_o presbyter_n minister_v unto_o the_o people_n as_o effectual_o as_o the_o bishop_n in_o all_o the_o office_n and_o conveyance_n of_o divine_a grace_n and_o on_o this_o account_n be_v the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o much_o as_o the_o bishop_n be_v the_o presbyter_n administer_v the_o sacrament_n preach_v the_o word_n interpret_v scripture_n reprove_v exhort_v encourage_v and_o comfort_n publish_v and_o declare_v authoritative_o and_o ministerial_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n by_o jesus_n christ_n not_o only_o in_o the_o sermon_n but_o after_o solemn_a confession_n of_o sin_n and_o in_o the_o visitation_n of_o the_o sick_a and_o of_o such_o as_o have_v be_v trouble_v in_o mind_n and_o conscience_n in_o short_a to_o they_o in_o the_o ãâã_d administration_n appertain_v that_o principal_a gift_n and_o commission_n receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o sin_n you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v etc._n etc._n thus_o far_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v the_o same_o or_o as_o st._n jerom_n have_v it_o pene_fw-la idem_fw-la gradus_fw-la this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v of_o for_o so_o they_o the_o presbyter_n be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o peculiar_a and_o distinguish_a character_n and_o office_n of_o the_o bishop_n be_v to_o inspect_v govern_v and_o ordain_v presbyter_n and_o succeed_a bishop_n on_o this_o account_n the_o presbyter_n as_o jerom_n also_o speak_v be_v secundus_fw-la gradus_fw-la thus_o much_o we_o own_o and_o free_o confess_v let_v our_o adversary_n make_v the_o best_a of_o it_o they_o can_v i_o do_v suppose_v the_o difference_n and_o preeminence_n and_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n from_o and_o over_o prebyter_n and_o their_o ordain_v power_n be_v sufficient_o clear_v to_o have_v be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o england_n from_o the_o beginning_n though_o blondel_n will_v pick_v out_o of_o this_o treatise_n something_o to_o the_o contrary_a which_o be_v not_o my_o business_n here_o to_o take_v to_o task_n last_o i_o shall_v only_o produce_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o english_a eton_n divine_n in_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n hold_v 1618._o 1619._o the_o bishop_n of_o landaff_n joseph_n hall_n afterward_o bishop_n of_o norwich_n john_n davenant_n and_o samuel_n ward_n have_v approve_v all_o the_o doctrine_n in_o the_o belgic_a confession_n except_o three_o head_n concern_v ecclesiastical_a order_n protest_v that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o english_a church_n by_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n be_v of_o apostolical_a institution_n particular_o landaff_n in_o a_o speech_n run_v through_o the_o three_o head_n or_o chapter_n and_o then_o enter_v this_o protestation_n that_o there_o be_v not_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n nor_o ever_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n a_o equality_n of_o minister_n from_o the_o whole_a i_o gather_v 1._o that_o it_o have_v ever_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n of_o england_n from_o the_o reformation_n that_o there_o be_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o aught_o to_o be_v a_o inequality_n of_o minister_n and_o that_o bishop_n be_v distinct_a from_o and_o superior_a to_o presbyter_n 2._o that_o the_o presbyterian_o and_o particular_o mr._n o._n do_v a_o great_a injury_n unto_o the_o memory_n of_o that_o great_a man_n archbishop_n laud_n and_o through_o his_o side_n unjust_o wound_v all_o that_o defend_v and_o assert_v divine_a right_n of_o episcopacy_n impeach_v they_o of_o novelty_n and_o alter_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n that_o renown_a prelate_n come_v into_o play_n and_o become_v a_o leader_n in_o this_o church_n not_o till_o after_o all_o the_o instance_n which_o i_o have_v allege_v in_o proof_n of_o the_o divine_a right_n of_o bishop_n even_o the_o bishop_n of_o landaff_n and_o his_o english_a colleague_n at_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n be_v not_o inferior_a to_o he_o nor_o be_v it_o in_o laud'_v power_n to_o influence_n their_o opinion_n he_o be_v not_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n till_o the_o year_n 1633._o not_o of_o st._n david_n till_o 1621._o two_o year_n after_o the_o synod_n be_v break_v up_o it_o can_v therefore_o with_o reason_n ãâã_d thought_n that_o these_o excellent_a person_n who_o assist_v at_o that_o assembly_n be_v lead_v by_o the_o nose_n or_o awe_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o dr._n laud._n nor_o do_v i_o find_v that_o he_o be_v any_o way_n interest_v in_o their_o deliberation_n or_o that_o he_o send_v to_o they_o any_o letter_n or_o dispatch_n upon_o that_o or_o indeed_o any_o other_o subject_n it_o can_v hardly_o be_v believe_v since_o so_o many_o of_o the_o calvinistical_a point_n be_v then_o establish_v doubtless_o to_o the_o regret_n of_o this_o prelate_n beside_o dr._n andrews_n have_v before_o laud_n write_v a_o book_n to_o prove_v the_o divine_a right_n of_o bishop_n sure_o not_o sway_v thereto_o by_o laud_n who_o be_v or_o have_v be_v his_o chaplain_n but_o to_o remove_v all_o the_o invidious_a calumny_n and_o reproach_n that_o have_v be_v false_o lay_v upon_o that_o unfortunate_a prelate_n and_o the_o rest_n who_o before_o and_o after_o he_o have_v maintain_v the_o divine_a right_n of_o bishop_n it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o call_v to_o remembrance_n that_o it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o ignatius_n who_o testimony_n it_o be_v needless_a to_o repeat_v any_o more_o also_o of_o st._n cyprian_n jâm_fw-la pridem_fw-la per_fw-la omnes_fw-la provincias_fw-la &_o urbes_fw-la ordinati_fw-la sunt_fw-la episcopi_fw-la and_o what_o he_o 55._o mean_v by_o his_o jam_fw-la pridem_fw-la he_o explain_v elsewhere_o sciam_fw-la episcopos_fw-la plurimos_fw-la ecclesiis_fw-la dominicis_fw-la in_o toto_fw-la mundo_fw-la divina_fw-la dignatione_fw-la praepositos_fw-la 63._o once_o more_o i_o read_v cum_fw-la hoc_fw-la igitur_fw-la omnis_fw-la actus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la 33._o per_fw-la eosdem_fw-la praepositos_fw-la gubernetur_fw-la divina_fw-la ãâã_d fundamentum_fw-la sit_fw-la last_o of_o jerom_n himself_o constituit_fw-la christus_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la finibus_fw-la mundi_fw-la 45._o principes_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la which_o also_o he_o call_v traditionem_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la write_v to_o evagrius_n which_o have_v be_v remember_v before_o now_o if_o some_o of_o laud'_v immediate_a predecessor_n or_o contemporary_n can_v be_v produce_v grant_v this_o as_o be_v of_o another_o mind_n not_o see_v or_o not_o open_o confess_v and_o contest_v the_o truth_n it_o be_v sure_o for_o want_n of_o understanding_n courage_n or_o integrity_n but_o why_o these_o fail_n and_o defect_n shall_v be_v lay_v in_o the_o balance_n with_o the_o undoubted_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n or_o prejudice_v the_o wisdom_n and_o faithfulness_n of_o other_o yea_o the_o public_a and_o authoritative_a declaration_n of_o our_o church_n too_o be_v beyond_o my_o capacity_n to_o comprehend_v this_o be_v out_o of_o question_n i_o judge_v that_o presbyterian_a ordination_n the_o identity_n and_o parity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n have_v never_o yet_o be_v pronounce_v lawful_a much_o less_o of_o divine_a right_n by_o any_o public_a and_o authenticksentence_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n since_o the_o reformation_n except_o haply_o by_o that_o pack_v assembly_n of_o divine_n not_o one_o of_o who_o be_v legal_o choose_v to_o sit_v at_o westminster_n some_o private_a writer_n may_v haply_o be_v find_v incline_v to_o the_o opinion_n whereby_o presbyter_n be_v equal_v unto_o bishop_n and_o think_v to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o degree_n but_o i_o make_v no_o reckon_n of_o such_o private_a authority_n though_o they_o be_v otherwise_o person_n of_o singular_a learning_n wisdom_n and_o piety_n and_o some_o passage_n favour_v the_o presbyterian_a pretence_n may_v possible_o be_v find_v in_o the_o public_a deliberation_n and_o conclusion_n whilst_o hen._n viii_o be_v vindicate_v this_o church_n from_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o his_o stead_n assume_v it_o to_o himself_o thus_o far_o we_o change_v our_o rider_n not_o our_o burden_n but_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o as_o in_o those_o difficult_a time_n the_o episcopal_a power_n be_v subject_v to_o the_o will_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n and_o so_o may_v be_v think_v not_o by_o divine_a right_n but_o humane_a constitution_n even_o so_o be_v the_o power_n and_o office_n of_o parson_n vicar_n and_o priest_n or_o presbyter_n and_o from_o thence_o also_o it_o ãâã_d with_o equal_a force_n that_o these_o also_o be_v but_o by_o humane_a law_n and_o thence_o derive_v their_o authority_n let_v we_o for_o example_n but_o look_v back_o unto_o cranmer_n answer_v to_o the_o king_n be_v 9th_o query_n and_o we_o may_v be_v convince_v hereof_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o be_v that_o the_o whole_a care_n of_o the_o church_n be_v immediate_o commit_v to_o the_o prince_n that_o parson_n vicar_n and_o other_o priest_n be_v to_o be_v appoint_v by_o his_o highness_n to_o their_o ministration_n to_o the_o 10_o the_o query_n
the_o controvery_n for_o though_o he_o have_v so_o frequent_o and_o unreasonable_o at_o every_o turn_n declare_v against_o ecclesiastical_a restraint_n yet_o here_o he_o allow_v they_o and_o suppose_v it_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n to_o restrain_v some_o from_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o power_n and_o to_o reserve_v the_o chief_a care_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n to_o a_o few_o of_o the_o most_o eminent_a here_o i_o say_v than_o the_o cudgel_n be_v in_o effect_n lay_v down_o and_o episcopacy_n be_v sufficient_o vindicate_v and_o approve_v of_o by_o the_o adversary_n himself_o though_o before_o he_o be_v aware_a no_o it_o will_v be_v reply_v for_o still_o care_n must_v be_v take_v that_o it_o be_v not_o however_o admit_v as_o of_o divine_a right_n well!_o but_o if_o a_o ecclesiastical_a right_n be_v sufficient_a to_o oblige_v we_o unto_o obedience_n to_o our_o superior_n as_o in_o the_o concession_n its_o self_n he_o must_v suppose_v then_o have_v our_o reverend_a bishop_n a_o good_a title_n to_o their_o own_o power_n and_o to_o our_o subjection_n to_o '_o they_o beside_o how_o easy_a be_v it_o to_o improve_v this_o concession_n even_o to_o the_o vindication_n of_o the_o divine_a right_n of_o bishop_n for_o if_o mr._n o._n who_o when_o he_o suffer_v himself_o to_o think_v be_v i_o be_o hereby_o convince_v a_o wise_a man_n and_o see_v far_o before_o he_o will_v but_o turn_v himself_o about_o and_o look_v the_o other_o way_n that_o be_v behind_o he_o i_o mean_v will_v but_o admit_v st._n paul_n and_o the_o apostle_n heretofore_o to_o have_v be_v as_o wise_a as_o himself_o be_v now_o it_o will_v be_v no_o hard_a matter_n one_o will_v imagine_v to_o convince_v he_o present_o of_o the_o divine_a that_o be_v apostolical_a constitution_n of_o bishop_n if_o it_o be_v now_o it_o be_v also_o in_o the_o apostle_n day_n fit_a and_o reasonable_a to_o commit_v the_o care_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o some_o grave_a and_o worthy_a presbyter_n and_o if_o so_o can_v we_o possible_o believe_v the_o apostle_n do_v not_o appoint_v what_o their_o own_o reason_n and_o prudence_n suggest_v to_o they_o but_o let_v we_o pass_v to_o another_o instance_n mr._n stoddon_n in_o his_o pastoral_a charge_n have_v confess_v 108._o that_o there_o be_v ruler_n in_o the_o church_n who_o be_v not_o teacher_n as_o appear_v plain_o to_o i_o say_v he_o from_o 1_o tim._n 5._o 17._o although_o i_o suppose_v the_o power_n of_o preach_v be_v commit_v to_o they_o something_o of_o this_o kind_n i_o have_v in_o the_o precedent_a paper_n offer_v myself_o and_o can_v far_o confirm_v it_o out_o of_o mr._n mede_n if_o it_o be_v worth_a the_o while_n and_o suit_v my_o design_n but_o mr._n stoddon_n again_o distinguish_v between_o what_o be_v primary_o and_o what_o be_v secondary_o 106._o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la as_o bishop_n sanderson_n long_o before_o he_o have_v do_v and_o to_o be_v short_a be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o clergy_n have_v as_o much_o need_n to_o have_v a_o governor_n set_v over_o they_o as_o the_o common_a people_n themselves_o and_o that_o if_o the_o scripture_n have_v not_o express_o appoint_v it_o yet_o the_o reason_n and_o necessity_n of_o the_o thing_n do_v absolute_o require_v it_o or_o to_o this_o effect_n for_o at_o present_a i_o have_v not_o the_o book_n by_o i_o and_o sure_o the_o apostle_n know_v this_o and_o by_o experience_n too_o as_o well_o as_o mr._n stoddon_n now_o i_o can_v comprehend_v what_o shall_v hinder_v this_o gentleman_n come_v over_o to_o we_o but_o the_o inveterate_a prejudices_fw-la which_o he_o can_v part_v with_o or_o a_o stiffness_n and_o aversion_n to_o change_v his_o opinion_n for_o which_o his_o old_a friend_n will_v be_v sure_a to_o reproach_v he_o without_o ãâã_d in_o a_o word_n then_o it_o be_v to_o very_o little_a purpose_n to_o pretend_v by_o the_o dint_n of_o argument_n to_o make_v proselyte_n one_o may_v happy_o comfort_v encourage_v and_o confirm_v some_o in_o the_o truth_n which_o they_o already_o know_v and_o profess_v but_o to_o convert_v any_o there_o be_v very_o little_a hope_n see_v most_o man_n have_v a_o overween_a opinion_n of_o themselves_o and_o the_o party_n which_o they_o have_v espouse_v there_o i_o leave_v they_o not_o expect_v they_o will_v be_v reclaim_v from_o the_o evil_n of_o their_o way_n till_o god_n shall_v open_v their_o eye_n and_o by_o some_o secret_a and_o powerful_a influence_n dispose_v their_o heart_n unto_o the_o knowledge_n and_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o truth_n or_o else_o by_o some_o visible_a judgement_n and_o affliction_n constrain_v we_o unto_o unity_n which_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n some_o man_n be_v afraid_a of_o they_o have_v not_o stick_v to_o declare_v that_o a_o agreement_n will_v certain_o destroy_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o people_n and_o introduce_v tyranny_n among_o we_o a_o paradox_n which_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v ãâã_d stranger_n to_o and_o which_o all_o good_a man_n i_o hope_v do_v utter_o abhor_v but_o pray_v we_o for_o the_o peace_n of_o jerusalem_n they_o shall_v prosper_v that_o love_n it_o peace_n be_v between_o its_o wall_n and_o plenteousness_n within_o its_o palace_n and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o man_n that_o be_v not_o a_o son_n of_o peace_n let_v he_o be_v anatkema_n ãâã_d addenda_fw-la to_o the_o 19_o the_o chapter_n there_o be_v a_o objection_n which_o escape_v i_o in_o its_o proper_a place_n and_o therefore_o must_v here_o be_v consider_v it_o be_v that_o presbyterian_a order_n have_v be_v allow_v here_o in_o england_n that_o peter_n martyr_n bucer_n p._n fagius_n etc._n etc._n be_v suffer_v to_o exercise_v their_o ministry_n among_o we_o ans._n 1._o allowance_n against_o a_o establish_v law_n be_v not_o very_o defensible_a especial_o when_o that_o law_n be_v believe_v to_o be_v of_o divine_a right_n which_o be_v the_o case_n here_o before_o we_o of_o ordination_n by_o bishop_n let_v this_o then_o be_v put_v among_o the_o infirmity_n and_o mistake_n of_o our_o first_o reformer_n 2._o our_o first_o reformer_n may_v think_v it_o justifiable_a in_o charity_n to_o foreign_a protestant_a church_n which_o have_v not_o the_o opportunity_n of_o episcopal_a ordination_n the_o present_a necessity_n and_o service_n of_o the_o church_n require_v it_o the_o reformation_n otherwise_o will_v have_v receive_v some_o stop_n or_o prejudice_n by_o bring_v this_o point_n into_o controversy_n for_o some_o such_o like_a reason_n as_o this_o it_o be_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o k._n james_n i._o send_v delegate_n unto_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n and_o content_v herself_o after_o the_o conclusion_n there_o make_v only_o to_o enter_v her_o protestation_n against_o the_o parity_n of_o minister_n 3._o our_o first_o reformer_n haply_o go_v upon_o this_o principle_n he_o that_o be_v not_o against_o we_o be_v for_o we_o and_o such_o be_v peter_n martyr_n bucer_n fagius_n etc._n etc._n but_o our_o dissenter_n be_v always_o against_o we_o make_v it_o their_o whole_a business_n to_o overturn_v the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n of_o this_o nation_n by_o rail_v and_o revile_v and_o represent_v it_o as_o popish_a and_o antichristian_a 4._o the_o indulgence_n speak_v of_o have_v in_o it_o perhaps_o more_o of_o state_n policy_n than_o true_a divinity_n and_o be_v to_o be_v reckon_v as_o the_o act_n of_o the_o civil_a government_n rather_o than_o of_o the_o church_n thus_o the_o ãâã_d and_o huguenot_n minister_n have_v ever_o even_o to_o this_o day_n be_v permit_v to_o officiate_v in_o divine_a thing_n without_o episcopal_a order_n 5._o all_o these_o indulgence_n ãâã_d not_o amount_v to_o the_o destroy_v the_o truth_n of_o that_o principle_n concern_v the_o divine_a right_n of_o episcopacy_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o relaxation_n of_o the_o execution_n of_o a_o positive_a law_n can_v in_o reason_n be_v account_v the_o annul_n or_o abolition_n of_o that_o law_n as_o we_o see_v at_o this_o day_n when_o liberty_n be_v give_v to_o the_o very_a dregs_o of_o enthusiastical_a and_o fanatical_a sectary_n which_o be_v no_o more_o prejudice_n unto_o episcopacy_n than_o it_o be_v to_o other_o acknowledge_a truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n 6._o as_o for_o those_o particular_a person_n allow_v to_o exercise_v their_o minstry_n here_o in_o england_n we_o may_v note_v that_o peter_n martyr_n be_v in_o episcopal_a order_n and_o it_o may_v be_v other_o of_o they_o be_v also_o but_o there_o be_v a_o story_n which_o i_o be_o oblige_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o because_o mr._n b._n my_o first_o adversary_n object_v it_o to_o we_o he_o affirm_v the_o protestant_a bishop_n of_o england_n former_o approve_v of_o presbyterian_a ordination_n as_o he_o infer_v from_o a_o passage_n about_o the_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n spotswood_n and_o other_o the_o case_n be_v this_o in_o the_o year_n 1609_o some_o scotchman_n be_v
to_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n edit_n and_o a_o synod_n be_v hold_v by_o our_o english_a bishop_n for_o that_o purpose_n dr._n andrews_n bishop_n of_o ely_n say_v that_o they_o ought_v first_o to_o be_v ordain_v presbyter_n as_o have_v not_o be_v ordain_v by_o bishop_n but_o by_o presbyter_n only_o bancroft_n archbishop_n of_o c._n maintain_v that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o that_o because_o where_o bishop_n can_v not_o be_v have_v ordination_n though_o by_o presbyter_n only_o must_v be_v esteem_v lawful_a else_o it_o may_v be_v doubt_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o lawful_a vocation_n in_o most_o of_o the_o reform_a church_n this_o applaud_v to_o by_o the_o other_o bishop_n ely_z acquiesce_v from_o hence_o i_o infer_v not_o that_o the_o protestant_a bishop_n of_o england_n approve_v of_o presbyterian_a ordination_n but_o that_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o this_o english_a synod_n nothing_o but_o necessity_n can_v justify_v it_o now_o what_o degree_n of_o necessity_n be_v requisite_a i_o will_v not_o here_o dispute_v 2._o that_o where_o episcopal_a ordination_n may_v be_v have_v there_o presbyterian_a ordination_n be_v unlawful_a 3._o that_o the_o necessity_n here_o plead_v in_o defence_n of_o presbyterian_a order_n imply_v that_o episcopal_a ordination_n be_v of_o divine_a right_n otherwise_o it_o have_v be_v impertinent_a to_o excuse_v presbyterian_a ordination_n only_o from_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o but_o i_o crave_v leave_n to_o interpose_v my_o own_o judgement_n and_o i_o humble_o conceive_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o fly_v unto_o this_o refuge_n of_o necessity_n for_o still_o the_o ordination_n of_o these_o scotch_a gentleman_n may_v have_v proceed_v salvo_n etiam_fw-la episcopalis_fw-la ordinationis_fw-la jure_fw-la divino_fw-la for_o i_o do_v affirm_v that_o by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n a_o layman_n may_v be_v immediate_o elevate_v into_o the_o throne_n and_o effectual_o receive_v the_o episcopal_a character_n without_o be_v first_o ordain_v deacon_n and_o priest_n this_o latter_a be_v indeed_o more_o safe_a and_o regular_a in_o ordinary_a nevertheless_o in_o extraordinary_a case_n the_o former_a have_v be_v practise_v thus_o the_o learned_a dr._n cave_n have_v observe_v that_o monk_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v make_v bishop_n christianity_n without_o go_v through_o the_o usual_a intermediate_v order_n of_o the_o church_n he_o instance_n in_o serapion_n apollo_n agathus_n ariston_n etc._n etc._n mention_v by_o st._n athan._n tom._n 1._o p._n 957._o however_o this_o be_v i_o shall_v produce_v two_o notable_a and_o unquestionable_a instance_n of_o it_o the_o first_o be_v of_o nectarius_n p._n c._n he_o be_v but_o a_o catechumen_n 265._o i._n e._n a_o unbaptised_a christian_n if_o i_o may_v so_o say_v one_o of_o the_o senatorian_a order_n and_o a_o praetor_n be_v nominate_v and_o choose_a bishop_n of_o constantinople_n when_o greg._n nazianzen_n have_v abdicate_v it_o and_o immediate_o 714._o after_o ãâã_d be_v ordain_v bishop_n without_o the_o intermediate_v order_n of_o deacon_n or_o presbyter_n the_o other_o be_v of_o st._n ambrose_n bishop_n of_o milan_n he_o also_o a_o catechumen_n 30._o only_o and_o at_o that_o time_n the_o consular_a governor_n of_o the_o province_n be_v choose_v and_o after_o baptism_n ordain_v bishop_n thereof_o 19_o without_o the_o intermediate_v order_n of_o deacon_n or_o presbyter_n for_o a_o bishop_n according_a to_o st._n chrysostom_n maxim_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d have_v in_o he_o the_o whole_a ministerial_a power_n i_o allege_v this_o principal_o with_o this_o design_n to_o vindicate_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o scotch_a episcopal_a ordination_n the_o end_n errata_fw-la part_n i._o page_n 1._o line_n 17._o read_v manage_n l._n 18._o r._n endeavour_v p._n 5._o l._n 9_o r._n diocesan_n p._n 6._o l._n 33._o r._n epist._n 2._o 1._o 6._o p._n 12._o l._n 40._o r._n denote_v p._n 13._o l._n ult_n r._n designat_fw-la p._n 15._o l._n 34._o r._n the_o for_o that_o p._n 23._o l._n 3._o r._n angel_n ibid._n l._n 37._o after_o they_o add_v be_v p._n 24._o l._n 5._o r._n haggai_n ibid._n l._n 20._o r._n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ibid._n l._n 33._o after_o manner_n add_v to_o be_v p._n 28._o l._n 28._o after_o that_o add_v they_o p._n 32._o l._n 25._o r._n month_n p._n 46._o l._n 2._o r._n argument_n p._n 52._o l._n 3._o r._n conclude_v p._n 65._o l._n 25._o r._n successor_n p._n 67._o l._n 35._o r._n pretend_v p._n 73._o l._n 17._o after_o of_o add_v the_o people_n p._n 76._o l._n 15._o 1._o gal._n 2._o 9_o p._n 80._o l._n 5._o r._n penance_n part_n ii_o page_n 21._o line_n 7._o read_v bold_a p._n 22._o l._n 38._o r._n christian_n ibid._n l._n 45._o for_o no_o r._n do_v p._n 42._o l._n 24._o r._n maximinus_n p._n 45._o l._n 11._o r._n asturica_n p._n 51._o l._n 33._o r._n council_n p._n 55._o l._n 26._o r._n counterfeit_v p._n 59_o l._n 4._o r._n valid_a ibid._n l._n 8._o r._n intrinsic_a p._n 62._o l._n 3._o r._n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ibid._n l._n 9_o r._n receive_v ibid._n l._n 11._o deal_n be_v ibid._n l._n 43._o r._n ordain_v p._n 63._o l._n 15._o r._n ischyras_n p._n 74._o l._n 16._o r._n adversary_n p._n 76._o l._n 26._o for_o this_o r._n the_o p._n 82._o l._n 35._o deal_n be_v p._n 92._o l._n 23._o r._n liberty_n p._n 102._o l._n 18._o r._n joannes_n ibid._n l._n 37._o r._n because_o p._n 106._o l._n 37._o r._n dislike_n ibid._n l._n 43._o r._n out_o p._n 108._o l._n 3._o r._n sufficient_a p._n 109._o l._n 2._o r._n divers_a p._n 110._o l._n 10._o r._n voluntary_a p._n 112._o l._n 35._o deal_n that_o l._n 37._o r._n ceterosque_fw-la p._n 114._o l._n 28._o r._n counsellor_n p._n 117._o l._n 32._o after_o day_n deal_n p._n 119_o l._n 37._o r._n bishop_n p._n 123._o l._n 37._o r._n intrigue_n ibid._n l._n seq_n r._n opportunity_n ibid._n r._n monsieur_n gal._n 5._o v._n 3._o def._n p._n 25._o see_v justellus_n def._n p._n 26._o calv._n ep._n 136._o baz_n ep._n 29._o def._n p._n 27._o vide_fw-la office_n of_o visitation_n of_o the_o sick_n def._n p._n 68_o def._n p._n 74._o def._n p._n 79._o def._n p._n 82._o and_o so_o be_v barnabas_n also_o def._n p._n 84._o def._n p._n 85._o jo._n ep._n 1._o 2._o 1_o pet._n 5._o 1._o deut._n 18._o 15._o 1_o cor._n 7._o 6._o 12._o 25._o def._n 88_o 89._o def._n ibid._n def._n p._n 90._o synop._n crit._n ãâã_d p._n 91._o def._n p._n 95._o def._n p._n 97._o see_v office_n of_o consecrate_v presbyter_n in_o the_o ãâã_d def._n p._n 48._o def._n p._n 77._o euseb._n hist._n l._n 2._o c._n 1._o theodoret._n hist._n l._n 5._o c._n 9_o e._n hist._n l._n 2._o c._n 23._o l._n 4._o c._n 22._o jer._n cat._n ser._n def._n p._n 54._o 54._o de_fw-fr repub._n dial._n 8._o 8._o polit._n l._n 3._o c._n 7_o 8._o 8._o thalia_n or_o l._n 3._o c._n 80._o 80._o in_o libel_n de_fw-fr mon._n olig_n &_o dem._n dem._n lexic_fw-la voce_fw-mi ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d arist._n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la def._n p._n 99_o 100_o 101_o 102_o 103._o p._n 99_o 100_o def._n p._n 102._o def._n p._n 103._o def._n p._n 103._o 103._o de_fw-fr serie_fw-la &_o success_n p._n 73._o def._n p._n 104._o def._n p._n 106._o sc._n edit_n par._n eus._n h._n e._n l._n 3._o c._n l._n 23._o l._n 5._o c._n 24._o 24._o de_fw-fr praescrip_n adv_fw-la haer._n c._n 32._o def._n p._n 108._o 108._o dan._n 10._o 13._o ch_n 12_o 1._o 1_o thes._n 4._o 16._o judge_n 9_o col._n 1._o 16._o ***_o ep._n ad_fw-la corinth_n cont_n celsum_fw-la l._n 5._o p._n 250._o edit_fw-la cant._n comment_n in_o dan._n c._n 7._o 2._o 2._o comment_fw-fr in_o zach._n 1._o 8._o dan._n 7._o 2._o 2._o strom._n l._n 6._o 6._o homil._n in_o cap._n 3._o s._n lucae_n lucae_n cont._n parmen_fw-la l._n 2._o p._n 44_o 45._o ed._n mer._n casaub._n tit._n 1._o 5._o 11._o 13._o 2._o 15._o 3._o 10._o 2_o tim._n 4._o 10._o ãâã_d poem_n 27._o p._n 169._o sopbron_n &_o hierom._n in_o cat._n scrip._n eccles._n def._n p._n 121._o tit._n 1._o 5._o t._n n._n p._n 64._o def._n p._n 122._o 122._o catal._n scr_n scr_n cod._n 254._o col._n 1041._o mr._n bur._n def._n p._n 124._o in_o dissertat_fw-la de_fw-fr serie_fw-la &_o success_n p._n 75._o def._n p._n 124._o 124._o near_o 700._o 700._o or_o 38._o 1_o tim._n 3._o 14_o 15._o def._n p_o 126._o def._n p._n 126._o def._n p_o 129._o def._n p._n 130._o def._n p._n 131._o def._n p._n 131._o def._n p._n 132._o def._n p._n 133._o def._n p._n 134._o def._n p._n 134._o 134._o as_o mr._n o._n have_v elsewhere_o suppose_v hesych_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d cortex_fw-la arboris_fw-la arboris_fw-la as_o also_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d a_o smooth_a piece_n of_o wood_n to_o write_v on_o tabula_fw-la def._n p._n 135._o def._n p._n 138._o 2_o tim._n 4._o 21._o
one_o the_o father_n and_o other_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a writer_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o most_o flourish_a catholic_n church_n of_o old_a unto_o the_o 5_o century_n or_o thereabouts_o and_o to_o examine_v whether_o my_o adversary_n have_v ãâã_d any_o one_o good_a testimony_n for_o himself_o and_o brethren_n out_o of_o these_o monument_n of_o antiquity_n if_o he_o have_v not_o as_o i_o hope_v will_v be_v make_v appear_v there_o be_v a_o end_n of_o his_o plea_n i_o suppose_v especial_o when_o such_o a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n which_o of_o necessity_n fall_v in_o our_o way_n as_o we_o travel_v through_o the_o history_n of_o those_o time_n will_v rise_v up_o against_o he_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o 4_o or_o 5_o first_o age_n aforesaid_a before_o i_o make_v a_o end_n of_o this_o preface_n i_o think_v it_o needful_a to_o prepare_v the_o reader_n with_o a_o short_a account_n of_o my_o whole_a hypothesis_n which_o if_o keep_v in_o memory_n as_o he_o go_v will_v be_v some_o ease_n and_o advantage_n to_o he_o he_o must_v remember_v then_o that_o all_o author_n i_o know_v of_o except_o haply_o the_o rhemist_n who_o so_o far_o as_o i_o see_v speak_v but_o at_o random_n write_v upon_o the_o present_a subject_n or_o comment_n upon_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n have_v assert_v or_o at_o least_o take_v for_o grant_v till_o very_o late_o that_o the_o time_n of_o st._n paul_n beseech_v timothy_n to_o abide_v at_o ephesus_n when_o he_o go_v into_o macedonia_n be_v somewhere_o to_o be_v search_v for_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n before_o st._n paul_n have_v the_o ephesian_a elder_n farewell_n in_o act_n 20._o v_o 17._o from_o whence_o our_o dissenter_n conclude_v that_o the_o supreme_a government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v not_o in_o that_o epistle_n commit_v unto_o timothy_n for_o that_o the_o apostle_n can_v not_o have_v so_o whole_o overlook_v their_o bishop_n in_o that_o farewell_n sermon_n and_o apply_v himself_o only_o to_o the_o elder_n to_o who_o he_o commend_v the_o care_n and_o oversight_n of_o that_o church_n on_o the_o other_o hand_n i_o have_v show_v that_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v long_o after_o paul_n say_v farewell_o sermon_n even_o after_o his_o enlargement_n out_o of_o his_o former_a imprisonment_n at_o rome_n and_o by_o consequence_n that_o he_o beseech_v timothy_n to_o abide_v at_o ephesus_n when_o he_o go_v unto_o macedonia_n at_o another_o time_n than_o what_o have_v hitherto_o be_v believe_v and_o assign_v and_o so_o that_o objection_n just_a now_o mention_v quite_o vanish_v thus_o than_o my_o hypothesis_n lie_v after_o that_o schism_n at_o corinth_n have_v be_v in_o some_o measure_n though_o not_o entire_o allay_v by_o st._n paul_n he_o with_o all_o have_v make_v towards_o jerusalem_n take_v miletus_n in_o his_o way_n where_o he_o bid_v the_o ephesian_a elder_n farewell_o at_o jerusalem_n he_o be_v imprison_v and_o thence_o send_v to_o rome_n in_o bond_n here_o he_o continue_v two_o year_n and_o upward_o write_v epistle_n to_o the_o several_a church_n of_o ephesus_n of_o philippi_n of_o coloss_n of_o judea_n and_o to_o philemon_n be_v at_o length_n set_v at_o liberty_n and_o in_o his_o way_n as_o he_o go_v back_o eastward_o to_o visit_v the_o foresay_a church_n he_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o a_o church_n in_o crete_n leave_v titus_n behind_o to_o finish_v and_o to_o govern_v it_o thence_o as_o i_o suppose_v he_o prosecute_v his_o journey_n to_o judea_n heb._n 13._o 23._o and_o thence_o as_o it_o be_v back_o again_o through_o syria_n to_o asâa_n be_v at_o troas_n 2._o tim._n 4._o 13._o about_o to_o sail_v unto_o macedonia_n he_o beseech_v timothy_n to_o abide_v at_o ephesus_n short_o after_o when_o in_o macedonia_n haply_o or_o greece_n or_o somewhere_o thereabouts_o he_o write_v this_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n give_v he_o the_o necessary_a order_n how_o he_o be_v to_o behave_v himself_o in_o the_o charge_n late_o commit_v to_o he_o and_o not_o long_o after_o from_o nicopolis_n that_o epistle_n to_o titus_n upon_o the_o same_o subject_a hence_o forward_o we_o hear_v no_o more_o of_o he_o in_o scripture_n save_v that_o be_v once_o again_o get_v to_o rome_n he_o thence_o write_v his_o second_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n as_o be_v undeniable_o evince_v in_o these_o paper_n the_o corinthian_a schism_n like_o the_o leprosy_n seem_v incurable_a and_o spread_v its_o self_n unto_o other_o church_n also_o particular_o ephesus_n as_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n and_o the_o first_o to_o timothy_n and_o the_o like_a i_o reckon_v to_o have_v happen_v in_o other_o place_n also_o wherefore_o paul_n in_o his_o visitation_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n before_o speak_v of_o his_o principal_a design_n i_o presume_v be_v to_o compose_v the_o contention_n already_o rise_v and_o to_o prevent_v they_o for_o the_o future_a to_o which_o end_n he_o commit_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n to_o single_a person_n of_o crete_n to_o titus_n of_o ephesus_z to_o timothy_n the_o like_a be_v to_o be_v believe_v of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o church_n throughout_o the_o world_n for_o how_o else_o can_v there_o have_v be_v bishop_n every_o owhere_o as_o ignatius_n write_v to_o the_o ephesian_n and_o not_o one_o church_n at_o that_o time_n govern_v by_o a_o presbytery_n of_o elder_n only_o without_o a_o apostle_n or_o bishop_n preside_v over_o they_o that_o we_o can_v find_v in_o ecclesiastical_a history_n nor_o be_v we_o to_o imagine_v this_o a_o perfect_o new_a device_n take_v up_o by_o paul_n and_o the_o other_o apostle_n mere_o upon_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o schism_n at_o corinth_n and_o elsewhere_o for_o as_o i_o make_v account_n they_o come_v to_o this_o resolution_n among_o themselves_o even_o at_o the_o beginning_n viz._n to_o commit_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o ãâã_d person_n not_o that_o they_o immediate_o do_v so_o assoon_o as_o they_o have_v make_v the_o decree_n for_o every_o apostle_n it_o be_v likely_a keep_v the_o government_n and_o care_n of_o the_o church_n by_o he_o found_v in_o his_o own_o hand_n so_o long_o as_o he_o think_v fit_a and_o be_v able_a to_o manage_v they_o himself_o so_o that_o every_o church_n be_v ãâã_d cast_v into_o this_o platform_n nor_o furnish_v with_o a_o bishop_n distinct_a from_o the_o apostle_n at_o the_o same_o instant_n but_o it_o be_v do_v paulatim_fw-la as_o jerom_n speak_v in_o his_o commentary_n on_o titus_n james_n be_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n before_o the_o corinthian_a schism_n titus_n of_o crete_n at_o that_o church_n first_o plantation_n though_o timothy_n be_v not_o so_o of_o ephesus_n till_o many_o year_n after_o the_o ephesian_a church_n have_v be_v form_v but_o at_o length_n because_o schism_n begin_v now_o to_o increase_v and_o prevail_v the_o apostle_n take_v the_o alarm_n ãâã_d to_o put_v their_o former_a decree_n into_o execution_n and_o more_o especial_o because_o at_o this_o time_n believer_n be_v multiply_v church_n be_v increase_v business_n grow_v on_o their_o hand_n and_o they_o force_v to_o be_v long_o absent_a and_o unable_a to_o inspect_v all_o church_n as_o also_o because_o the_o time_n of_o their_o departure_n now_o draw_v on_o apace_o it_o be_v therefore_o high_a time_n and_o necessary_a to_o provide_v for_o the_o peace_n and_o future_a government_n of_o the_o church_n as_o they_o have_v in_o the_o beginning_n contrive_v whereas_o then_o i_o have_v frequent_o express_v myself_o as_o if_o the_o church_n government_n have_v be_v alter_v from_o what_o it_o be_v in_o the_o infancy_n of_o christianity_n and_o lest_o this_o shall_v be_v take_v for_o a_o rash_a and_o dangerous_a concession_n to_o the_o adversary_n in_o prejudice_n of_o episcopacy_n i_o thus_o explain_v myself_o 1._o this_o be_v not_o a_o change_n of_o the_o first_o principle_n and_o rule_n of_o government_n but_o only_o a_o bring_v it_o by_o degree_n to_o that_o model_n and_o frame_n which_o the_o apostle_n as_o i_o say_v first_o pitch_v upon_o and_o afterward_o as_o occasion_n require_v by_o degree_n bring_v to_o perfection_n so_o that_o with_o respect_n to_o the_o original_a design_n and_o scheme_n of_o government_n there_o be_v indeed_o no_o change_n or_o innovation_n at_o all_o but_o then_o 2._o if_o we_o consider_v matter_n of_o fact_n there_o be_v a_o alteration_n of_o government_n in_o as_o much_o as_o the_o apostle_n have_v leave_v it_o for_o a_o while_n unto_o the_o presbyter_n to_o discharge_v the_o ordinary_a affair_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o absence_n but_o still_o reserve_v to_o themselves_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o other_o matter_n of_o great_a moment_n at_o length_n constitute_v bishop_n over_o they_o pursuant_n to_o their_o prime_a resolution_n and_o in_o conformity_n to_o their_o own_o way_n of_o
government_n which_o be_v prelatical_a in_o this_o latter_a sense_n i_o will_v always_o be_v understand_v and_o this_o change_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o improvement_n and_o complete_n the_o church_n government_n as_o it_o have_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n project_v by_o themselves_o or_o rather_o suggest_v to_o they_o by_o the_o holy-ghost_n i_o must_v also_o here_o take_v notice_n of_o one_o thing_n more_o which_o be_v not_o sufficient_o explain_v in_o its_o proper_a place_n it_o be_v acknowledge_v that_o presbyter_n be_v subject_a and_o accountable_a unto_o the_o apostle_n and_o by_o ãâã_d as_o i_o argue_v not_o supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n mr._n o._n retort_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n and_o all_o bishop_n also_o in_o the_o apostle_n day_n be_v so_o and_o by_o the_o same_o consequence_n not_o supreme_a governor_n but_o i_o answer_v 1._o it_o be_v true_a timothy_n and_o titus_n paul_n be_v alive_a be_v subject_a and_o accountable_a to_o he_o and_o so_o not_o absolute_o supreme_a ruler_n if_o we_o look_v up_o towards_o the_o apostle_n but_o if_o we_o look_v downward_o to_o the_o presbyter_n they_o be_v supreme_a or_o which_o be_v the_o same_o to_o my_o purpose_n superior_a to_o the_o presbyter_n who_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n 2._o timothy_n and._n titus_n be_v not_o in_o paul_n life_n time_n actual_o supreme_a governor_n as_o if_o they_o have_v no_o superior_a for_o paul_n be_v over_o they_o true_a yet_o they_o be_v supreme_a intentional_o even_o whilst_o the_o apostle_n be_v alive_a and_o actual_o after_o his_o decease_n for_o so_o they_o must_v needs_o of_o course_n be_v 3._o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o timothy_n and_o titus_n subjection_n and_o accountableness_n unto_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o of_o the_o presbyter_n the_o presbyter_n as_o i_o have_v show_v and_o as_o far_o as_o we_o know_v do_v nothing_o without_o the_o express_a command_n and_o special_a direction_n of_o the_o apostle_n i_o mean_v in_o the_o high_o and_o most_o important_a business_n of_o the_o church_n but_o timothy_n and_o titus_n and_o so_o the_o rest_n have_v general_a rule_n only_o prescribe_v they_o and_o be_v ordinary_o leave_v to_o their_o own_o discretionary_a power_n in_o the_o execution_n of_o they_o as_o be_v evident_a from_o the_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n except_o the_o apostle_n in_o a_o extraordinary_a manner_n interpose_v sometime_o as_o we_o may_v reasonable_o admit_v but_o there_o be_v nec_fw-la vola_fw-la nec_fw-la vestigium_fw-la no_o footstep_n in_o the_o whole_a scripture_n of_o any_o such_o general_a rule_n and_o discretionary_a power_n commit_v to_o the_o presbyter_n as_o be_v evince_v in_o t._n n._n and_o these_o paper_n jan._n 1._o 1697_o 8._o the_o content_n part_n i._n chap._n i._n several_a cavil_n against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n consider_v page_n 1_o chap._n ii_o id._n p._n 6_o chap._n iii_o id._n p._n 19_o chap._n iu_o the_o old_a chronology_n about_o the_o time_n of_o st._n paul_n '_o s_z settle_v timothy_n ruler_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n overthrow_v the_o pearsonian_n hypothesis_n more_o firm_o establish_v and_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n demonstrate_v to_o have_v be_v write_v in_o the_o apostle_n ãâã_d ãâã_d at_o rome_n p._n 29_o chap._n v._o sundry_a objection_n be_v answer_v and_o particular_o it_o be_v here_o prove_v that_o the_o convocation_n be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v allow_v as_o a_o just_a representative_a of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n 57_o chap._n vi_o be_v a_o answer_n to_o mr._n oh_o 6_o chap._n p._n 72_o part_n ii_o chap._n i._o of_o clemens_n romanus_n p._n 3_o chap._n ii_o of_o ignatius_n '_o s_z epistle_n p._n 10_o chap._n iii_o of_o mark_n and_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n p._n 20_o chap._n iv._o of_o the_o syriac_a version_n p._n 30_o chap._n v._o of_o the_o beginning_n of_o christianity_n in_o the_o most_o remote_a north-west_n part_n of_o scotland_n p._n 32_o chap._n vi_o of_o some_o passage_n in_o st._n cyprian_n p._n 43_o chap._n vii_o of_o the_o scythian_a church_n p._n 47_o chap._n viii_o of_o the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la p._n 50_o chap._n ix_o of_o the_o first_o ãâã_d of_o nice_a p._n 55_o chap._n x._o of_o aerius_n p._n 69_o chap._n xi_o of_o hilary_n the_o deacon_n p._n 70_o chap._n xii_o of_o jerom_n p._n 74_o chap._n xiii_o of_o the_o carthaginian_a council_n p._n 84_o chap._n fourteen_o of_o paphnutius_fw-la and_o daniel_n p._n 89_o chap._n xv._n of_o pope_n leo._n p._n 91_o chap._n xvi_o of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o island_n taprobane_n p._n 93_o chap._n xvii_o of_o pelagius_n his_o ordination_n p._n 95_o chap._n xviii_o of_o the_o waldenses_n boiarians_n etc._n etc._n p._n 98_o chap._n xix_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n at_o and_o since_o the_o ãâã_d p._n 108_o part_n i._n chap._n i._o in_o answer_n to_o mr._n of_o s_o 1_o st_z chap._n the_o rector_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o the_o t._n n._n complain_v of_o the_o unfair_a way_n which_o the_o dissenter_n have_v take_v up_o in_o manage_v controversy_n that_o be_v of_o their_o bring_n in_o other_o matter_n nothing_o at_o all_o belong_v to_o the_o point_n in_o debate_n which_o be_v as_o when_o a_o lawyer_n when_o he_o be_v plead_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o client_n and_o set_v forth_o his_o title_n unto_o the_o ãâã_d in_o question_n shall_v fall_v foul_a upon_o his_o client_n adversary_n expose_v his_o person_n and_o upbraid_v he_o with_o his_o private_a perhaps_o but_o suppose_v fault_n and_o infirmity_n i_o instanced_a in_o three_o thing_n which_o be_v the_o common_a topic_n of_o the_o dissenter_n rail_v against_o the_o episcopal_a clergy_n and_o which_o they_o will_v be_v sure_a to_o hook_n in_o whatever_o the_o matter_n in_o controversy_n be_v but_o if_o recrimination_n be_v but_o cavil_v as_o one_o of_o their_o own_o author_n speak_v much_o more_o ãâã_d accuse_v my_o instance_n be_v that_o the_o episcopal_a divine_n be_v arminian_n that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n symbolize_v with_o the_o ãâã_d that_o the_o bishop_n be_v proud_a lord_n and_o lordly_a prelate_n and_o if_o all_o this_o be_v true_a what_o do_v it_o signify_v in_o the_o question_n about_o church-government_n mr._n o._n in_o the_o content_n of_o his_o first_o chap._n at_o the_o beginning_n advertise_v his_o reader_n that_o the_o dissenter_n be_v justify_v in_o their_o way_n of_o manage_v controversy_n indeed_o he_o shall_v have_v edeavour_v it_o if_o he_o will_v have_v answer_v to_o the_o purpose_n and_o his_o way_n of_o vindicate_v the_o dissenter_n shall_v have_v be_v i_o conceive_v either_o to_o deny_v the_o charge_n lay_v against_o they_o or_o else_o to_o justify_v the_o fitness_n and_o reasonableness_n of_o that_o way_n of_o controvert_v but_o instead_o of_o this_o he_o fall_v upon_o the_o old_a strain_n of_o accuse_v we_o the_o rector_n of_o arminianism_n of_o symbolise_v with_o ãâã_d and_o the_o bishop_n for_o be_v lord_n which_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o question_n between_o he_o and_o i_o here_o viz._n whether_o it_o be_v fair_a to_o charge_v one_o adversary_n with_o suppose_a fault_n which_o have_v no_o relation_n to_o the_o question_n in_o hand_n unless_o he_o be_v so_o vain_a as_o to_o imagine_v that_o his_o own_o repeat_v practice_n be_v a_o sufficient_a justification_n of_o the_o dissenter_n manage_v controversy_n in_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o our_o church-government_n i_o observe_v in_o general_a that_o our_o episcopal_a government_n be_v establish_v upon_o certain_a canon_n and_o law_n make_v and_o consent_v unto_o by_o the_o convocation_n consist_v of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n and_o by_o the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n that_o be_v by_o their_o representative_n in_o parliament_n and_o that_o thus_o it_o be_v in_o the_o council_n of_o jerusalem_n act_v 15._o this_o be_v plain_a matter_n of_o fact_n and_o one_o will_v have_v think_v incapable_a of_o be_v cavil_v at_o and_o yet_o mr._n owen_n who_o be_v a_o master_n at_o that_o knack_n have_v many_o thing_n to_o oppose_v i_o in_o it_o and_o have_v find_v many_o disparity_n in_o the_o resemblance_n as_o 1._o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o apostle_n etc._n etc._n ãâã_d jerusalem_n enjoin_v the_o def._n p._n 24._o necessary_a for_o bearance_n of_o ãâã_d few_o thing_n but_o the_o convocation_n have_v make_v canon_n enjoin_v the_o practice_n of_o unnecessary_a thing_n to_o create_v offence_n ans._n these_o last_o word_n be_v as_o malicious_a as_o false_a and_o without_o ground_n how_o can_v mr_n o._n at_o this_o distance_n tell_v or_o how_o can_v the_o dissenter_n of_o those_o time_n know_v that_o the_o design_n of_o the_o convocation_n be_v to_o ãâã_d offence_n have_v he_o or_o have_v they_o the_o gift_n of_o ãâã_d spirit_n or_o dare_v they_o presume_v to_o lay_v claim_n to_o one_o of_o the_o transcendent_a attribute_n of_o god_n his_o omniscience_n
mr._n o._n if_o the_o apostle_n join_v the_o presbytery_n with_o he_o in_o the_o ordination_n of_o timothy_n it_o prove_v that_o presbyter_n have_v a_o inherent_a power_n of_o ordain_v ans._n true_a it_o may_v safe_o be_v grant_v in_o conjunction_n with_o the_o apostle_n and_o with_o bishop_n but_o not_o without_o they_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o have_v a_o inherent_a power_n to_o make_v a_o vote_n of_o parliament_n but_o not_o without_o the_o lord_n and_o both_o house_n have_v a_o inherent_a power_n to_o make_v a_o law_n but_o not_o without_o the_o king_n it_o be_v he_o that_o inspire_v life_n and_o breath_n into_o it_o after_o the_o two_o house_n have_v form_v the_o carcase_n last_o mr._n o._n add_v the_o apostle_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o 91._o presbytery_n act._n 15._o 23._o ans._n this_o be_v not_o apposite_o observe_v for_o it_o be_v a_o council_n not_o a_o presbytery_n though_o the_o presbyter_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v in_o it_o haply_o other_o presbyter_n also_o beside_o a_o apostle_n or_o apostle_n though_o he_o be_v the_o head_n or_o governor_n of_o a_o presbytery_n may_v be_v apt_o distinguish_v from_o that_o presbytery_n whereof_o he_o be_v head_n and_o yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o be_v a_o member_n of_o that_o presbytery_n jesus_n christ_n be_v by_o st._n paul_n call_v the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n the_o church_n eph._n 22._o 23._o c_o 4_o 15_o 16._o col._n 1._o 18._o and_o so_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o body_n though_o we_o can_v proper_o call_v any_o thing_n a_o body_n except_o we_o comprehend_v the_o head_n also_o for_o a_o body_n be_v not_o a_o body_n without_o the_o head_n and_o the_o head_n be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o body_n and_o yet_o st._n paul_n distinguish_v between_o the_o body_n that_o be_v the_o church_n and_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o it_o when_o at_o the_o same_o time_n christ_n the_o head_n must_v be_v believe_v a_o member_n of_o his_o own_o body_n i_o expect_v then_o mr._n o._n will_n in_o good_a time_n rally_v npon_n st._n paul_n and_o expose_v his_o expression_n as_o he_o have_v i_o moreover_o though_o the_o apostle_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o elder_n yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o they_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o council_n or_o presbytery_n when_o the_o member_n of_o a_o body_n be_v distinguish_v from_o one_o another_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o distinguish_v from_o the_o body_n but_o from_o one_o another_o only_o st._n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o natural_a body_n 1_o cor._n 12._o tell_v we_o that_o though_o the_o member_n of_o that_o body_n be_v many_o yet'tis_o but_o one_o body_n and_o he_o distinguish_v also_o the_o member_n from_o one_o another_o as_o the_o hand_n from_o the_o foot_n and_o both_o from_o the_o eye_n and_o all_o these_o from_o the_o ear_n and_o the_o hand_n from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o body_n but_o yet_o he_o affirm_v they_o be_v all_o of_o the_o body_n and_o together_o make_v up_o the_o body_n so_o st._n luke_n reckon_v the_o two_o principal_a and_o constituent_a part_n of_o the_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o distinguish_v between_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o elder_n between_o the_o head_n and_o the_o low_a member_n but_o not_o between_o the_o head_n and_o the_o body_n between_o the_o apostle_n and_o council_n for_o no_o one_o can_v think_v but_o the_o apostle_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o council_n or_o if_o you_o please_v call_v it_o a_o presbytery_n i_o beg_v the_o reader_n patience_n when_o i_o say_v a_o body_n be_v not_o a_o body_n without_o a_o head_n our_o late_a presbytery_n be_v such_o body_n without_o visible_a head_n the_o classical_a body_n move_v to_o the_o place_n of_o meeting_n i_o say_v move_v without_o a_o head_n a_o frightful_a spectacle_n when_o it_o have_v sit_v a_o few_o moment_n without_o a_o head_n it_o then_o make_v itself_o a_o head_n a_o precedent_n or_o moderator_n protempore_o who_o be_v before_o but_o a_o inferior_a member_n but_o now_o mount_v up_o for_o a_o hour_n or_o two_o to_o be_v the_o head_n but_o it_o may_v be_v ask_v who_o be_v the_o head_n when_o this_o ãâã_d be_v set_v up_o herein_o the_o body_n act_v without_o a_o head_n however_o the_o business_n of_o the_o day_n be_v over_o the_o artificial_a head_n drop_v off_o from_o the_o shoulder_n and_o thence_o ãâã_d be_v a_o hand_n or_o a_o foot_n as_o before_o so_o every_o member_n of_o the_o body_n in_o its_o turn_n become_v the_o head_n and_o the_o head_n dwindle_v again_o into_o a_o small_a member_n the_o body_n than_o continue_v for_o some_o day_n or_o week_n without_o a_o head_n and_o will_v it_o not_o scare_v one_o to_o see_v a_o body_n once_o more_o without_o a_o head_n hereby_o mr._n o._n may_v see_v it_o be_v possible_a to_o ridicule_n the_o presbytery_n if_o one_o will_v take_v the_o liberty_n to_o confine_v word_n to_o their_o natural_a signification_n when_o they_o be_v use_v metaphorical_o as_o to_o my_o exposition_n of_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d i_o be_o not_o sensible_a mr._n o._n have_v advance_v any_o thing_n considerable_a against_o i_o only_o after_o his_o usual_a and_o sophistical_a manner_n he_o draw_v in_o what_o be_v admit_v in_o one_o place_n and_o oppose_v it_o to_o what_o be_v suppose_v in_o another_o which_o can_v with_o no_o justice_n be_v do_v when_o ex_fw-la gr_n i_o explain_v this_o passage_n 1_o tim._n 4._o 14._o suppose_v that_o by_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v mean_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d or_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o the_o concrete_a it_o be_v a_o miserable_a shift_n to_o make_v use_n of_o what_o i_o here_o assert_v against_o what_o afterward_o i_o propose_v when_o i_o have_v admit_v the_o phrase_n to_o be_v understand_v in_o the_o abstract_n and_o then_o assert_v paul_n to_o be_v at_o least_o one_o and_o the_o head_n or_o governor_n of_o the_o presbytery_n i_o have_v lay_v down_o several_a way_n of_o expound_v the_o text_n and_o have_v permit_v mr._n o._n to_o choose_v which_o he_o please_v that_o the_o argument_n may_v be_v bring_v to_o a_o certain_a head_n but_o instead_o hereof_o he_o jumble_v they_o all_o ãâã_d contrary_a to_o alllaw_n of_o disputation_n and_o whereas_o i_o lay_v this_o clear_o before_o the_o reader_n p._n 33._o by_o sum_v up_o brief_o what_o have_v be_v say_v he_o ãâã_d we_o off_o with_o call_v it_o a_o recapitulation_n of_o my_o long_a perplex_a ãâã_d upon_o ãâã_d ãâã_d 95._o text._n mr._n o._n have_v indeed_o perplex_v it_o but_o it_o have_v be_v judge_v pretty_a clear_a by_o other_o i_o wish_v mr._n o._n will_v have_v furnish_v we_o with_o a_o better_a carpere_fw-la vel_fw-la noli_fw-la ãâã_d well_fw-mi ede_fw-mi ãâã_d but_o the_o minister_n be_v better_a at_o pull_v down_o than_o build_v up_o and_o indeed_o it_o be_v in_o a_o great_a measure_n the_o true_a character_n of_o the_o whole_a party_n in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o my_o discourse_n upon_o the_o general_n history_n of_o the_o apostolical_a church_n and_o their_o government_n i_o examine_v that_o passage_n of_o st._n peter_n 1_o eph._n 5._o but_o do_v not_o find_v my_o adversary_n to_o have_v say_v any_o thing_n to_o that_o purpose_n or_o which_o in_o the_o least_o affect_v the_o account_n i_o give_v of_o it_o some_o cavil_n be_v to_o be_v meet_v with_o but_o such_o as_o if_o any_o one_o suspect_v of_o moment_n let_v he_o but_o compare_v they_o with_o what_o i_o say_v in_o the_o ãâã_d nou._n p._n 37._o to_o p._n 42._o and_o he_o will_v easy_o discern_v the_o shift_n mr._n o._n ãâã_d put_v to_o in_o frame_v but_o a_o colourable_a reply_n among_o many_o other_o thing_n i_o will_v only_o in_o short_a produce_v one_o and_o the_o rather_o because_o mr._n o._n have_v repeat_v it_o i_o ãâã_d above_o 20_o time_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o what_o i_o grant_v more_o than_o once_o '_o ãâã_d this_o ãâã_d and_o titus_n say_v he_o be_v no_o where_o express_o call_v 97._o bishop_n in_o the_o scripture_n nor_o constitute_v diocesan_n bishop_n now_o i_o have_v oft_o enough_o ãâã_d in_o t._n n._n and_o caution_v against_o all_o mistake_n and_o ãâã_d cavil_v that_o ãâã_d and_o ãâã_d be_v never_o call_v bishop_n only_o contend_v they_o be_v the_o supreme_a ruler_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ãâã_d and_o crete_n that_o be_v in_o the_o language_n afterward_o prevail_v in_o the_o church_n they_o be_v bishop_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o we_o be_v at_o every_o turn_n tell_v they_o be_v never_o in_o scripture_n express_o call_v bishop_n nor_o constitute_v diocesan_n bishop_n as_o if_o i_o or_o any_o other_o ever_o assert_v it_o nevertheless_o that_o which_o i_o affirm_v and_o which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o my_o purpose_n be_v that_o they_o have_v express_v commission_n from_o st._n paul_n to_o
adversary_n 1._o that_o they_o be_v a_o order_n of_o church_n officer_n distinct_a from_o apostle_n prophet_n pastor_n or_o teacher_n 2._o that_o in_o degree_n they_o be_v next_o under_o prophet_n and_o above_o pastor_n or_o teacher_n i_o add_v my_o own_o opinion_n 3._o that_o they_o be_v not_o only_a companion_n of_o the_o apostle_n ready_a to_o serve_v in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o gospel_n wherever_o &_o whensoever_o they_o shall_v be_v send_v upon_o any_o special_a and_o emergent_a business_n but_o sometime_o likewise_o fix_v in_o some_o certain_a place_n as_o resident_n governor_n of_o those_o church_n in_o the_o room_n of_o the_o absent_a or_o die_a apostle_n of_o which_o number_n i_o reckon_v philip_n timothy_n and_o titus_n to_o have_v be_v mr._n o._n because_o titus_n be_v to_o ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n 143._o and_o every_o city_n must_v have_v a_o bishop_n as_o mr._n o._n fancy_n titus_n therefore_o must_v have_v be_v the_o archbishop_n of_o crete_n and_o because_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n be_v lodge_v in_o he_o alone_o as_o the_o rector_n contend_v it_o will_v follow_v say_v he_o that_o archbishop_n only_o have_v power_n to_o ordain_v and_o the_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v exclude_v ans._n there_o be_v no_o necessity_n that_o every_o city_n must_v needs_o have_v a_o bishop_n at_o least_o in_o the_o infancy_n of_o the_o church_n and_o whilst_o titus_n alone_o preside_v over_o it_o it_o be_v not_o so_o in_o crete_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o occasion_n for_o it_o admit_v that_o in_o the_o next_o age_n christian_n and_o church_n multiply_v and_o all_o the_o apostle_n dead_a then_o haply_o there_o may_v be_v bishop_n in_o many_o ãâã_d and_o some_o person_n constitute_v the_o archbishop_n of_o that_o island_n i_o say_v admit_v this_o it_o will_v not_o hence_o follow_v that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n be_v in_o he_o sole_o and_o not_o in_o the_o other_o bishop_n also_o a_o archbishop_n be_v not_o of_o a_o different_a species_n from_o a_o bishop_n but_o be_v appoint_v and_o agree_v unto_o by_o the_o bishop_n among_o themselves_o for_o peace_n and_o order_n sake_n although_o there_o may_v be_v plausible_a reason_n give_v out_o of_o scripture_n itself_o for_o the_o institution_n of_o archbishop_n but_o that_o be_v ãâã_d of_o my_o concernment_n this_o be_v certain_a among_o ourselves_o when_o a_o bishop_n be_v make_v a_o archbishop_n he_o receive_v no_o new_a ordination_n consequent_o no_o new_a divine_a power_n more_o than_o he_o have_v before_o that_o therefore_o as_o to_o the_o office_n of_o ordain_v and_o govern_v their_o diocese_n a_o bishop_n and_o a_o archbishop_n be_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o that_o the_o archbishop_n can_v supersede_n the_o episcopal_a power_n of_o his_o provincial_a bishop_n mr._n o._n will_v not_o allow_v that_o philip_n be_v the_o fix_v and_o settle_a evangelist_n at_o caesarea_n ans._n nor_o be_o i_o positive_a it_o be_v so_o i_o give_v my_o reason_n for_o it_o out_o of_o scripture_n such_o as_o do_v i_o confess_v persuade_v i_o to_o believe_v it_o but_o the_o minister_n be_v of_o another_o mind_n i_o can_v help_v that_o nor_o do_v i_o wonder_v at_o it_o where_o almost_o be_v there_o a_o man_n to_o be_v find_v who_o be_v willing_a to_o renounce_v his_o former_a sentiment_n or_o error_n mr._n o._n require_v it_o to_o be_v prove_v that_o philip_n be_v settle_v and_o reside_v at_o caesarea_n and_o that_o he_o be_v no_o where_o else_o etc._n etc._n ans._n it_o be_v hard_a mr._n o._n shall_v require_v i_o to_o prove_v a_o negative_a all_o i_o can_v say_v be_v i_o read_v not_o of_o his_o be_v any_o where-else_a after_o a_o account_n give_v of_o his_o labour_n in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n whilst_o he_o be_v yet_o but_o a_o deacon_n for_o any_o thing_n that_o appear_v i_o find_v he_o as_o it_o be_v sit_v down_o at_o caesarea_n act_n 8._o 40._o he_o preach_v in_o all_o the_o city_n till_o he_o come_v to_o caesarea_n which_o word_n seem_v to_o intimate_v that_o there_o he_o rest_v the_o next_o news_n we_o hear_v of_o he_o be_v that_o near_o upon_o twenty_o year_n after_o we_o find_v he_o still_o at_o caesarea_n and_o then_o style_v a_o evangelist_n a_o title_n plain_o there_o distinguish_v from_o deacon_n who_o be_v or_o have_v be_v one_o of_o the_o seven_o deacon_n but_o be_v now_o it_o seem_v a_o evangelist_n and_o further_o it_o be_v say_v of_o he_o that_o at_o ãâã_d he_o have_v a_o house_n and_o family_n there_o and_o in_o condition_n to_o entertain_v paul_n and_o his_o companion_n many_o day_n act_n 21._o 8_o 9_o 10._o i_o think_v that_o here_o be_v a_o tolerable_a proof_n that_o he_o dwell_v and_o be_v the_o fix_a evangelist_n of_o caesarea_n mr._n o._n may_v not_o a_o unsettled_a officer_n have_v a_o settle_a family_n caesarea_n may_v be_v his_o birth_n place_n or_o he_o may_v marry_v there_o because_o he_o have_v four_o daughter_n there_o prophetess_n ans._n these_o be_v bare_a possibility_n at_o most_o which_o can_v countervail_v those_o circumstance_n and_o matter_n of_o ãâã_d whereon_o i_o build_v my_o conjecture_n herein_o i_o appeal_v to_o the_o reader_n beside_o though_o it_o be_v possible_a a_o unsettled_a officer_n may_v have_v a_o settle_a family_n yet_o a_o settle_a officer_n must_v have_v a_o settle_a family_n one_o will_v think_v if_o he_o have_v ãâã_d at_o all_o caesarea_n may_v be_v his_o birth_n place_n this_o be_v possible_a and_o it_o may_v not_o be_v which_o be_v most_o probable_a it_o be_v great_a odds_o on_o my_o side_n i_o have_v all_o the_o city_n in_o judea_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o all_o the_o other_o in_o the_o empire_n and_o elsewhere_o where_o jew_n live_v to_o set_v against_o caesarea_n his_o name_n will_v make_v one_o think_v he_o be_v a_o hellenist_n and_o bear_v somewhere_o among_o the_o greek_n his_o be_v choose_v a_o deacon_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o grecian_n argue_v something_o this_o way_n as_o also_o that_o at_o that_o time_n his_o habitation_n be_v at_o jerusalem_n for_o why_o else_o shall_v he_o be_v choose_v a_o deacon_n there_o he_o remove_v thence_o mere_o upon_o occasion_n of_o the_o persecution_n after_o all_o imagine_v he_o be_v bear_v at_o caesarea_n this_o be_v no_o reason_n against_o his_o be_v a_o evangelist_n there_o once_o more_o he_o may_v marry_v there_o true_o that_o be_v possible_a but_o it_o be_v as_o possible_a that_o he_o marry_v at_o jerusalem_n or_o any_o other_o of_o the_o city_n where_o he_o have_v preach_v the_o word_n but_o mr._n oh_o reason_n why_o he_o may_v marry_v there_o be_v a_o very_a pleasant_a one_o sc_n because_o he_o have_v daughter_n there_o prophetess_n as_o if_o he_o may_v not_o have_v marry_v in_o another_o place_n and_o yet_o his_o daughter_n live_v with_o he_o at_o caesarea_n child_n be_v no_o evidence_n where_o a_o man_n be_v marry_v but_o what_o if_o he_o be_v marry_v there_o may_v he_o not_o also_o have_v be_v the_o settle_a evangelist_n there_o his_o marry_v at_o caesarea_n can_v be_v no_o hindrance_n nor_o be_v a_o argument_n against_o it_o last_o it_o be_v most_o absurd_a to_o suppose_v from_o act_n the_o 8._o 40._o that_o he_o marry_v at_o caesarea_n for_o it_o be_v now_o about_o 20_o year_n since_o he_o arrive_v first_o at_o caesarea_n there_o mr._n o._n think_v he_o may_v marry_v and_o so_o settle_v his_o family_n i_o deny_v it_o he_o must_v in_o all_o likelihood_n have_v be_v marry_v before_o he_o ever_o come_v to_o caesarea_n and_o that_o because_o he_o have_v four_o daughter_n prophetess_n for_o if_o he_o be_v there_o and_o then_o marry_v the_o old_a of_o these_o prophetess_n must_v have_v be_v but_o nineteen_o year_n old_a and_o the_o young_a but_o sixteen_o it_o be_v not_o credible_a that_o at_o this_o age_n they_o shall_v be_v prophetess_n last_o the_o most_o probable_a conjecture_n be_v that_o he_o marry_v before_o he_o be_v convert_v or_o become_v a_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n mr._n o._n he_o be_v a_o evangelist_n before_o he_o come_v to_o caesarea_n which_o the_o minister_n confirm_v by_o bishop_n pearson_n testimony_n ans._n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o bp._n pearson_n shall_v be_v of_o this_o opinion_n who_o esteem_v a_o evangelist_n to_o be_v not_o a_o distinct_a species_n of_o officer_n in_o the_o church_n but_o to_o denote_v a_o bare_a preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o mr._n o._n who_o believe_v it_o otherwise_o and_o i_o who_o have_v suppose_v it_o must_v seek_v for_o other_o proof_n of_o philip_n be_v a_o evangelist_n before_o he_o settle_v at_o samaria_n mr._n o._n philip_n preach_v up_o and_o down_o by_o virtue_n of_o a_o extraordinary_a call_n act._n 8._o 6_o 7_o 26_o 39_o ans._n the_o place_n cite_v prove_v that_o philip_n have_v extraordinary_a gift_n and_o ability_n and_o sometime_o a_o extraordinary_a call_n
man_n who_o be_v not_o i_o believe_v a_o fifty_v part_n of_o the_o people_n of_o england_n and_o these_o latter_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o nation_n i_o can_v scarce_o admit_v to_o be_v elect_v they_o may_v more_o fit_o be_v say_v to_o come_v in_o by_o privilege_n of_o the_o one_o hundred_o sixty_o and_o six_o member_n of_o convocation_n about_o fifty_o two_o or_o a_o three_o part_n be_v choose_v proctor_n by_o the_o parson_n vicar_n and_o rector_n who_o be_v two_o three_o of_o the_o clergy_n about_o a_o hundred_o and_o fourteen_o come_v in_o by_o virtue_n of_o their_o dignity_n as_o dean_n and_o arch-deacon_n or_o by_o the_o election_n of_o the_o chapter_n only_o let_v any_o one_o then_o judge_v whether_o the_o low_a house_n of_o convocation_n be_v near_o so_o much_o cramp_v with_o member_n by_o privilege_n as_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o be_v four_o part_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o be_v choose_v by_o not_o a_o fifty_o part_n of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o five_o part_n of_o they_o by_o about_o a_o eight_o part_n of_o the_o people_n but_o a_o three_o part_n of_o the_o convocation_n be_v choose_v by_o two_o three_o of_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o rest_n by_o privilege_n if_o then_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o notwithstanding_o what_o have_v be_v observe_v be_v by_o all_o wise_a man_n look_v upon_o as_o a_o just_a representative_a of_o the_o people_n with_o respect_n unto_o their_o choice_n as_o well_o as_o their_o number_n i_o will_v know_v a_o reason_n why_o the_o convocation_n be_v not_o a_o just_a representative_a of_o the_o clergy_n now_o lest_o what_o have_v be_v say_v shall_v not_o be_v think_v clear_a enough_o and_o sufficient_a to_o evince_v what_o it_o be_v intend_v for_o there_o be_v a_o great_a uncertainty_n in_o such_o calculation_n i_o shall_v compare_v the_o convocation_n with_o the_o assembly_n of_o divine_n at_o westminster_n who_o if_o i_o be_o not_o much_o mistake_v will_v be_v find_v on_o both_o the_o foremention_v account_n that_o be_v of_o number_n and_o of_o choice_n to_o have_v be_v not_o so_o just_a a_o representative_a of_o the_o clergy_n as_o the_o convocation_n be_v this_o will_v be_v dispatch_v in_o a_o very_a few_o word_n in_o the_o year_n 1643._o the_o parliament_n call_v that_o assembly_n consist_v of_o one_o hundred_o twenty_o and_o two_o person_n of_o who_o let_v it_o be_v note_v 1._o that_o they_o fall_v short_a of_o the_o two_o house_n of_o convocation_n forty_o four_o in_o number_n beside_o that_o there_o be_v some_o scot_n among_o they_o 2._o that_o not_o one_o of_o they_o be_v choose_v by_o the_o clergy_n but_o all_o nominate_v by_o the_o parliament_n either_o then_o let_v mr._n o._n give_v over_o tax_v the_o convocation_n as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o just_a representative_a of_o the_o clergy_n or_o confess_v the_o westminster_n assembly_n to_o have_v be_v pack_v to_o serve_v a_o turn_n contrary_a to_o all_o law_n and_o justice_n in_o short_a and_o to_o retort_v mr._n oh_o reflection_n the_o assemby_n of_o divine_n be_v all_o of_o they_o except_o a_o few_o nominate_v for_o a_o colour_n the_o parliament_n creature_n choose_v by_o they_o alone_o the_o rest_n if_o they_o have_v join_v in_o the_o westminster_n deliberation_n have_v be_v mere_a ãâã_d there_o be_v enough_o to_o out-vote_n they_o beside_o those_o lord_n and_o commoner_n who_o be_v take_v into_o the_o assembly_n like_v so_o many_o lay-elder_n to_o influence_n their_o counsel_n and_o prevent_v any_o decree_n that_o may_v be_v offer_v contrary_a to_o that_o parliament_n inclination_n or_o design_n mr._n o._n if_o the_o rector_n can_v find_v no_o proof_n in_o scripture_n that_o 153._o ordinary_a presbyter_n do_v suspend_v at_o all_o how_o dare_v they_o the_o episcopal-clergy_n do_v it_o for_o a_o fortnight_n if_o presbyter_n may_v by_o scripture_n suspend_v how_o dare_v the_o rector_n condemn_v the_o dissent_v minister_n for_o suspending_a ans._n we_o suspend_v not_o by_o virtue_n of_o our_o own_o sole_a inherent_a power_n but_o in_o conjunction_n with_o our_o diocesan_n with_o his_o knowledge_n and_o consent_n there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o a_o inherent_a power_n for_o presbyter_n to_o suspend_v a_o precedent_n for_o which_o i_o require_v out_o of_o scripture_n and_o to_o suspend_v for_o a_o time_n according_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o subordination_n to_o the_o bishop_n unto_o who_o the_o party_n suspend_v may_v appeal_v mr._n o._n whereas_o i_o affirm_v that_o the_o ordinary_a elder_n have_v 156._o not_o supreme_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n at_o least_o not_o after_o paul_n return_n from_o italy_n in_o the_o east_n the_o minister_n infer_v that_o herein_o be_v imply_v that_o ordinary_a presbyter_n have_v the_o supreme_a authority_n before_o that_o time_n and_o challenge_n the_o rector_n to_o prove_v they_o be_v ever_o deprive_v of_o it_o afterward_o ans._n there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n imply_v by_o the_o rector_n but_o only_o suppose_v at_o most_o to_o avoid_v all_o unnecessary_a dispute_n with_o his_o adversary_n but_o if_o it_o be_v out_o of_o question_n that_o the_o ordinary_a elder_n have_v once_o the_o supreme_a authority_n yet_o the_o apostle_n commit_v afterward_o the_o supreme_a authority_n unto_o single_a person_n ex_fw-la gr_n unto_o timothy_n and_o ãâã_d and_o make_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o the_o ordinary_a presbyter_n must_v be_v understand_v to_o supersede_n the_o power_n that_o be_v before_o in_o the_o presbyter_n and_o to_o subject_v they_o unto_o those_o single_a person_n for_o the_o future_a but_o this_o be_v the_o point_n in_o controversy_n throughout_o these_o paper_n and_o need_v not_o here_o to_o be_v insist_v on_o mr._n o._n here_o the_o rector_n fair_o confess_v there_o be_v no_o bishop_n 157._o when_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n be_v write_v in_o paul_n first_o bond_n ans._n the_o rector_n suppose_v it_o only_o as_o be_v say_v before_o but_o do_v not_o grant_v it_o nay_o he_o be_v quite_o of_o another_o mind_n but_o it_o suffice_v to_o his_o hypothesis_n that_o single_a person_n be_v afterward_o at_o least_o constitute_v ruler_n bishop_n in_o the_o church_n mr._n o._n ãâã_d can_v not_o receive_v the_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n because_o paul_n take_v in_o the_o presbyter_n 1_o tim._n 4._o 14._o ans._n here_o mr._n o._n if_o i_o take_v he_o right_a grant_v that_o ãâã_d be_v ordain_v by_o ãâã_d take_v the_o ãâã_d into_o his_o assistance_n this_o be_v as_o much_o as_o i_o desire_v and_o the_o exact_a pattern_n of_o our_o ordination_n presbyter_n therefore_o do_v not_o by_o their_o own_o sole_a power_n ordain_v but_o in_o conjunction_n with_o the_o apostle_n on_o the_o other_o hand_n if_o the_o revelation_n concern_v timothy_n ordination_n come_v to_o the_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o to_o st._n paul_n they_o then_o act_v not_o as_o ordinary_a ãâã_d but_o as_o prophet_n and_o so_o can_v warrant_v ordinary_a presbyter_n ordain_v by_o virtue_n of_o their_o ordinary_a power_n ãâã_d it_o no_o where_o appear_v that_o paul_n join_v the_o presbyter_n in_o commission_n with_o timothy_n it_o may_v then_o be_v reasonable_a to_o conclude_v that_o timothy_n receive_v the_o sole_a power_n though_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o i_o to_o say_v he_o have_v the_o supreme_a mr._n o._n but_o paul_n join_v ãâã_d with_o he_o in_o the_o ordination_n acts._n 14._o 23._o ans._n be_v it_o so_o yet_o still_o if_o barnabas_n be_v a_o apostle_n as_o well_o as_o paul_n as_o be_v manifest_a from_o act_n 14._o 4_o 14._o gal._n 29._o and_o if_o barnabas_n be_v equal_a to_o paul_n as_o many_o believe_v and_o mr._n o._n will_v not_o deny_v than_o we_o be_v but_o where_o we_o be_v before_o this_o be_v nothing_o to_o ordinary_a elder_n ordain_v that_o barnabas_n be_v thou_o not_o equal_a to_o paul_n yet_o independent_a on_o he_o may_v be_v probable_o hence_o gather_v that_o in_o the_o sharp_a contest_v between_o they_o barnabas_n submit_v not_o to_o paul_n but_o separate_v from_o he_o act_v 15._o 39_o beside_o barnabas_n receive_v the_o same_o commission_n that_o st._n paul_n do_v and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n act_v 13._o 1_o 2._o however_o admit_v barnabas_n be_v but_o a_o secondary_a apostle_n which_o i_o rather_o believe_v or_o ãâã_d yet_o mr._n o._n will_v not_o i_o hope_v deny_v he_o be_v more_o than_o a_o ordinary_a elder_n what_o then_o be_v this_o to_o ordinary_a elder_n ordain_v by_o their_o own_o sole_a power_n and_o inherent_a authority_n and_o how_o will_v it_o hence_o ãâã_d that_o because_o paul_n admit_v barnabas_n a_o apostle_n at_o least_o a_o secondary_a apostle_n to_o join_v in_o the_o ordination_n act_n 14._o 23._o that_o therefore_o timothy_n join_v the_o ordinary_a presbyter_n with_o he_o all_o this_o notwithstanding_o i_o give_v mr._n o._n what_o he_o can_v prove_v sc_n
who_o exercise_v their_o ministry_n among_o you_o blameless_o brethren_n etc._n etc._n all_o that_o need_v be_v answer_v hereunto_o be_v 1._o clement_n manifest_o teach_v elsewhere_o that_o the_o schism_n arise_v on_o the_o account_n of_o one_o or_o two_o person_n p._n 62._o it_o be_v say_v he_o a_o shame_n a_o arrant_a shame_n and_o unworthy_a a_o christian_n conversation_n that_o the_o ancient_a and_o most_o firm_o establish_v church_n of_o corinth_n shall_v raise_v sedition_n against_o the_o presbyter_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d for_o one_o or_o two_o person_n that_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n among_o they_o about_o their_o bishop_n that_o generous_a person_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o the_o presbyter_n be_v involve_v in_o the_o controversy_n and_o by_o consequence_n that_o some_o of_o they_o be_v desert_v and_o lay_v aside_o by_o those_o of_o the_o people_n who_o have_v a_o aversion_n to_o the_o bishop_n that_o generous_a person_n so_o oft_o mention_v as_o well_o as_o to_o some_o of_o the_o presbyter_n who_o stick_v close_o to_o he_o 2._o it_o may_v reasonable_o be_v think_v that_o the_o two_o person_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v the_o bishop_n in_o possession_n and_o the_o other_o who_o the_o corinthian_n will_v have_v advance_v into_o his_o ãâã_d in_o short_a if_o ãâã_d if_o what_o on_o this_o head_n have_v be_v offer_v for_o the_o clear_n the_o ãâã_d of_o the_o ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o epistle_n which_o to_o we_o at_o this_o distance_n be_v dark_a enough_o be_v of_o any_o moment_n it_o may_v then_o be_v allow_v that_o clement_n have_v intimate_v that_o there_o be_v at_o corinth_n a_o prelatical_a bishop_n and_o that_o the_o reason_n why_o he_o make_v no_o plain_a mention_n of_o he_o but_o be_v force_v himself_o to_o interpose_v in_o procure_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n be_v the_o prejudices_fw-la a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o presbyter_n and_o people_n have_v conceive_v against_o their_o bishop_n who_o be_v ãâã_d unable_a by_o his_o own_o authority_n to_o allay_v the_o heat_n and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d they_o and_o for_o that_o cause_n be_v advise_v by_o clement_n voluntary_o to_o surrender_v his_o office_n and_o depart_v it_o be_v not_o a_o uncommon_a thing_n for_o author_n to_o comprehend_v three_o order_n of_o church-officer_n in_o two_o word_n or_o at_o least_o to_o mention_v two_o order_n only_o when_o yet_o they_o acknowledge_v a_o three_o this_o dichotomy_n be_v to_o be_v meet_v with_o in_o the_o scripture_n itself_o the_o three_o officer_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n be_v frequent_o express_v by_o priest_n and_o ãâã_d wherein_o ãâã_d highpriest_n who_o without_o controversy_n be_v a_o three_o be_v include_v ãâã_d himself_o in_o this_o epistle_n take_v notice_n that_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n come_v out_o of_o abraham_n 41._o ãâã_d mean_v the_o highpriest_n also_o as_o i_o presume_v will_v not_o be_v deny_v for_o he_o also_o come_v out_o of_o the_o loin_n of_o abraham_n clemens_n alexand_n in_o his_o ãâã_d cite_v by_o mr._n o._n speak_v there_o only_o of_o the_o two_o order_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n epist._n and_o yet_o elsewhere_o he_o reckon_v up_o express_o the_o bishop_n also_o with_o the_o other_o two_o in_o the_o former_a place_n ãâã_d presbyter_n must_v comprehend_v bishop_n at_o least_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v exclude_v though_o the_o author_n there_o omit_v they_o so_o ãâã_d in_o his_o apologetic_n comprehend_v bishop_n and_o presbyter_n under_o one_o common_a name_n seniores_fw-la yet_o he_o ãâã_d distinguish_v the_o three_o order_n in_o lib._n de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la c._n 17._o optatus_n milevit_fw-la a_o 66._o hundred_o time_n over_o acknowledge_v the_o three_o order_n yet_o once_o he_o content_v himself_o to_o express_v they_o in_o two_o word_n only_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n there_o be_v say_v he_o in_o the_o place_n cite_v on_o the_o margin_n quatuor_fw-la genera_fw-la ãâã_d four_o order_n of_o man_n in_o the_o church_n but_o he_o sum_v they_o up_o in_o three_o word_n viz._n bishop_n deacon_n and_o the_o faithful_a it_o may_v deserve_v observation_n that_o at_o this_o time_n of_o the_o day_n and_o with_o optatus_n ordinary_o bishop_n signify_v the_o prelate_n of_o a_o church_n shall_v i_o then_o be_v allow_v hence_o to_o infer_v there_o be_v either_o no_o presbyter_n or_o no_o prelatical_a bishop_n according_a to_o this_o father_n judgement_n because_o forsooth_o he_o here_o mention_n they_o not_o distinct_o it_o can_v be_v fair_o collect_v hence_o as_o every_o one_o ãâã_d this_o be_v manifest_a that_o optatus_n in_o those_o two_o word_n bishop_n and_o deacon_n must_v understand_v the_o three_o order_n bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n else_o he_o lose_v one_o of_o his_o four_o order_n of_o man_n in_o the_o church_n beside_o say_v here_o sicut_fw-la supra_fw-la dixi_fw-la he_o refer_v we_o backward_o to_o p._n 16._o and_o p._n 51._o in_o both_o which_o place_n he_o mention_n ãâã_d bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n wherefore_o the_o premise_n consider_v it_o be_v reasonable_a to_o believe_v that_o clemens_n romanus_n likewise_o do_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n express_v the_o three_o office_n of_o the_o ãâã_d church_n in_o two_o word_n comprehend_v the_o prelate_n in_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n it_o ought_v not_o here_o to_o be_v forget_v what_o st._n chrysostom_n have_v observe_v ãâã_d of_o old_a be_v call_v bishop_n also_o and_o 1._o ãâã_d for_o in_o deed_n presbyter_n in_o some_o thing_n resemble_v both_o they_o minister_v like_o deacon_n unto_o the_o bishop-whilst_a he_o officiate_n and_o be_v subject_a unto_o he_o as_o the_o other_o be_v but_o they_o minister_v in_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bishop_n do_v and_o have_v under_o he_o the_o oversight_n of_o some_o part_n of_o the_o flock_n for_o which_o reason_n they_o may_v not_o incongruous_o be_v call_v bishop_n but_o blundel_n and_o his_o follower_n i_o remember_v to_o reconcile_v unto_o their_o own_o hypothesis_n the_o different_a way_n of_o the_o father_n reckon_v up_o the_o ministerial_a order_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n assert_n that_o sometime_o they_o conform_v their_o language_n to_o the_o scripture_n and_o apostolical_a age_n at_o other_o time_n to_o their_o own_o custom_n and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n in_o the_o former_a case_n they_o use_v the_o dichotomy_n mention_v only_a presbyter_n or_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n in_o the_o latter_a they_o divide_v they_o into_o three_o rank_n bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o deacon_n but_o this_o device_n will_v not_o do_v their_o work_n and_o must_v be_v lay_v aside_o for_o the_o follow_a reason_n 1._o st._n cyprian_n against_o who_o testimony_n for_o episopacy_n this_o distinction_n be_v principal_o level_v and_o frame_v though_o he_o often_o fall_v into_o the_o dichotomy_n yet_o assert_n the_o divine_a right_n of_o bishop_n cum_fw-la 33._o hoc_fw-la igitur_fw-la sicut_fw-la omnis_fw-la actus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la per_fw-la eosdem_fw-la praepositos_fw-la gubernetur_fw-la divina_fw-la lege_fw-la fundatum_fw-la sit_fw-la the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n by_o bishop_n be_v say_v he_o found_v upon_o a_o divine_a law_n that_o the_o praepositi_fw-la here_o be_v mean_v bishop_n be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v of_o if_o we_o look_v backward_o unto_o the_o forego_n part_n of_o this_o epistle_n he_o begin_v it_o thus_o our_o lord_n who_o precept_n we_o ought_v to_o reverence_n and_o observe_v establish_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o church_n affair_n say_v etc._n etc._n and_o again_o he_o add_v hence_o the_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n and_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n pass_v through_o the_o course_n of_o ãâã_d and_o succession_n so_o that_o the_o church_n be_v establish_v on_o bishop_n and_o every_o act_n of_o the_o church_n be_v govern_v per_fw-la eosdem_fw-la praepositos_fw-la by_o the_o same_o praepositi_fw-la that_o be_v bishop_n if_o then_o bishop_n be_v by_o divine_a right_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o cyprian_a he_o must_v speak_v in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o apostolical_a age_n where_o the_o divine_a right_a end_n as_o well_o as_o his_o own_o when_o he_o reckon_v up_o the_o three_o distinct_a order_n of_o bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n but_o of_o this_o see_v more_o in_o mr._n dodwell_n 10_o cypr._n dissertation_n nor_o can_v these_o praepositi_fw-la and_o episcopi_fw-la be_v understand_v of_o presbyter_n for_o cyp._n whatever_o any_o may_v fancy_v of_o praepositi_fw-la never_o call_v presbyter_n bishop_n nor_o can_v he_o conformable_o to_o his_o own_o write_n he_o profess_v thus_o of_o himself_o and_o other_o bishop_n neq_n 229._o enim_fw-la quisquam_fw-la nostrum_fw-la episcopum_fw-la se_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la constituit_fw-la none_o of_o we_o make_v himself_o a_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n but_o if_o the_o presbyter_n be_v bishop_n than_o cyprian_n be_v a_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n 2._o optatus_n in_o the_o same_o breath_n in_o one_o
one_o for_o bishop_n another_o for_o presbyter_n as_o our_o translation_n and_o the_o greek_a do_v but_o it_o have_v only_a kashishaa_n the_o word_n in_o chaldee_n and_o in_o syriac_n signify_v presbyter_n from_o whence_o we_o be_v to_o conclude_v that_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o syriac_a translator_n bishop_n and_o priest_n though_o two_o word_n in_o the_o greek_a be_v nevertheless_o but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o species_n of_o church-officer_n and_o therefore_o express_v but_o by_o one_o word_n in_o the_o syriac_a translation_n which_o proper_o signify_v ãâã_d or_o elder_n first_o suppose_v all_o this_o true_a viz._n that_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n in_o scripture_n denote_v one_o and_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o church-officer_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o syriac_a translator_n who_o therefore_o describe_v they_o by_o one_o word_n only_o in_o their_o own_o language_n yet_o this_o hinder_v not_o but_o that_o there_o be_v another_o order_n of_o ãâã_d ruler_n superior_a to_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n thus_o much_o i_o take_v it_o have_v be_v abundant_o prove_v already_o in_o the_o tentamen_fw-la novum_n ãâã_d and_o titus_n be_v such_o church_n governor_n superior_a to_o the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n though_o not_o distinguish_v by_o any_o special_a and_o appropriate_a title_n so_o that_o if_o all_o mr._n o._n have_v here_o say_v and_o his_o deduction_n from_o it_o be_v true_a it_o will_v do_v he_o no_o service_n nor_o we_o any_o disadvantage_n in_o the_o present_a cause_n but._n be_v common_o invest_v with_o all_o those_o power_n which_o inferior_n have_v but_o inferior_n can_v pretend_v to_o all_o the_o power_n that_o superior_n have_v it_o be_v no_o wonder_n therefore_o to_o i_o if_o bishop_n be_v sometime_o style_v presbyter_n since_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o in_o scripture_n and_o bishop_n oftentimes_o in_o ãâã_d be_v so_o call_v therefore_o three_o mr._n o._n have_v not_o get_v the_o least_o advantage_n of_o we_o by_o start_v this_o criticism_n about_o the_o syriac_a translation_n but_o rather_o have_v lose_v ground_n so_o far_o as_o these_o translator_n authority_n will_v go_v for_o because_o he_o think_v it_o a_o good_a argument_n on_o his_o side_n that_o the_o syriac_a translator_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o he_o imagine_v use_v not_o two_o word_n for_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n but_o one_o only_o sc_n kashishaa_n it_o follow_v that_o because_o it_o be_v find_v to_o the_o contrary_a that_o they_o use_v several_a other_o word_n none_o of_o which_o be_v employ_v to_o express_v presbyter_n by_o this_o aught_o to_o be_v take_v as_o a_o good_a proof_n on_o our_o side_n that_o even_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n there_o be_v a_o distinction_n between_o the_o order_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o that_o of_o a_o presbyter_n if_o mr._n oh_o own_o way_n of_o reason_v have_v any_o force_n in_o it_o final_o if_o the_o syriac_a version_n be_v so_o very_a ancient_n as_o mr._n o._n think_v one_o may_v believe_v ignatius_n to_o have_v have_v a_o hand_n in_o the_o translation_n for_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n of_o syria_n and_o who_o then_o can_v imagine_v the_o translator_n to_o have_v somuch_a as_o dream_v of_o the_o identity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n chap._n v._o concern_v the_o church-government_n in_o the_o north-west_n part_n of_o scotland_n there_o be_v a_o argument_n for_o the_o government_n of_o church_n and_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n draw_v from_o the_o scot_n who_o be_v convert_v to_o christianity_n about_o the_o year_n 200._o as_o be_v think_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o tertullian_n have_v no_o bishop_n among_o they_o but_o be_v rule_v by_o mere_a presbyter_n only_o and_o that_o for_o ãâã_d century_n after_o the_o dissenter_n argument_n ground_v on_o this_o tradition_n be_v more_o at_o large_a thus_o according_a as_o it_o be_v urge_v by_o mr._n baxter_n their_o oracle_n as_o i_o find_v in_o the_o history_n call_v a_o account_n of_o church-government_n etc._n etc._n by_o my_o late_a lord_n bishop_n of_o worcester_n first_o mr._n baxter_n tell_v we_o of_o a_o sort_n of_o man_n call_v culdee_n that_o first_o guide_v the_o affair_n of_o religion_n in_o scotland_n long_o before_o the_o come_n of_o palladius_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o bishop_n but_o monk_n and_o presbyter_n second_o that_o these_o culdee_n choose_v some_o few_o among_o themselves_o to_o be_v as_o governor_n to_o the_o rest_n who_o writer_n call_v scotorum_fw-la episcopos_fw-la bishop_n of_o the_o scot_n three_o that_o these_o new_a find_v bishop_n of_o the_o scot_n have_v only_o the_o name_n of_o bishop_n about_o which_o he_o mr._n baxter_n will_v not_o contend_v with_o the_o episcopal_a party_n by_o the_o way_n nor_o will_v i_o contend_v about_o the_o name_n bishop_n but_o mr._n baxter_n acknowledge_v that_o they_o be_v as_o ãâã_d to_o the_o rest._n and_o here_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v more_o than_o the_o name_n only_o of_o bishop_n four_o that_o afterward_o ãâã_d begin_v a_o high_a sort_n of_o bishop_n but_o the_o culdee_n still_o keep_v up_o the_o great_a part_n against_o he_o five_o that_o columbanus_n his_o monastery_n in_o the_o isle_n of_o hylas_n restore_v the_o culdee_n strength_n and_o the_o monk_n out_o of_o that_o island_n be_v the_o most_o prevail_a clergy_n of_o scotland_n who_o have_v no_o proper_a episcopal_a ordination_n but_o bare_a election_n and_o ordination_n of_o presbyter_n this_o piece_n of_o history_n be_v just_a ãâã_d all_o over_o one_o will_v guess_v it_o be_v eutychius_n his_o mark_n who_o first_o convert_v these_o northern_a britain_n and_o settle_v the_o government_n like_v unto_o that_o at_o ãâã_d but_o against_o all_o this_o i_o have_v in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o ask_v who_o in_o good_a earnest_n convert_v these_o northern_a britain_n mr._n o._n think_v it_o be_v the_o southern_a britain_n i_o will_v take_v he_o at_o his_o word_n and_o then_o demand_v whether_o it_o be_v not_o most_o reasonable_a to_o believe_v that_o the_o northern_a britain_n do_v with_o the_o faith_n receive_v the_o same_o church-government_n as_o the_o southern_a have_v who_o converted'em_n and_o that_o the_o southern_a britain_n have_v bishop_n among_o they_o from_o the_o beginning_n be_v out_o of_o doubt_n and_o confess_v by_o the_o elder_n and_o messenger_n of_o the_o congregational_a church_n meet_v at_o the_o ãâã_d october_n the_o 12_o 1658._o in_o the_o preface_n of_o their_o declaration_n that_o its_o true_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o public_a and_o open_a profession_n of_o presbytery_n or_o ãâã_d this_o nation_n have_v be_v a_o stranger_n to_o each_o way_n it_o be_v possible_a ever_o since_o it_o have_v be_v christian_n i._n e._n till_o about_o 1640._o it_o be_v without_o all_o doubt_n to_o i_o that_o the_o southern_a britain_n very_o early_o receive_v the_o christian_a faith_n and_o perhaps_o in_o the_o apostle_n day_n and_o by_o st._n paul_n too_o as_o my_o ãâã_d lord_n of_o worcester_n have_v make_v very_o probable_a 1._o both_o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o many_o father_n and_o some_o considerable_a conjecture_n of_o ãâã_d own_o but_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o north_n and_o north-west_n part_n of_o britain_n beyond_o edinburgh_n receive_v the_o faith_n before_o columbanus_n settle_v in_o the_o island_n of_o hylas_n or_o jona_n our_o ãâã_d will_v have_v it_o that_o these_o north_n people_n become_v christian_n at_o least_o about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 200._o and_o from_o that_o time_n until_o ãâã_d come_v among_o they_o be_v govern_v by_o monk_n and_o culdee_n who_o be_v presbyter_n only_o this_o opinion_n be_v ground_v chief_o on_o a_o know_a testimony_n out_o of_o ãâã_d 7._o who_o write_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n have_v then_o ãâã_d unto_o ãâã_d loca_fw-la romanis_n ãâã_d and_o these_o place_n must_v needsbe_fw-mi the_o north-west_n part_n of_o ãâã_d beyond_o edinburgh_n which_o the_o roman_n have_v ãâã_d subdue_v now_o tertullian_n flourish_v about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o second_o century_n or_o beginning_n of_o the_o three_o ans._n this_o passage_n of_o ãâã_d reach_v not_o the_o point_n it_o can_v be_v hence_o deduce_v what_o be_v the_o government_n of_o that_o church_n suppose_v those_o northern_a part_n be_v thus_o soon_o convert_v ãâã_d may_v have_v be_v ãâã_d up_o there_o for_o any_o thing_n we_o know_v or_o find_v prove_v and_o it_o be_v likely_a it_o be_v so_o if_o as_o mr._n o._n ãâã_d they_o receive_v christianity_n from_o the_o southern_a ãâã_d as_o i_o observe_v before_o but_o let_v we_o look_v more_o narrow_o into_o ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o some_o part_n belong_v to_o the_o ãâã_d be_v then_o become_v ãâã_d ãâã_d those_o who_o have_v not_o yet_o submit_v their_o ãâã_d unto_o the_o ãâã_d ãâã_d but_o who_o ãâã_d be_v be_v the_o question_n some_o think_v they_o be_v the_o britain_n next_o beyond_o the_o pict_n wall_n who_o be_v not_o conquer_a by_o the_o roman_n
advise_v they_o to_o call_v fortunatianus_n before_o they_o to_o try_v and_o to_o condemn_v or_o depose_v he_o but_o only_o to_o warn_v the_o church_n of_o assurae_n to_o think_v no_o more_o of_o their_o former_a bishop_n who_o have_v ãâã_d into_o idolatry_n and_o be_v therefore_o no_o bishop_n at_o all_o and_o this_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o rule_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o of_o africa_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n have_v former_o make_v as_o the_o learned_a ãâã_d have_v observe_v that_o such_o as_o have_v sacrifice_v shall_v be_v deprive_v 46._o of_o their_o ordination_n and_o sacerdotal_a honour_n and_o upon_o their_o repentance_n shall_v be_v admit_v unto_o lay_v communion_n only_o the_o observation_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o 67_o the_o epistle_n of_o which_o i_o be_o to_o speak_v by_o and_o by_o in_o these_o word_n jam_fw-la pridem_fw-la nobiscum_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la omnibus_fw-la omnino_fw-la episcopis_fw-la in_o toto_fw-la mundo_fw-la constitutis_fw-la etiam_fw-la collega_n noster_fw-la cornelius_n sacerdos_n pacisicus_fw-la ac_fw-la iustùs_fw-la ac_fw-la martyrio_fw-la honoratus_fw-la decreverit_fw-la ejusmodi_fw-la homines_fw-la ad_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la quidem_fw-la agendam_fw-la posse_fw-la admitti_fw-la ab_fw-la ordinatione_fw-la autem_fw-la ãâã_d atque_fw-la sacerdotali_fw-la honore_fw-la prohiberi_fw-la it_o be_v not_o then_o to_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o as_o the_o presbyter_n and_o the_o people_n of_o a_o diocese_n when_o it_o be_v notorious_a that_o their_o bishop_n have_v apostatise_v and_o fall_v into_o idolatry_n and_o for_o some_o time_n desert_v they_o and_o another_o be_v substitute_v in_o his_o place_n which_o be_v i_o presume_v the_o case_n before_o we_o have_v a_o power_n by_o the_o law_n of_o reason_n and_o of_o scripture_n too_o to_o refuse_v he_o when_o he_o offer_v to_o obtrude_v himself_o again_o upon_o they_o so_o more_o especial_o since_o there_o be_v a_o solemn_a ãâã_d ecclesiastical_a law_n provide_v in_o the_o case_n but_o i_o demand_v of_o mr._n o._n to_o give_v i_o a_o instance_n when_o ever_o the_o presbyter_n and_o people_n call_v their_o bishop_n into_o judgement_n before_o they_o censure_v and_o rebuke_v acquit_v or_o condemn_v he_o either_o when_o the_o fact_n be_v in_o question_n or_o the_o matter_n object_v against_o he_o be_v in_o controversy_n about_o its_o lawfulness_n until_o mr._n o._n produce_v a_o instance_n of_o one_o of_o these_o kind_n he_o be_v far_o short_a of_o prove_v that_o presbyter_n and_o people_n may_v receive_v a_o accusation_n against_o their_o bishop_n as_o timothy_n have_v power_n to_o do_v against_o elder_n for_o timothy_n have_v power_n to_o receive_v a_o accusation_n upon_o information_n of_o witness_n and_o to_o rebuke_v the_o offender_n according_o and_o if_o need_n be_v to_o reject_v he_o titus_n 3._o 10._o we_o be_v then_o safe_a as_o yet_o notwithstanding_o any_o thing_n st._n cyprian_n have_v write_v in_o this_o epistle_n the_o case_n of_o basilides_n and_o martialis_n be_v much_o what_o the_o same_o as_o that_o of_o fortunatianus_n and_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o 67_o the_o epistle_n of_o st._n cyprian_n it_o be_v write_v by_o st._n cyprian_n in_o his_o own_o name_n and_o in_o the_o oxon._n name_n of_o 36_o other_o african_a bishop_n to_o felix_n presbyter_n and_o the_o people_n of_o leon_n and_o asturia_n also_o unto_o lelius_n deacon_n and_o the_o people_n of_o emerita_n all_o in_o spain_n in_o answer_n to_o a_o letter_n of_o sabinus_n successor_n to_o basilides_n and_o of_o another_o felix_n successor_n of_o martialis_n who_o the_o bishop_n call_v coepiscopos_fw-la nostros_fw-la our_o fellow_n bishop_n what_o may_v fair_o be_v collect_v from_o this_o epistle_n follow_v as_o first_o it_o may_v from_o this_o epistle_n be_v gather_v that_o basilides_n and_o martialis_n after_o they_o have_v be_v prove_v guilty_a of_o idolatry_n be_v depose_v from_o their_o bishopric_n second_o that_o sabinus_n and_o felix_n be_v substitute_v in_o their_o room_n three_o that_o the_o idolatrous_a bishop_n be_v deprive_v and_o the_o new_a one_o choose_v and_o ordain_v by_o the_o provincial_a bishop_n in_o the_o presence_n and_o with_o the_o concurrence_n or_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n for_o thus_o cyprian_n speak_v the_o people_n have_v power_n either_o of_o choose_v good_a bishop_n or_o refuse_v unworthy_a one_o again_o the_o people_n ought_v to_o separate_v from_o a_o wicked_a bishop_n that_o episcopal_a ordination_n ought_v to_o be_v celebrate_v sub_fw-la populi_fw-la assistentis_fw-la conscientia_fw-la with_o the_o knowledge_n and_o assent_n of_o the_o people_n present_a to_o the_o end_n that_o by_o the_o people_n the_o crime_n of_o bad_a man_n may_v be_v detect_v the_o merit_n of_o good_a man_n may_v be_v testify_v and_o so_o a_o right_a and_o regular_a ordination_n may_v be_v make_v which_o shall_v have_v be_v examine_v by_o the_o judgement_n and_o suffrage_n of_o all_o st._n cyprian_n go_v on_o that_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v which_o be_v hold_v among_o we_o in_o africa_n and_o almost_o in_o all_o province_n that_o to_o the_o end_n ordination_n be_v right_o make_v all_o the_o next_o bishop_n of_o the_o same_o province_n meet_v together_o with_o the_o people_n for_o who_o the_o bishop_n be_v design_v and_o let_v the_o bishop_n be_v choose_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o people_n which_o know_v and_o have_v be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o life_n and_o conversation_n of_o the_o candidate_n this_o we_o understand_v have_v be_v do_v among_o you_o in_o the_o ordination_n of_o sabinus_n our_o colleague_n how_o that_o the_o bishopric_n be_v give_v he_o and_o hand_n lay_v on_o he_o with_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o whole_a fraternity_n and_o by_o the_o judgement_n or_o decree_n of_o the_o bishop_n who_o be_v present_a at_o the_o meeting_n and_o who_o have_v send_v their_o letter_n of_o consent_n concern_v the_o bishop_n to_o be_v choose_v that_o which_o i_o will_v deduce_v from_o all_o this_o be_v that_o because_o the_o power_n of_o choose_v and_o ordain_v a_o bishop_n be_v lodge_v in_o the_o provincial_a bishop_n together_o with_o the_o people_n of_o the_o diocese_n it_o must_v follow_v that_o the_o power_n of_o deprive_v consequent_o of_o receive_v accusation_n against_o the_o bishop_n be_v ãâã_d in_o the_o same_o provincial_a bishop_n and_o and_o the_o people_n of_o the_o diocese_n and_o if_o this_o be_v so_o then_o basilides_n and_o martialis_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o provincial_a bishop_n in_o the_o presence_n and_o with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n and_o so_o mr._n oh_o inference_n from_o this_o story_n will_v not_o hold_v sc_n that_o the_o presbyter_n and_o people_n may_v receive_v a_o accusation_n against_o their_o bishop_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o a_o judiciary_n way_n moreover_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o very_o probable_a by_o some_o passage_n in_o this_o epistle_n that_o the_o people_n power_n in_o choose_v or_o reject_v their_o bishop_n consist_v only_o in_o the_o testimony_n which_o they_o give_v to_o the_o provincial_a bishop_n concern_v the_o life_n and_o conversation_n of_o the_o bishop_n propound_v by_o the_o provincial_a bishop_n to_o succeed_v i_o gather_v this_o from_o those_o word_n ãâã_d ipsa_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d vel_fw-la eligendi_fw-la dignos_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la vel_fw-la indignos_fw-la recusandi_fw-la the_o which_o be_v more_o clear_o explain_v in_o the_o same_o paragraph_n where_o cyprian_n add_v ordinationes_fw-la sacerdotales_fw-la non_fw-la nisi_fw-la sub_fw-la populi_fw-la assistentis_fw-la conscientia_fw-la fieri_fw-la oportere_fw-la ut_fw-la plebe_fw-la present_n vel_fw-la detegantur_fw-la malorum_fw-la crimina_fw-la vel_fw-la bonorum_fw-la merita_fw-la predicentur_fw-la ordination_n ought_v to_o be_v with_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o people_n that_o the_o crime_n of_o bad_a man_n may_v be_v discover_v and_o that_o the_o desert_n of_o good_a man_n may_v be_v make_v know_v unto_o ãâã_d provincial_a bishop_n who_o be_v indeed_o the_o proper_a elector_n the_o same_o be_v short_o after_o again_o explain_v episcopus_fw-la deligatur_fw-la plebe_n present_n quae_fw-la singulorum_fw-la vitam_fw-la plenissime_fw-la novit_fw-la &_o ãâã_d actum_fw-la de_fw-la ejus_fw-la conversatione_fw-la perspexit_fw-la let_v the_o bishop_n he_o choose_v by_o the_o next_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n the_o people_n be_v present_a who_o know_v the_o life_n of_o each_o candidate_n and_o see_v every_o man_n work_n and_o conversation_n so_o that_o the_o people_n business_n seem_v but_o to_o have_v be_v only_o to_o give_v testimony_n for_o or_o against_o the_o candidate_n for_o the_o bishopric_n whilst_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o provincial_a bishop_n choose_v and_o ordain_v he_o however_o this_o be_v it_o be_v manifest_a from_o the_o whole_a that_o the_o presbyter_n and_o the_o people_n do_v not_o without_o the_o provincial_a bishop_n by_o virtue_n of_o their_o own_o sole_a and_o proper_a power_n hear_v or_o receive_v accusation_n in_o a_o judiciary_n way_n much_o less_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o give_v sentence_n upon_o their_o own_o bishop_n which_o be_v
patriarch_n nor_o have_v ever_o adhere_v to_o melitius_fw-la they_o thus_o then_o far_o write_v to_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n concern_v these_o latter_a and_o regular_a clergy_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d etc._n etc._n but_o as_o for_o those_o who_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o through_o your_o prayer_n have_v be_v find_v in_o no_o schism_n but_o have_v ever_o stand_v firm_a and_o unmoveable_a in_o the_o catholic_n church_n it_o please_v the_o holy_a synod_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v power_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d to_o point_v out_o and_o to_o give_v up_o the_o name_n of_o ãâã_d as_o be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d worthy_a to_o be_v of_o the_o clergy_n and_o in_o short_a to_o do_v all_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o constitution_n which_o be_v the_o passage_n misrepresent_v by_o mr._n o._n and_o mr._n baxter_n wherein_o the_o synod_n confirm_v to_o they_o their_o ancient_a right_n and_o privilege_n have_v give_v i_o hope_v a_o exact_a account_n of_o this_o latter_a part_n of_o that_o epistle_n let_v we_o now_o see_v whether_o mr._n baxter_n or_o mr._n o._n have_v do_v so_o to_o which_o end_n i_o observe_v that_o here_o be_v not_o one_o word_n of_o presbyter_n at_o least_o not_o of_o presbyter_n ordain_v and_o ãâã_d of_o all_o of_o presbyter_n who_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o melitius_fw-la nor_o last_o which_o be_v the_o thing_n mr._n o._n aim_v at_o of_o presbyter_n ordain_v minister_n 1._o they_o speak_v not_o of_o presbyter_n that_o be_v not_o in_o particular_a and_o express_o of_o they_o alone_o as_o be_v manifeft_v to_o any_o one_o that_o have_v his_o eye_n in_o his_o head_n but_o only_o in_o general_n of_o such_o as_o have_v not_o be_v engage_v in_o the_o melitian_n schism_n these_o sure_o must_v be_v bishop_n as_o well_o as_o presbyter_n or_o deacon_n the_o truth_n be_v they_o include_v all_o the_o three_o order_n and_o that_o be_v the_o reason_n in_o this_o whole_a epistle_n they_o name_v no_o one_o of_o they_o express_o mean_v to_o confirm_v they_o all_o as_o well_o bishop_n as_o presbyter_n that_o have_v stick_v close_o to_o alexander_n in_o their_o ancient_n respective_a power_n and_o ãâã_d 2._o much_o more_o they_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o ordain_v power_n of_o presbyter_n mr._n o._n at_o least_o ought_v not_o to_o say_v so_o for_o what_o then_o will_v become_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o father_n ãâã_d who_o assert_n that_o alexander_n or_o the_o nicene_n council_n first_o deprive_v they_o of_o it_o what_o do_v this_o synod_n or_o alexander_n both_o deprive_v they_o of_o it_o and_o confirm_v it_o to_o they_o that_o can_v be_v either_o then_o eutychius_n be_v out_o in_o his_o story_n or_o mr._n o._n be_v a_o little_a mistake_v about_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o nicene_n father_n beside_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d do_v not_o ãâã_d to_o ordain_v but_o the_o ãâã_d as_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o one_o word_n to_o put_v up_o the_o name_n of_o the_o candidate_n for_o holy_a order_n and_o sozomen_n in_o his_o account_n of_o this_o fact_n use_v that_o single_a word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d to_o choose_v socrates_n express_v it_o in_o two_o word_n as_o valesius_fw-la have_v observe_v exegetical_a of_o one_o another_o it_o be_v usual_a for_o author_n to_o embellish_v their_o write_n and_o give_v they_o a_o grateful_a emphasis_n by_o a_o variety_n and_o redundancy_n of_o expression_n no_o body_n at_o this_o diftance_n of_o time_n can_v tell_v all_o the_o custom_n of_o this_o church_n and_o what_o honorary_a ãâã_d the_o presbyter_n may_v have_v at_o the_o public_a ãâã_d however_o this_o be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v not_o to_o be_v expound_v ordain_v and_o yet_o admit_v that_o it_o signify_v so_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o understand_v the_o passage_n of_o presbyter_n ordain_v it_o may_v as_o well_o be_v presume_v to_o be_v intend_v of_o bishop_n ordain_v there_o be_v no_o circumstance_n that_o limit_n the_o sense_n unto_o presbyter_n and_o as_o for_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d these_o word_n be_v speak_v of_o those_o that_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v and_o not_o of_o the_o ordainer_n and_o may_v as_o well_o be_v take_v to_o mean_v such_o as_o be_v think_v worthy_a to_o be_v bishop_n as_o those_o who_o be_v ãâã_d worthy_a to_o ãâã_d make_v presbyter_n for_o in_o the_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a writer_n we_o read_v of_o the_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d but_o least_o of_o all_o three_o do_v the_o nicene_n father_n speak_v here_o of_o the_o melitian_n presbyter_n because_o the_o melitian_n have_v not_o according_a to_o the_o character_n here_o give_v of_o these_o person_n stand_v firm_a and_o unmoveable_a in_o the_o catholic_n ãâã_d but_o have_v be_v engage_v in_o the_o melitian_n schism_n nor_o 4._o do_v the_o synod_n speak_v of_o ordain_v minister_n if_o by_o minister_n our_o adversary_n understand_v presbyter_n which_o title_n they_o seem_v at_o this_o day_n to_o affect_v and_o usurp_v to_o themselves_o though_o it_o general_o denote_v all_o the_o three_o order_n these_o four_o mistake_n have_v mr._n o._n commit_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o account_n of_o the_o nicene_n synod_n before_o i_o proceed_v to_o consider_v what_o he_o far_o advance_v on_o this_o occasion_n i_o will_v only_o note_v that_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n have_v power_n over_o the_o bishop_n and_o whole_a church_n of_o egypt_n with_o its_o appendage_n long_o before_o the_o synod_n of_o nice_a that_o they_o have_v then_o power_n over_o these_o church_n appear_v plain_o from_o this_o epistle_n which_o in_o several_a place_n speak_v of_o they_o as_o subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n that_o the_o alexandrian_a patriarch_n have_v power_n over_o they_o before_o the_o patriarch_n alexander_n be_v evident_a from_o the_o melitian_n schism_n which_o have_v not_o be_v a_o sinful_a schism_n if_o peter_n and_o ãâã_d alexander_n predecessor_n have_v not_o have_v jurisdiction_n over_o they_o that_o this_o power_n of_o the_o patriarch_n be_v very_o ancient_a be_v also_o manifest_a from_o the_o 6_o canon_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n which_o begin_v thus_o let_v the_o ancient_a custom_n obtain_v which_o be_v in_o egypt_n libya_n and_o pentapolis_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n have_v power_n over_o all_o these_o province_n which_o show_v last_o the_o extent_n of_o their_o power_n through_o ãâã_d libya_n and_o ãâã_d and_o that_o it_o have_v be_v a_o ancient_a custom_n that_o be_v long_o before_o alexander_n and_o the_o synod_n of_o nice_a yea_o before_o peter_n and_o achillas_n thus_o much_o be_v say_v for_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o that_o letter_n of_o the_o nicence_n father_n let_v we_o now_o proceed_v to_o examine_v what_o mr._n o._n have_v infer_v from_o the_o last_o mention_v passage_n according_a to_o mr._n baxter_n lamentable_a translation_n of_o it_o mr._n o._n argue_v if_o any_o say_v the_o meaning_n be_v that_o these_o presbyter_n shall_v ordain_v and_o govern_v with_o bishop_n but_o not_o with_o out_o they_o it_o be_v grant_v for_o the_o decree_n refer_v to_o the_o ecclesiastica_fw-la instituta_fw-la but_o this_o show_v that_o ordination_n belong_v to_o the_o presbyter_n office_n and_o consequent_o be_v no_o nullity_n though_o a_o irregularity_n as_o to_o the_o canon_n when_o it_o be_v do_v by_o they_o alone_o his_o meaning_n be_v as_o i_o take_v he_o that_o presbyter_n have_v a_o inherent_a and_o intrinsic_a power_n to_o ordain_v but_o that_o the_o nicene_n father_n have_v by_o their_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n restrain_v that_o power_n so_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v exert_v but_o with_o the_o bishop_n that_o when_o the_o presbyter_n do_v ordain_v without_o bishop_n it_o be_v only_o a_o irregularity_n ãâã_d breach_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n not_o a_o nullity_n but_o to_o this_o i_o reply_v 1._o that_o the_o nicence_n father_n as_o have_v already_o be_v observe_v speak_v not_o of_o presbyter_n only_o but_o of_o all_o the_o three_o order_n bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n who_o be_v hereby_o every_o one_o of_o they_o allow_v to_o do_v what_o proper_o belong_v to_o their_o own_o order_n according_a to_o the_o ancient_a custom_n and_o constitution_n of_o that_o church_n 2._o that_o therefore_o suppose_v their_o meaning_n to_o be_v what_o mr._n o._n will_v have_v it_o that_o presbyter_n in_o particular_a according_a to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n shall_v ordain_v with_o the_o bishop_n and_o not_o without_o they_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n alone_o without_o bishop_n be_v vallid_a and_o only_o a_o irregularity_n because_o it_o may_v with_o as_o good_a reason_n be_v hence_o conclude_v that_o the_o presbyter_n power_n to_o ordain_v with_o the_o bishop_n belong_v to_o
deacon_n at_o mareota_n they_o all_o then_o look_v upon_o ischyras_n as_o ordain_v by_o a_o presbyter_n and_o for_o that_o reason_n his_o ordination_n null_a for_o so_o 2._o it_o be_v express_o record_v colluthus_n die_v a_o prebyter_n therefore_o all_o his_o ordination_n be_v void_a and_o all_o ordain_v by_o he_o in_o the_o schism_n be_v reduce_v into_o the_o order_n of_o laic_n say_v the_o synodical_a letter_n of_o the_o alexandrian_a father_n ischyras_n be_v no_o presbyter_n for_o he_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o catholic_n presbyter_n colluthus_n so_o that_o by_o consequence_n all_o ordain_v by_o he_o go_v back_o into_o their_o former_a place_n and_o ischyras_n appear_v a_o laic_a say_v the_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n at_o mareota_n but_o it_o will_v be_v object_v that_o the_o word_n in_o the_o alexandrian_a synod_n be_v all_o ordain_v by_o colluthus_n in_o schism_n become_v laic_n imply_v by_o those_o word_n ãâã_d schism_n that_o therefore_o his_o ordination_n be_v void_a not_o because_o colluthus_n be_v a_o presbyter_n but_o because_o his_o ordination_n be_v schismatical_a ans._n 1._o it_o be_v very_o true_a in_o fact_n that_o all_o colluthus_n his_o ordination_n be_v schismatical_a yet_o this_o be_v not_o the_o proper_a and_o immediate_a reason_n of_o their_o nullity_n but_o only_o mention_v as_o a_o circumstance_n which_o aggravate_v his_o crime_n the_o true_a reaon_n be_v assign_v in_o the_o former_a clause_n of_o that_o period_n colluthus_n be_v a_o presbyter_n die_v therefore_o all_o his_o ordination_n be_v void_a viz._n because_o he_o die_v a_o presbyter_n and_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n those_o ordain_v by_o he_o be_v mere_a laic_n 2._o schism_n if_o it_o be_v one_o reason_n of_o the_o nullity_n of_o colluthus_n his_o ordination_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o the_o only_a one_o for_o another_o be_v because_o colluthus_n die_v a_o presbyter_n 3._o i_o do_v confess_v the_o alexandrian_a father_n prosecute_v the_o melitian_n with_o the_o utmost_a rigour_n declare_v all_o their_o ordination_n without_o exception_n utter_o void_a so_o that_o such_o as_o be_v schismatical_o ordain_v be_v universal_o command_v to_o be_v what_o they_o be_v before_o but_o the_o nicene_n father_n come_v to_o a_o better_a temper_n and_o in_o some_o degree_n confirm_v the_o schismatical_a ordination_n that_o be_v such_o as_o be_v mere_o schismatical_a and_o yet_o ischyras_n be_v not_o permit_v to_o taste_v of_o this_o favour_n why_o so_o why_o because_o there_o be_v another_o fatal_a blot_n in_o his_o escocheon_n which_o can_v never_o be_v wipe_v out_o viz._n he_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o a_o presbyter_n only_o 4._o it_o be_v a_o great_a mistake_n to_o think_v that_o schism_n must_v needs_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o breach_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n only_o there_o be_v schism_n in_o depart_v from_o some_o scripture_n or_o divine_a rule_n which_o not_o immediate_o appertain_v to_o the_o fundamental_o and_o essence_n of_o religion_n denominate_v the_o person_n not_o apostate_n or_o heretic_n but_o erroneous_a and_o ãâã_d only_o if_o any_o of_o the_o believer_n at_o antioch_n have_v presume_v to_o eat_v blood_n contrary_a to_o the_o apostolical_a decree_n conclude_v on_o at_o jerusalem_n he_o have_v be_v doubtless_o a_o schismatic_a thus_o we_o reckon_v the_o dissenter_n schismatic_n as_o depart_v from_o the_o divine_a apostolical_a constitution_n of_o episcopacy_n colluthus_n a_o presbyter_n ordain_v ischyras_n do_v it_o in_o schism_n true_a but_o it_o be_v such_o a_o schism_n as_o contravened_a a_o divine_a law_n and_o so_o the_o alexandrian_a father_n think_v for_o any_o thing_n i_o see_v to_o the_o contrary_a when_o they_o condemn_v his_o schismatical_a ordination_n as_o null_a in_o themselves_o for_o sure_o that_o which_o be_v do_v against_o a_o divine_a law_n and_o such_o be_v schismatical_a ordination_n schism_n be_v a_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v in_o its_o self_n null_a and_o of_o no_o effect_n 5._o we_o ought_v to_o distinguish_v between_o the_o law_n its_o self_n and_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n declare_v against_o the_o breach_n of_o that_o law_n the_o law_n may_v be_v of_o divine_a appointment_n though_o the_o censure_n be_v mere_o ecclesiastical_a st._n paul_n have_v give_v we_o a_o canon_n that_o a_o bishop_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v a_o striker_n 3_o but_o deposition_n for_o this_o fault_n be_v pure_o ecclesiastical_a not_o a_o apostolical_a penalty_n in_o like_a manner_n a_o presbyter_n as_o colluthus_n ordain_v without_o the_o bishop_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n be_v depose_v the_o fault_n be_v commit_v against_o a_o divine_a law_n though_o the_o punishment_n be_v ecclesiastical_a it_o be_v foolish_a and_o absurd_a to_o conclude_v that_o ordination_n by_o a_o ãâã_d be_v only_o a_o canonical_a irregularity_n because_o a_o synod_n declare_v it_o null_a or_o that_o ischyras_n his_o ordination_n be_v only_o irregular_a &_o uncanonical_a not_o unscriptural_a because_o his_o deposition_n be_v decree_v by_o the_o alexandrian_a synod_n as_o it_o be_v not_o the_o verdict_n of_o the_o jury_n nor_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o judge_n nor_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o criminal_a which_o proper_o and_o in_o intrinsic_a justice_n make_v he_o a_o murderer_n but_o the_o murder_n its_o self_n commit_v so_o it_o be_v not_o a_o synod_n solemn_a declaration_n which_o be_v pure_o ecclesiastical_a but_o the_o schism_n its_o self_n or_o a_o violation_n of_o some_o scripture_n la_o that_o make_v he_o a_o schismatic_a and_o subject_n he_o to_o ecclesiastical_a punishment_n blundel_n himself_o suspect_v as_o i_o believe_v that_o the_o whole_a fabric_n which_o he_o have_v with_o so_o much_o artifice_n and_o subtlety_n here_o raise_v in_o opposition_n to_o we_o will_v not_o stand_v be_v therefore_o content_a at_o least_o to_o grant_v that_o ischyras_n be_v for_o this_o one_o reason_n account_v a_o laic_a because_o he_o be_v ordain_v by_o a_o presbyter_n by_o colluthus_n a_o presbyter_n but_o say_v it_o do_v not_o hence_o follow_v that_o bishop_n alone_o have_v power_n give_v they_o by_o the_o apostle_n to_o ordain_v or_o that_o presbyter_n werenot_v original_o invest_v with_o that_o power_n and_o he_o add_v that_o nevertheless_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n be_v only_o a_o violation_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n which_o he_o endeavour_v to_o confirm_v from_o numerous_a instance_n of_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n by_o virtue_n whereof_o bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n be_v sometime_o depose_v for_o canonical_a irregularity_n ans._n this_o be_v a_o sorry_a shift_n and_o unworthy_a so_o learned_a a_o man_n for_o on_o the_o other_o side_n i_o be_o able_a to_o produce_v several_a canon_n and_o have_v already_o produce_v enough_o the_o matter_n of_o which_o canon_n be_v ground_v on_o scripture_n though_o reinforce_v by_o ecclesiastical_a penalty_n it_o will_v not_o follow_v then_o that_o because_o the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n forbid_v presbyter_n to_o ordain_v reserve_v that_o power_n to_o bishop_n upon_o pain_n of_o deposition_n or_o deprivation_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o this_o be_v not_o a_o divine_a appointment_n but_o ecclesiastical_a only_o for_o at_o this_o rate_n blondel_n may_v pretend_v the_o 27_o canon_n apostolical_a the_o matter_n of_o which_o be_v that_o a_o bishop_n must_v not_o be_v a_o striker_n be_v a_o mere_a ecclesiastical_a constitution_n which_o yet_o we_o know_v be_v one_o of_o st._n paul_n canon_n 1_o tim._n 3._o 3_o though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n we_o must_v confess_v that_o the_o deposition_n which_o be_v the_o penalty_n annex_v be_v pure_o ecclesiastical_a the_o matter_n of_o some_o church_n canon_n be_v often_o pure_o ecclesiastical_a as_o well_o as_o the_o penalty_n but_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o all_o be_v so_o for_o as_o the_o prince_n frequent_o cause_v old_a law_n to_o be_v observe_v reinforce_v they_o by_o proclamation_n so_o have_v synod_n do_v with_o ancient_a scripture_n law_n and_o rule_n in_o this_o case_n the_o king_n make_v not_o new_a law_n nor_o the_o synod_n new_a ecclesiastical_a canon_n the_o primitive_a christian_n be_v wont_a to_o explain_v and_o propound_v unto_o the_o church_n the_o belief_n of_o the_o great_a fundamental_a and_o essential_a article_n of_o christianity_n as_o that_o of_o the_o trinity_n against_o the_o arrian_n and_o that_o of_o grace_n against_o the_o pelagian_n upon_o pain_n just._n of_o deposition_n or_o excommunication_n we_o must_v not_o hence_o infer_v that_o these_o be_v only_o canonical_a not_o scripture_n truth_n because_o other_o of_o their_o definition_n be_v so_o in_o short_a the_o trial_n of_o the_o subject_a matter_n of_o church_n canon_n whether_o divine_a or_o pure_o ecclesiastical_a will_v depend_v on_o the_o scripture_n chief_o thither_o we_o be_v to_o resort_v for_o satisfaction_n and_o not_o fancy_v whatever_o have_v be_v reinforce_v by_o canon_n be_v mere_o canonical_a we_o have_v it_o be_v hope_v already_o thence_o clear_v that_o point_n about_o episcopal_a ordination_n that_o
his_o authority_n i_o meddle_v not_o with_o cite_v by_o mr._n o._n in_o these_o word_n presbyter_n ordination_n be_v account_v void_a by_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o canon_n in_o use_n then_o because_o ordination_n sine_fw-la titulo_fw-la be_v null_a council_n chalced._n can._n 6._o it_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o time_n we_o be_v now_o speak_v of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v hold_v a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o year_n after_o that_o of_o nice_n nor_o be_v the_o qualification_n of_o a_o title_n require_v till_o long_a after_o that_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n wherein_o also_o i_o meet_v not_o with_o a_o syllable_n of_o annul_v ordination_n for_o want_n of_o a_o title_n that_o 6_o can._n make_v void_a clancular_a ordination_n not_o give_v visible_o in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o church_n the_o rule_n which_o require_v the_o candidate_n to_o be_v offer_v unto_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n in_o the_o church_n and_o congregation_n be_v neglect_v as_o justellus_n have_v observe_v from_o the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o method_n of_o require_v title_n indeed_o grow_v up_o afterward_o which_o the_o canonist_n in_o the_o follow_a age_n gather_v from_o this_o six_o canon_n of_o chalcedon_n as_o fancy_v some_o analogy_n or_o agreement_n between_o they_o in_o reason_n as_o calvin_n jurid_a teach_v i_o however_o let_v we_o take_v the_o argument_n as_o it_o be_v propound_v ordination_n by_o presbyter_n be_v account_v void_a not_o in_o themselves_o but_o by_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o canon_n in_o use_n then_o how_o do_v this_o appear_v why_o because_o ordination_n sine_fw-la titulo_fw-la be_v null_n by_o the_o six_o canon_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o be_v just_a as_o if_o one_o shall_v pretend_v to_o prove_v the_o lord's-day_n not_o holy_a by_o divine_a appointment_n but_o by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n because_o the_o other_o holiday_n be_v not_o be_v it_o not_o possible_a the_o lord's-day_n may_v be_v holy_a by_o divine_a institution_n though_o good_a friday_n be_v not_o or_o that_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n may_v be_v null_a in_o themselves_o and_o by_o scripture_n though_o ordination_n sine_fw-la titulo_fw-la be_v uncanonical_a only_o but_o if_o mr._n o._n intend_v this_o only_a as_o the_o judgement_n of_o so_o learned_a a_o person_n as_o dr._n field_n i_o let_v it_o pass_v as_o such_o be_v no_o way_n oblige_v to_o account_v for_o the_o opinion_n of_o private_a doctor_n the_o reverend_a author_n of_o the_o naked_a truth_n if_o i_o right_o apprehend_v mr._n o._n for_o i_o lift_v not_o to_o look_v after_o the_o book_n its_o self_n intend_v to_o prove_v by_o the_o nicene_n canon_n which_o forbid_v bishop_n to_o ordain_v in_o one_o another_o dioceses_n that_o the_o irregular_a ordination_n by_o bishop_n be_v as_o null_a as_o the_o irregular_a ordination_n by_o presbyter_n now_o there_o be_v no_o strength_n in_o this_o reason_v i_o can_v scarce_o allow_v it_o to_o be_v sense_n he_o ought_v first_o to_o make_v out_o that_o presbyter_n have_v power_n to_o ordain_v and_o then_o indeed_o the_o irregular_a ordination_n of_o the_o one_o will_v be_v null_a as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o other_o and_o both_o alike_o but_o we_o deny_v presbyter_n to_o have_v power_n to_o ordain_v be_v sure_a that_o nicene_n canon_n give_v they_o none_o and_o therefore_o the_o comparison_n here_o be_v foolish_a and_o frivolous_a it_o be_v as_o if_o one_o shall_v lay_v down_o this_o grave_a maxim_n the_o irregular_a sentence_n of_o a_o judge_n be_v as_o null_a as_o that_o of_o a_o private_a man_n whereas_o a_o private_a man_n can_v give_v no_o decretory_n sentence_n at_o all_o i_o own_o bishop_n in_o their_o ordination_n be_v under_o many_o canonical_a restraint_n and_o some_o of_o their_o irregular_a ordination_n be_v decree_v null_a at_o least_o so_o as_o that_o the_o ordain_v be_v not_o allow_v to_o exercise_v their_o function_n but_o to_o talk_v of_o the_o irregularity_n of_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n be_v to_o suppose_v it_o prove_v they_o have_v power_n to_o ordain_v which_o be_v to_o beg_v the_o question_n i_o be_o sure_a their_o power_n be_v not_o intimate_v in_o the_o nicene_n canon_n as_o that_o of_o bishop_n be_v nor_o in_o any_o other_o that_o i_o be_o yet_o acquaint_v with_o if_o a_o canon_n be_v any_o where_o to_o be_v find_v restrain_v ordination_n make_v by_o presbyter_n and_o limit_v the_o manner_n and_o circumstance_n of_o they_o it_o be_v reasonable_a thence_o to_o gather_v that_o presbyter_n have_v power_n to_o ordain_v but_o the_o canonical_a restraint_n lay_v upon_o bishop_n will_v not_o convince_v i_o that_o presbyter_n have_v that_o power_n final_o one_o may_v by_o the_o same_o reason_v conclude_v that_o deacon_n yea_o that_o every_o ordinary_a believer_n have_v power_n to_o ordain_v as_o well_o as_o bishop_n thus_o i_o proceed_v in_o the_o argument_n by_o the_o nicene_n canon_n bishop_n ordination_n in_o other_o diocese_n without_o consent_n be_v forbid_v and_o hence_o we_o see_v the_o irregular_a ordination_n of_o bishop_n be_v as_o null_a as_o the_o irregular_a ordination_n of_o ordinary_a believer_n and_o deacon_n but_o this_o be_v no_o better_a than_o beat_v the_o air_n out_o of_o nothing_o to_o gather_v something_o for_o all_o this_o while_n neither_o deacon_n nor_o believer_n have_v power_n at_o all_o to_o ordain_v haply_o mr._n o._n have_v leave_v the_o reverend_a author_n argument_n short_a so_o i_o dismiss_v it_o chap._n x._o of_o aerius_n this_o be_v a_o turbulent_a and_o heretical_a presbyterian_a the_o only_a one_o to_o be_v meet_v with_o in_o all_o antiquity_n it_o may_v not_o be_v amiss_o in_o few_o word_n to_o present_v the_o reader_n with_o his_o character_n as_o it_o be_v transmit_v to_o we_o by_o st._n austin_n and_o epiphanius_n the_o former_a tell_v we_o that_o be_v a_o presbyter_n he_o be_v 3._o report_v to_o have_v be_v trouble_v because_o he_o can_v not_o be_v ordain_v a_o bishop_n that_o he_o fall_v into_o the_o arrian_n heresy_n add_v to_o it_o some_o of_o his_o own_o conceit_n as_o that_o state_v fast_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v observe_v and_o that_o a_o presbyter_n ought_v no_o way_n to_o be_v distinguish_v from_o a_o bishop_n that_o the_o aerian_o his_o follower_n admit_v to_o their_o communion_n only_o the_o continent_n or_o such_o as_o embrace_v a_o celibate_n life_n and_o who_o have_v so_o far_o renounce_v the_o world_n as_o to_o account_v nothing_o their_o own_o and_o do_v not_o abstain_v from_o flesh_n in_o the_o appoint_a time_n as_o epiphanius_n write_v this_o epiphanius_n among_o many_o other_o error_n and_o some_o of_o the_o aforesaid_a particular_o remember_v that_o he_o seek_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n but_o can_v not_o obtain_v it_o he_o call_v it_o 77._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d a_o hairbrained_a and_o mad_a doctrine_n sc_n that_o of_o the_o identity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n when_o epiphanius_n have_v reckon_v up_o a_o great_a many_o of_o his_o error_n and_o heresy_n he_o proceed_v to_o refute_v they_o and_o in_o the_o first_o place_n take_v he_o to_o task_n for_o that_o about_o the_o identity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n in_o short_a he_o set_v he_o forth_o as_o a_o very_a wicked_a and_o impious_a fellow_n it_o be_v not_o material_a in_o the_o dispute_n whether_o aerius_n be_v a_o heretic_n or_o be_v call_v so_o by_o epiphanius_n and_o st._n austin_n on_o the_o account_n of_o his_o teach_a bishop_n and_o presbyter_n to_o be_v equal_a i_o be_o sure_a st._n austin_n place_v this_o error_n of_o he_o in_o the_o front_n and_o before_o that_o of_o arrianism_n and_o both_o condemn_v he_o for_o his_o opinion_n about_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o my_o purpose_n for_o i_o be_o not_o concern_v about_o private_a person_n opinion_n such_o as_o bishop_n jewel_n though_o a_o excellent_a man_n and_o one_o of_o the_o great_a ornament_n of_o our_o church_n and_o of_o the_o reformation_n or_o other_o mention_v by_o mr._n o._n 124._o whatever_o their_o sentiment_n be_v i_o shall_v hereafter_o show_v that_o it_o be_v ever_o the_o public_a judgement_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o england_n that_o bishop_n be_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la and_o i_o hope_v it_o be_v no_o breach_n of_o modesty_n to_o confront_v they_o with_o the_o church_n authority_n chap._n xi_o of_o hilary_n the_o deacon_n it_o be_v not_o agree_v among_o the_o critic_n who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o commentary_n on_o st._n paul_n epistle_n which_o be_v in_o the_o work_v of_o st._n ambrose_n vol._n 5._o and_o it_o be_v as_o uncertain_a unto_o who_o belong_v the_o quaestiones_fw-la veter_fw-la be_v &_o novi_fw-la testamenti_fw-la in_o st._n austin_n tom._n 4._o there_o be_v some_o excellent_a passage_n find_v in_o they_o and_o cite_v by_o austin_n in_o his_o tract_n against_o the_o pelagian_n 62._o under_o the_o title_n of_o
officii_fw-la it_o have_v then_o be_v more_o congruous_a according_a to_o our_o adversary_n argument_n to_o have_v name_v all_o of_o they_o bishop_n except_o the_o precedent_n who_o shall_v have_v be_v call_v presbyter_n as_o be_v the_o elder_a among_o they_o afterward_o ignatius_n exhort_v the_o magnesian_o not_o to_o despise_v demas_n their_o bishop_n for_o his_o youth_n last_o ãâã_d assure_v we_o that_o the_o presbyter_n of_o alexandria_n by_o mark_n be_v institution_n choose_v their_o patriarch_n so_o that_o merit_n and_o election_n not_o age_n determine_v the_o competition_n by_o the_o way_n they_o also_o according_a to_o this_o author_n eutychius_n ordain_v their_o patriarch_n by_o prayer_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n with_o what_o truth_n then_o can_v hilary_n assert_v episcopi_fw-la &_o presbyteri_fw-la ãâã_d est_fw-la ordinatio_fw-la but_o i_o have_v do_v this_o fictitious_a hilary_n his_o question_n and_o commentary_n too_o great_a a_o honour_n in_o waste_v thus_o much_o paper_n about_o he_o and_o them_o chap._n xii_o of_o st._n jerom_n '_o be_v testimony_n before_o i_o examine_v the_o testimony_n of_o this_o father_n allege_v by_o mr._n o._n in_o favour_n of_o the_o identity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n i_o will_v lay_v down_o my_o own_o hypothesis_n such_o i_o be_o persuade_v as_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o i_o be_o of_o opinion_n also_o will_v go_v a_o great_a way_n to_o reconcile_v jerom_n with_o himself_o as_o for_o my_o own_o opinion_n i_o make_v account_n with_o bp._n pearson_n that_o apost_n the_o christian_a church_n strict_o speak_v begin_v upon_o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n when_o the_o spirit_n descend_v upon_o the_o holy_a apostle_n and_o as_o i_o may_v say_v anoint_v they_o unto_o the_o office_n of_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o establish_v the_o christian_a church_n throughout_o the_o world_n beginning_n at_o jerusalem_n that_o they_o be_v for_o some_o small_a time_n the_o only_a ecclesiastical_a officer_n in_o the_o church_n that_o when_o the_o church_n increase_v and_o believer_n be_v multiply_v and_o by_o consequence_n the_o apostle_n unable_a to_o manage_v the_o whole_a work_n by_o themselves_o they_o take_v in_o seven_o deacon_n to_o their_o assistance_n devolve_v on_o they_o entire_o one_o branch_n of_o their_o power_n viz._n dispense_n the_o public_a alm_n among_o the_o poor_a as_o also_o admit_v they_o to_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o baptise_v when_o occasion_n offer_v or_o necessity_n require_v or_o their_o leisure_n from_o their_o own_o proper_a business_n will_v allow_v that_o not_o very_o long_o after_o the_o church_n still_o increase_n more_o and_o more_o and_o believer_n multiply_v not_o only_a at_o jerusalem_n but_o at_o samaria_n and_o in_o other_o part_n of_o judea_n the_o apostle_n add_v another_o sort_n of_o church_n officer_n that_o be_v presbyter_n acts._n 11._o 30._o ch_n 15._o that_o to_o these_o presbyter_n be_v commit_v by_o the_o apostle_n the_o principal_a care_n and_o trust_v of_o minister_a in_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o in_o their_o absence_n of_o rule_v the_o flock_n in_o matter_n of_o less_o moment_n the_o apostle_n still_o reserve_v to_o themselves_o the_o supreme_a power_n in_o the_o high_a and_o important_a affair_n of_o the_o church_n which_o they_o discharge_v either_o by_o messenger_n or_o by_o letter_n or_o else_o visit_v they_o and_o last_o that_o these_o presbyter_n be_v indifferent_o call_v either_o elder_n or_o bishop_n and_o govern_v the_o aforesaid_a church_n in_o a_o parity_n among_o themselves_o of_o this_o interval_n of_o time_n i_o reckon_v jerom_n may_v speak_v when_o he_o contend_v for_o the_o parity_n and_o identity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n the_o church_n then_o hitherto_o be_v govern_v communi_fw-la presbyterorum_fw-la consilio_fw-la by_o the_o college_n of_o presbyter_n no_o other_o preside_v over_o they_o in_o the_o apostle_n absence_n in_o process_n of_o time_n when_o the_o apostle_n have_v determine_v among_o themselves_o to_o disperse_v in_o order_n to_o the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n unto_o all_o the_o world_n they_o resolve_v that_o one_o be_v choose_v from_o among_o the_o presbyter_n shall_v be_v set_v over_o the_o rest_n unto_o who_o all_o the_o care_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v belong_v the_o seed_n of_o schism_n may_v be_v take_v away_o and_o that_o this_o shall_v be_v establish_v and_o observe_v toto_fw-la orb_n throughout_o the_o world_n the_o period_n of_o time_n when_o this_o course_n be_v take_v by_o the_o apostle_n i_o have_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o preface_n but_o jerom_n in_o this_o circumstance_n seem_v not_o at_o one_o with_o himself_o for_o whereas_o in_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n he_o suppose_v the_o apostle_n to_o have_v take_v up_o this_o resolution_n after_o the_o corinthian_a schism_n yet_o make_v james_n bishop_n of_o ec._n jerusalem_n he_o must_v of_o necessity_n suppose_v it_o do_v before_o or_o at_o the_o council_n of_o jerusalem_n at_o which_o time_n there_o be_v not_o any_o church_n or_o so_o much_o as_o one_o christian_a at_o corinth_n by_o what_o name_n or_o title_n the_o person_n thus_o choose_v out_o of_o the_o presbyter_n and_o entrust_v with_o the_o supreme_a government_n of_o church_n be_v call_v be_v of_o little_a moment_n to_o be_v inquire_v into_o nevertheless_o if_o theodoret_n be_v to_o be_v credit_v as_o i_o know_v no_o reason_n to_o the_o contrary_a they_o also_o be_v at_o first_o style_v apostle_n and_o it_o be_v with_o reason_n think_v that_o epaphroditus_n be_v therefore_o reckon_v or_o rather_o declare_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o philippian_n 25._o blondel_n himself_o acknowledge_v there_o be_v a_o secondary_a sort_n of_o apostle_n among_o the_o church_n person_n of_o the_o high_a rank_n and_o most_o eminent_a gift_n i_o take_v these_o thing_n in_o some_o measure_n prove_v sufficient_o before_o and_o in_o what_o follow_v and_o most_o reasonable_a in_o themselves_o to_o be_v suppose_v nevertherless_a if_o the_o adversary_n shall_v reject_v they_o as_o it_o be_v most_o likely_a they_o will_v i_o shall_v only_o say_v that_o i_o be_o not_o much_o concern_v about_o they_o that_o be_v whether_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o make_v jerom_n write_v consistent_o with_o himself_o if_o not_o his_o testimony_n in_o the_o controversy_n before_o we_o be_v not_o worth_a a_o rush_n he_o have_v contradict_v himself_o and_o overthrow_v in_o one_o place_n what_o he_o be_v make_v to_o have_v affirm_v in_o another_o the_o question_n then_o upon_o jerom_n authority_n be_v not_o about_o the_o precise_a time_n when_o this_o remedy_n against_o schism_n be_v apply_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v to_o say_v whether_o before_o or_o immediate_o after_o the_o corinthian_a division_n let_v jerom_n look_v to_o that_o but_o more_o general_o whether_o he_o believe_v or_o ever_o assert_v or_o can_v consistent_o with_o himself_o assert_v that_o this_o provision_n against_o schism_n be_v devise_v and_o make_v not_o till_o after_o the_o apostle_n decease_n the_o presbyterian_o be_v oblige_v to_o hold_v the_o affirmative_a or_o else_o give_v up_o the_o cause_n my_o business_n then_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o jerom_n do_v not_o believe_v nor_o ever_o assert_v nor_o can_v intend_v to_o assert_v that_o the_o decree_n about_o choose_v one_o from_o among_o the_o presbyter_n and_o set_v he_o above_o the_o rest_n to_o preside_v and_o govern_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n be_v make_v after_o the_o apostle_n day_n by_o some_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n but_o that_o it_o be_v the_o ordination_n and_o appointment_n of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o this_o i_o pretend_v to_o make_v appear_v by_o the_o follow_a observation_n out_o of_o jerom._n 1._o these_o word_n of_o jerom_n toto_fw-la orb_n decretum_fw-la est_fw-la must_v denote_v it_o to_o have_v be_v a_o apostolic_a constitution_n for_o a_o ecclesiastical_a decree_n oblige_v all_o christendom_n to_o its_o observation_n can_v never_o have_v be_v make_v for_o above_o 200_o year_n after_o the_o apostle_n decease_n and_o nothing_o less_o than_o a_o ecumenical_a synod_n have_v competent_a power_n to_o prescribe_v this_o remedy_n against_o schism_n but_o there_o never_o be_v any_o such_o universal_a council_n before_o that_o of_o nice_n too_o late_o to_o father_n the_o decree_n in_o the_o judgement_n even_o of_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o moreover_o this_o apostle_n canon_n as_o they_o be_v common_o call_v which_o be_v a_o collection_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a decree_n of_o the_o church_n take_v it_o for_o grant_v other_o that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v lodge_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o bishop_n and_o only_o regulate_v some_o circumstance_n about_o their_o ordination_n and_o the_o method_n of_o their_o government_n if_o bishop_n have_v be_v mere_o by_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n we_o shall_v certain_o have_v find_v they_o establish_v in_o these_o apostolical_a canon_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v imagine_v the_o
1._o that_o the_o people_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v aforetime_o subject_a to_o bishop_n which_o mr._n o._n have_v miserable_o pervert_v by_o say_v that_o till_o that_o time_n the_o diocese_n never_o have_v any_o bishop_n at_o all_o contrary_a to_o the_o apparent_a sense_n of_o that_o canon_n which_o affirm_v it_o and_o describe_v those_o people_n thus_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o again_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o be_v the_o people_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v even_o in_o the_o possession_n and_o under_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o bishop_n ex._n gra_fw-mi to_o make_v the_o matter_n plain_o to_o mr._n o._n the_o people_n of_o lancashire_n can_v be_v say_v never_o to_o have_v have_v any_o bishop_n at_o all_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o chester_n be_v their_o diocesan_n 2._o the_o people_n mention_v in_o the_o canon_n have_v not_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d a_o proper_a bishop_n peculiar_a to_o themselves_o thus_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o county_n of_o lancaster_n never_o have_v to_o this_o day_n a_o proper_a bishop_n of_o their_o own_o 3._o the_o african_a father_n do_v not_o peremptory_o resolve_v that_o those_o people_n shall_v have_v no_o bishop_n for_o the_o future_a though_o mr._n o._n have_v very_o false_o affirm_v it_o but_o two_o thing_n they_o define_v either_o first_o that_o they_o shall_v continue_v in_o subjection_n to_o their_o former_a bishop_n that_o be_v to_o keep_v to_o my_o example_n that_o the_o county_n of_o lancaster_n shall_v continue_v as_o a_o member_n of_o the_o diocese_n of_o chester_n or_o else_o second_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v erect_v into_o a_o distinct_a bishopric_n and_o have_v their_o own_o proper_a bishop_n provide_v nevertheless_o that_o it_o be_v with_o the_o consent_n of_o their_o former_a bishop_n or_o thus_o in_o the_o example_n that_o the_o county_n of_o lancaster_n shall_v be_v make_v a_o bishopric_n by_o its_o self_n and_o have_v a_o proper_a bishop_n of_o its_o own_o provide_v my_o lord_n of_o chester_n will_v consent_v thereunto_o there_o be_v another_o canon_n in_o the_o african_a 407._o code_n which_o be_v more_o full_a to_o my_o purpose_n it_o please_v the_o synod_n that_o the_o people_n who_o never_o have_v proper_a bishop_n of_o their_o own_o shall_v not_o have_v they_o except_o it_o be_v so_o decree_v in_o a_o full_a provincial_a synod_n and_o particular_o by_o the_o primate_n and_o with_o the_o consent_n of_o that_o bishop_n unto_o who_o government_n that_o church_n or_o the_o aforesaid_a people_n former_o belong_v mr._n o._n then_o ãâã_d he_o have_v deal_v honest_o and_o faithful_o with_o the_o african_a father_n and_o with_o we_o shall_v have_v cite_v the_o whole_a period_n at_o length_n and_o not_o abuse_v they_o and_o endeavour_v to_o cozen_v the_o present_a age_n with_o such_o counterfeit_n stuff_n i_o have_v this_o only_o far_a to_o remark_n upon_o these_o canon_n of_o the_o carthaginian_a council_n and_o so_o shall_v conclude_v that_o the_o occasion_n of_o make_v the_o former_a and_o of_o the_o latter_a too_o as_o be_v probable_a be_v the_o ambitious_a and_o haughty_a and_o aspire_a stubborn_a and_o foolish_a for_o all_o these_o epithet_n be_v there_o bestow_v on_o they_o disposition_n of_o some_o presbyter_n who_o raise_v their_o crest_n against_o their_o own_o bishop_n and_o wheedle_v the_o people_n by_o some_o indirect_a mean_n will_v needs_o in_o a_o disorderly_a manner_n make_v themselves_o their_o rector_n i_o e._n bishop_n this_o immediate_o follow_v in_o the_o aforesaid_a canon_n as_o any_o one_o that_o please_v may_v see_v at_o his_o leisure_n to_o prove_v that_o presbyter_n have_v power_n to_o impose_v hand_n in_o ordination_n mr._n o._n allege_v 88_o the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n ãâã_d can._n 3._o omnes_fw-la presbyteri_fw-la qui_fw-la praesentes_fw-la sunt_fw-la manus_fw-la svas_fw-la juxta_fw-la manum_fw-la episcopi_fw-la super_fw-la caput_fw-la illius_fw-la ordinandi_fw-la presbyteri_fw-la teneant_fw-la ans._n 1._o he_o have_v not_o give_v we_o the_o canon_n entire_a have_v leave_v out_o something_o which_o perhaps_o will_v go_v a_o great_a way_n to_o the_o overthrow_v his_o argument_n as_o will_v be_v see_v anon_o thus_o the_o canon_n run_v episcopo_fw-la eum_fw-la sc_n presbyterum_fw-la benedicente_fw-la omnes_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o it_o be_v not_o unusual_a for_o mr._n o._n to_o quote_v his_o author_n by_o half_n and_o to_o suppress_v what_o seem_v to_o make_v against_o he_o at_o this_o rate_n he_o may_v soon_o get_v the_o christian_a world_n on_o his_o side_n so_o many_o of_o they_o at_o least_o as_o will_v not_o be_v at_o the_o pain_n or_o be_v unable_a to_o examine_v his_o authority_n 2._o this_o canon_n though_o caranza_n and_o other_o author_n mention_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o african_a code_n set_v forth_o by_o justellus_n which_o make_v i_o suspect_v that_o the_o father_n who_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trull_n take_v the_o african_a into_o the_o code_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n look_v upon_o it_o either_o as_o spurious_a or_o reject_v it_o as_o to_o the_o matter_n therein_o decree_v but_o i_o will_v not_o insist_v on_o this_o 3._o it_o be_v most_o reasonable_a to_o interpret_v one_o canon_n by_o another_o the_o say_a council_n decree_v ut_fw-la episcopus_fw-la sine_fw-la concilio_n 22._o clericorum_fw-la suorum_fw-la clericos_fw-la non_fw-la ordinet_fw-la from_o ãâã_d one_o will_v guess_v that_o the_o imposition_n of_o the_o presbyter_n hand_n be_v design_v only_a ãâã_d a_o testimony_n that_o the_o bishop_n ordain_v with_o the_o advice_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o presbyter_n at_o least_o not_o without_o they_o 4._o if_o presbyter_n lay_v on_o hand_n as_o proper_a ordainer_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o in_o other_o council_n and_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v declare_v that_o the_o bishop_n only_o ordain_v and_o not_o the_o presbyter_n in_o the_o 2._o council_n of_o hisp._n can._n 6._o episcopus_fw-la enim_fw-la sacerdotibus_fw-la &_o ministris_fw-la solus_fw-la honorem_fw-la dare_v potest_fw-la can._n 7._o nam_fw-la quamvis_fw-la cum_fw-la episcopis_fw-la plurima_fw-la illis_fw-la presbyteris_fw-la mysteriorum_fw-la communis_fw-la sit_fw-la dispensatio_fw-la quaedam_fw-la tamen_fw-la sibi_fw-la prohibita_fw-la noverint_fw-la sicut_fw-la presbyterorum_fw-la &_o diaconorum_fw-la consecratio_fw-la but_o the_o five_o canon_n be_v remarkable_a the_o occasion_n of_o it_o be_v this_o a_o certain_a bishop_n be_v blind_a lay_v on_o his_o hand_n at_o the_o ordination_n of_o some_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o presbyter_n &_o presbyter_n quidam_fw-la illis_fw-la contra_fw-la ecclesiasticum_fw-la ordinem_fw-la benedictionem_fw-la dedisse_fw-la fertur_fw-la for_o which_o it_o be_v add_v that_o the_o presbyter_n deserve_v to_o be_v condemn_v but_o that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n dead_a from_o whence_o i_o think_v it_o be_v plain_a 1._o that_o ordination_n be_v not_o effectual_o give_v by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n but_o by_o benediction_n the_o charge_n or_o commission_n wherein_o proper_o consifted_a the_o ordination_n which_o be_v give_v to_o the_o ordain_v 2._o all_o the_o irregularity_n here_o commit_v be_v that_o the_o presbyter_n presume_v benedicere_fw-la and_o there_o with_o it_o may_v be_v to_o give_v the_o commission_n that_o be_v to_o ordain_v which_o if_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v ordination_n have_v be_v no_o irregularity_n at_o least_o no_o essential_a defect_n as_o it_o be_v declare_v to_o be_v 3._o for_o if_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v the_o ordination_n than_o there_o be_v no_o irregularity_n in_o these_o ordination_n the_o bishop_n have_v lay_v his_o hand_n on_o the_o ordain_v as_o it_o be_v testify_v in_o the_o canon_n as_o well_o as_o that_o presbyter_n who_o blessed_v he_o 4._o the_o order_n thus_o confer_v be_v declare_v null_a by_o the_o council_n he_o presbyteri_fw-la &_o diaconi_fw-la gradum_fw-la sacerdotii_fw-la &_o levitici_fw-la ordinis_fw-la quem_fw-la perverse_a adepti_fw-la sunt_fw-la amittant_fw-la so_o that_o ãâã_d the_o whole_a it_o appear_v that_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o these_o father_n and_o of_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n lay_v on_o of_o hand_n be_v not_o proper_o ordination_n and_o by_o ãâã_d though_o presbyter_n impose_v hand_n yet_o they_o do_v not_o ordain_v which_o ãâã_d overthrow_v mr._n oh_o major_n proposition_n but_o let_v we_o see_v how_o mr._n o._n confirm_v his_o major_n he_o endeavour_v it_o by_o this_o medium_fw-la that_o which_o be_v a_o ordain_v act_n bespeak_v 89._o a_o ordain_v power_n but_o imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v a_o ordain_v act._n therefore_o etc._n etc._n to_o the_o minor_a i_o answer_v by_o deny_v imposition_n of_o hand_n to_o be_v a_o ordain_v act_n it_o be_v only_o a_o outward_a and_o solemn_a concomitant_a of_o it_o as_o be_v before_o evince_v though_o warrant_v by_o holy_a scripture_n by_o the_o imposition_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n hand_n be_v signify_v to_o the_o congregation_n present_a that_o
the_o bishop_n ordain_v the_o person_n with_o the_o advice_n consent_n and_o council_n of_o his_o presbyter_n but_o mr._n o._n add_v i_o shall_v be_v glad_a to_o see_v one_o instance_n give_v in_o the_o apostle_n day_n of_o person_n lay_v on_o of_o hand_n in_o ordination_n that_o have_v no_o ordain_v power_n if_o i_o shall_v affirm_v that_o those_o mention_v 1_o tim._n 4._o 14._o impose_v hand_n but_o have_v no_o ordain_v power_n i_o be_o very_o sure_a he_o can_v disprove_v i_o and_o if_o i_o shall_v demand_v one_o instance_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n of_o mere_a presbyter_n lay_v on_o of_o hand_n or_o ordain_v without_o a_o bishop_n i_o be_o sure_a mr._n o._n can_v produce_v it_o but_o mr._n o._n plead_v 90._o how_o then_o come_v the_o bishop_n to_o urge_v the_o scripture_n 1_o tim._n 5._o 22._o lay_v hand_n sudden_o on_o no_o man_n in_o favour_n of_o timothy_n ordain_v power_n and_o thence_o to_o infer_v that_o he_o be_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n since_o he_o may_v lay_v on_o hand_n and_o yet_o have_v no_o ordain_v power_n nor_o be_v bishop_n this_o difficulty_n be_v easy_o resolve_v if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o argument_n for_o timothy_n episcopal_a power_n in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n but_o that_o text_n only_o it_o may_v thence_o be_v fair_o infer_v that_o timothy_n be_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o have_v the_o power_n of_o ordain_v because_o no_o other_o be_v join_v in_o commission_n with_o he_o nevertheless_o though_o this_o prove_v it_o not_o it_o may_v be_v evince_v from_o other_o pregnant_a passage_n in_o those_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n which_o i_o need_v not_o repeat_v nor_o do_v we_o acknowledge_v presbyter_n may_v perform_v all_o the_o outward_a act_n of_o ordination_n that_o of_o benediction_n belong_v not_o to_o they_o at_o all_o but_o say_v he_o what_o do_v the_o presbyter_n impose_v of_o hand_n signify_v if_o not_o a_o ordain_v power_n i_o have_v tell_v he_o already_o it_o denote_v their_o approbation_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n ãâã_d with_o their_o advice_n and_o consent_n no_o he_o reply_n 91._o they_o can_v signify_v their_o approbation_n some_o other_o way_n without_o imposition_n of_o hand_n as_o by_o say_v amen_o to_o the_o ordination_n prayer_n but_o this_o be_v to_o be_v wise_a than_o god_n and_o his_o apostle_n who_o have_v as_o i_o often_o have_v suppose_v though_o i_o need_v not_o grant_v it_o recommend_v this_o way_n which_o add_v a_o agreeable_a solemnity_n unto_o the_o action_n at_o least_o the_o church_n have_v think_v fit_a to_o admit_v the_o presbyter_n to_o lay_v on_o hand_n and_o thereby_o to_o signify_v their_o approbation_n of_o such_o as_o be_v take_v into_o their_o own_o proper_a ministry_n in_o a_o particular_a way_n and_o different_a from_o the_o people_n testify_v their_o assent_n and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o at_o the_o ordination_n of_o a_o deacon_n presbyter_n be_v not_o to_o impose_v hand_n sc_n quia_fw-la non_fw-la ad_fw-la sacerdotium_fw-la sed_fw-la ad_fw-la ministerium_fw-la consecratur_fw-la 3._o as_o the_o african_a father_n declare_v in_o short_a this_o canon_n ãâã_d with_o other_o which_o appropriate_a the_o power_n of_o ordain_v presbyter_n unto_o bishop_n only_o as_o be_v above_o observe_v seem_v to_o i_o to_o show_v that_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o ancient_n presbyter_n have_v no_o inherent_a original_a power_n of_o lay_v on_o hand_n but_o that_o it_o be_v grant_v to_o they_o by_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n only_o otherwise_o probable_o they_o will_v have_v have_v power_n of_o imposition_n of_o hand_n at_o the_o ordination_n of_o deacon_n also_o brief_o because_o in_o the_o prosecution_n of_o this_o argument_n mr._n o._n appeal_n to_o the_o scripture_n so_o oft_o for_o proof_n of_o certain_a thing_n that_o fall_v in_o his_o way_n whilst_o he_o be_v manage_v this_o point_n i_o do_v once_o more_o here_o desire_v what_o i_o have_v often_o call_v for_o one_o single_a probable_a proof_n or_o example_n from_o scripture_n of_o bare_a ordinary_a presbyter_n ordain_v or_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n without_o some_o superior_a preside_v in_o the_o action_n 5._o and_o to_o conclude_v this_o discourse_n about_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n i_o that_o be_o not_o much_o concern_v about_o man_n opinion_n nor_o whether_o the_o presbyter_n impose_v hand_n tanquam_fw-la ordinantes_fw-la or_o tanquam_fw-la approbantes_fw-la only_o be_o very_o well_o content_a every_o one_o shall_v abound_v in_o his_o own_o sense_n provide_v there_o be_v a_o agreement_n in_o practice_n and_o a_o occasion_n be_v not_o thereby_o take_v to_o raise_v schism_n and_o emulation_n in_o the_o church_n let_v this_o matter_n be_v bang_v in_o the_o school_n so_o long_o as_o critic_n shall_v please_v yet_o see_v there_o be_v no_o colour_n for_o assert_v presbyter_n to_o be_v ordainer_n without_o the_o bishop_n whatever_o they_o be_v with_o he_o i_o make_v no_o difficulty_n to_o affirm_v that_o their_o ordination_n without_o the_o bishop_n be_v without_o precedent_n either_o in_o scripture_n or_o antiquity_n and_o by_o consequence_n in_o themselves_o null_a and_o invalid_n a_o partial_a cause_n can_v never_o produce_v the_o ãâã_d effect_v mr._n o._n be_v about_o to_o establish_v the_o ordain_v power_n of_o the_o presbyter_n instance_n in_o the_o 22d_o canon_n of_o the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n wherein_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o bishop_n must_v not_o ordain_v without_o their_o presbyter_n as_o presbyter_n not_o without_o bishop_n that_o therefore_o he_o may_v as_o well_o say_v bishop_n have_v no_o power_n to_o ordain_v because_o they_o can_v not_o ordinary_o do_v it_o without_o their_o presbyter_n as_o we_o affirm_v presbyter_n have_v no_o power_n to_o ordain_v because_o they_o can_v ordain_v without_o bishop_n ans._n let_v we_o see_v the_o canon_n at_o length_n 4._o ut_fw-la episcopus_fw-la sine_fw-la concilio_n clericorum_fw-la suorum_fw-la clericos_fw-la non_fw-la ordinet_fw-la ita_fw-la ut_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v hence_o apparent_a that_o the_o bishop_n ordain_v and_o not_o the_o presbyter_n though_o he_o be_v to_o take_v along_o with_o he_o the_o counsel_n and_o advice_n of_o his_o prebyter_n let_v mr._n o._n produce_v i_o a_o canon_n to_o this_o effect_n presbyteri_fw-la sine_fw-la concilio_n episcopi_fw-la svi_fw-la clericos_fw-la non_fw-la ordinent_fw-la and_o then_o it_o will_v be_v time_n for_o we_o to_o think_v of_o a_o further_a answer_n unto_o this_o cavil_v mr._n o._n urge_v 117._o far_o the_o follow_a canon_n 23d_o the_o bishop_n may_v hear_v no_o man_n cause_n without_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o clergy_n otherwise_o the_o bishop_n sentence_n shall_v be_v void_a unless_o it_o be_v confirm_v in_o their_o presence_n this_o we_o can_v assent_v unto_o without_o prejudice_n to_o our_o main_a cause_n but_o i_o read_v no_o where_o that_o the_o presbyter_n sentence_n shall_v be_v void_a without_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o bishop_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o the_o presbyter_n give_v no_o sentence_n at_o all_o mr._n o._n to_o confirm_v his_o maxim_n that_o lay-man_n be_v allow_v to_o preach_v at_o the_o request_n of_o the_o clergy_n cite_v 98._o the_o carthaginian_a canon_n a_o layman_n may_v not_o dare_v to_o preach_v whilst_o the_o clergy_n be_v present_a unless_o they_o ask_v he_o ans._n i_o have_v give_v my_o opinion_n of_o this_o matter_n before_o it_o affect_v the_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bishop_n and_o be_v of_o as_o much_o force_n against_o mr._n o._n unless_o he_o will_v turn_v quaker_n as_o against_o the_o rector_n but_o over_o and_o above_o i_o note_v this_o canon_n be_v not_o take_v into_o the_o universal_a code_n and_o therefore_o be_v reject_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trull_n chap._n fourteen_o of_o paphnutius_fw-la and_o daniel_n the_o next_o thing_n mr._n o._n urge_v in_o behalf_n of_o presbyter_n ordain_v be_v the_o story_n which_o joannes_n cassianus_n tell_v of_o one_o paphnutius_fw-la a_o presbyter_n abbot_n who_o make_v daniel_n his_o design_v successor_n a_o deacon_n first_o and_o then_o goaequare_fw-la sibi_fw-la etiam_fw-la sacerdotis_fw-la honore_fw-la festinavit_fw-la optansque_fw-la sibi_fw-la successionem_fw-la 390_o dignissimam_fw-la providere_fw-la eum_fw-la presbyterii_fw-la honore_fw-la provehor_fw-la he_o add_v that_o theophilus_n then_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n do_v not_o pronounce_v 131._o the_o ordination_n null_n that_o we_o read_v of_o nor_o any_o other_o in_o that_o time_n have_v it_o be_v either_o irregular_a or_o unusual_a doubtless_o it_o have_v be_v censure_v ans._n it_o must_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o this_o instance_n of_o presbyter_n ordain_v appear_v the_o fair_a of_o all_o other_o that_o mr._n o._n have_v muster_v up_o in_o his_o plea_n nevertheless_o what_o i_o have_v to_o reply_v be_v as_o follow_v 1._o it_o be_v but_o a_o single_a instance_n of_o a_o for_o aught_o i_o know_v humoursome_a abbot_n who_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o do_v this_o contrary_a to_o the_o know_a and_o establish_a
order_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o particular_o of_o the_o alexandrian_a whereof_o he_o be_v suppose_v to_o have_v be_v a_o part_n the_o desert_n of_o scetis_n where_o he_o usual_o reside_v adjoin_v to_o the_o lake_n maria_n or_o maeris_n which_o border_n on_o egypt_n 2._o whereas_o it_o be_v urge_v that_o theophilus_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n do_v not_o pronounce_v this_o ordination_n void_a and_o null_a that_o we_o read_v of_o there_o be_v no_o great_a matter_n in_o this_o for_o it_o may_v with_o as_o great_a reason_n be_v argue_v that_o theophilus_n will_v have_v censure_v it_o if_o it_o have_v come_v to_o his_o knowledge_n there_o be_v no_o probability_n that_o theophilus_n will_v have_v pass_v by_o such_o a_o disorder_n and_o affront_v do_v to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n see_v peter_n and_o alexander_n of_o alexandria_n his_o predecessor_n will_v not_o bear_v with_o the_o melitian_n 3._o it_o be_v wonderful_a that_o mr._n o._n shall_v insinuate_v that_o it_o be_v neither_o irregular_a nor_o unusual_a which_o in_o former_a case_n he_o have_v grant_v over_o and_o over_o again_o 4._o valesius_fw-la tell_v i_o 112._o that_o paphnutius_fw-la be_v engage_v in_o the_o melitian_n schism_n as_o ephiphanius_n testisy_n de_fw-fr haeresi_fw-la melitianorum_fw-la he_o also_o observe_v that_o the_o schism_n be_v then_o improve_v unto_o heresy_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n then_o that_o a_o heretical_a schismatic_a shall_v presume_v to_o break_v through_o the_o rule_n and_o order_n of_o that_o church_n from_o which_o he_o divide_v and_o usurp_v a_o power_n that_o nothing_o belong_v to_o he_o and_o hence_o also_o may_v be_v draw_v the_o reason_n why_o theophilus_n take_v no_o notice_n of_o what_o paphnutius_fw-la do_v he_o be_v a_o schismatic_a if_o not_o a_o heretic_n and_o out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o what_o have_v the_o patriarch_n to_o do_v to_o judge_v they_o that_o be_v without_o already_o as_o st._n paul_n speak_v in_o somewhat_o a_o like_a case_n but_o 5._o i_o will_v not_o content_v myself_o with_o these_o answer_n though_o i_o 12._o reckon_v they_o sufficient_a but_o add_v it_o be_v no_o where_o affirm_v by_o cassianus_n that_o paphnutius_fw-la ordain_v daniel_n a_o deacon_n or_o presbyter_n but_o only_o come_v daniel_n multis_fw-la junior_a esset_fw-la aetate_fw-la ad_fw-la diaconii_fw-la praelatus_fw-la est_fw-la officium_fw-la and_o then_o festinavit_fw-la coaequare_fw-la make_v baste_v to_o equal_a daniel_n with_o himself_o in_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o priesthood_n and_o last_o desire_v to_o provide_v a_o most_o worthy_a successor_n to_o himself_o whilst_o he_o be_v alive_a provehor_fw-la promote_v he_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o presbytership_n the_o question_n be_v whether_o these_o word_n signify_v that_o paphnutius_fw-la ordain_v daniel_n that_o he_o do_v so_o can_v no_o way_n be_v conclude_v from_o this_o testimony_n of_o cassianus_n for_o 1._o it_o have_v be_v ordinary_a to_o attribute_v that_o unto_o a_o person_n which_o indeed_o he_o only_o command_v or_o direct_v devise_v or_o procure_v to_o be_v do_v thus_o parent_n be_v common_o say_v to_o make_v their_o son_n minister_n but_o ordain_v they_o not_o themselves_o thus_o patron_n among_o we_o make_v and_o prefer_v vicar_n and_o rector_n of_o church_n and_o the_o king_n bishop_n though_o bishop_n ordain_v and_o institute_n they_o thus_o joshua_n make_v he_o sharp_a knife_n and_o circumcise_a the_o child_n of_o israel_n joshua_n 5._o 3._o now_o i_o hope_v mr._n o._n will_v not_o affirm_v that_o joshua_n himself_o make_v the_o sharp_a knife_n or_o circumcise_a all_o these_o israelite_n with_o his_o own_o hand_n but_o to_o come_v yet_o near_o to_o our_o purpose_n i_o read_v in_o st._n cyprian_n 52._o novatus_n felicissimum_fw-la nec_fw-la permittente_fw-la i_o nec_fw-la sciente_fw-la sua_fw-la factione_n &_o ambitione_n diaconum_fw-la constituit_fw-la the_o enquiry_n be_v whether_o novatus_n a_o presbyter_n impose_v hand_n and_o ordain_v felicissimus_n a_o deacon_n and_o whether_o st._n cyprian_n be_v thus_o to_o be_v understand_v this_o doubt_n be_v to_o be_v ãâã_d from_o another_o passage_n of_o st._n cyprian_n in_o the_o same_o ãâã_d qui_fw-la novatus_n isthic_n carthagine_v diaconum_fw-la fecerat_fw-la sc_n felicissimum_fw-la illic_fw-la romae_fw-la episcopum_fw-la fecit_fw-la sc_n novatianum_fw-la novatus_n make_v felicissimus_n a_o deacon_n at_o ãâã_d and_o novatianus_n a_o bishop_n at_o rome_n but_o how_o not_o ordain_v he_o himself_o but_o procure_v or_o encourage_v he_o to_o be_v ordain_v by_o bishop_n as_o we_o read_v in_o eusebius_n 43._o novatianus_n a_o presbyter_n of_o rome_n by_o eus._n call_v novatus_n also_o have_v from_o some_o remote_a part_n of_o italy_n invite_v three_o bishop_n unto_o rome_n force_v they_o to_o ordain_v he_o novatianus_n bishop_n this_o be_v the_o contrivance_n of_o the_o african_a novatus_n as_o we_o learn_v from_o cyprian_n as_o than_o novatus_n do_v not_o ordain_v novatianus_n but_o three_o bishop_n procure_v for_o the_o purpose_n so_o neither_o can_v it_o be_v think_v he_o ordain_v foelicissimus_fw-la deacon_n but_o by_o his_o policy_n and_o interest_n get_v he_o to_o be_v ordain_v and_o yet_o cyprian_n witness_v that_o he_o make_v fecit_fw-la &_o constituit_fw-la the_o one_o a_o deacon_n and_o make_v fecit_fw-la the_o other_o a_o bishop_n in_o like_a manner_n ãâã_d make_v daniel_n a_o deacon_n and_o a_o presbyter_n that_o be_v appoint_v and_o command_v he_o to_o take_v order_n for_o be_v the_o abbot_n he_o have_v the_o authority_n to_o determine_v his_o own_o monk_n unto_o the_o order_n of_o deacon_n and_o presbyter_n but_o it_o may_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o consider_v what_o blondel_n have_v from_o this_o testimony_n of_o cassianus_n advance_v 358._o for_o the_o establishment_n of_o presbyterian_a ordination_n he_o places_z this_o fact_n in_o the_o year_n 390._o when_o the_o egyptian_a church_n enjoy_v a_o profound_a peace_n and_o theophilus_n be_v bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o the_o government_n of_o this_o church_n be_v improve_v in_o a_o manner_n into_o a_o secular_a dominion_n if_o in_o these_o circumstance_n he_o argue_v a_o presbyter_n may_v ordain_v presbyter_n how_o much_o more_o before_o the_o ancient_a simplicity_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v shackle_a with_o novel_a constitution_n ans._n it_o be_v be_v some_o prejudice_n against_o this_o story_n of_o cassianus_n that_o neither_o ãâã_d sozomen_n theodoret_n nor_o any_o of_o those_o ecclesiastical_a historian_n though_o they_o mention_v paphnutius_fw-la shall_v have_v one_o syllable_n of_o this_o action_n nor_o so_o much_o as_o mention_v daniel_n beside_o the_o egyptian_a church_n be_v not_o in_o so_o perfect_a tranquillity_n as_o mr._n blondel_n imagine_v and_o represent_v they_o the_o melitian_n schism_n still_o remain_v among_o they_o and_o this_o paphnutius_fw-la be_v one_o of_o they_o as_o i_o have_v before_o observe_v so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o be_v wonder_v at_o that_o paphnutius_fw-la presume_v to_o ordain_v and_o theophilus_n overlook_v and_o neglect_v it_o for_o what_o have_v he_o to_o do_v with_o they_o that_o be_v already_o out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o excommunicate_v as_o the_o melitian_n must_v needs_o be_v suppose_v this_o premise_a i_o frame_v a_o argument_n against_o blondel_n and_o as_o i_o conceit_n every_o whit_n as_o good_a as_o he_o it_o be_v this_o if_o in_o the_o most_o turbulent_a state_n of_o the_o egyptian_a church_n when_o alexander_n be_v bishop_n of_o alexandria_n the_o ordination_n of_o melitius_fw-la and_o colluthus_n be_v declare_v invalid_a it_o be_v moral_o impossible_a that_o the_o ordination_n of_o daniel_n by_o paphnutius_fw-la shall_v be_v approve_v or_o connive_v at_o when_o theophilus_n be_v bishop_n of_o alexandria_n the_o episcopacy_n be_v raise_v to_o a_o high_a degree_n of_o grandeur_n and_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n better_o establish_v to_o conclude_v this_o chapter_n let_v it_o be_v remember_v what_o i_o have_v already_o note_v out_o of_o theodoret_n how_o that_o bishop_n be_v wont_a to_o 22._o reside_v among_o the_o monk_n in_o the_o wilderness_n of_o egypt_n and_o that_o seven_o of_o they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v do_v so_o from_o their_o youth_n up_o to_o their_o extreme_a old_a age_n even_o when_o they_o be_v bishop_n and_o a_o little_a sense_n will_v persuade_v one_o to_o believe_v that_o daniel_n be_v ordain_v by_o a_o bishop_n paphnutius_fw-la the_o abbot_n command_v and_o direct_v his_o monk_n to_o receive_v holy_a order_n chap._n xv._n of_o pope_n leo_n '_o s_o decree_n the_o case_n be_v this_o there_o be_v be_v in_o the_o diocese_n of_o rusticus_n bishop_n of_o narbona_n as_o may_v be_v conjecture_v from_o pope_n leo_n epistle_n some_o person_n who_o toook_v upon_o they_o to_o ordain_v and_o who_o be_v call_v by_o that_o pope_n pseudo_fw-la episcopi_fw-la rusticus_n complain_v thereof_o in_o a_o letter_n to_o leo_n which_o be_v not_o extant_a that_o i_o know_v of_o leo_n answer_n be_v there_o be_v no_o reason_n they_o shall_v
be_v account_v bishop_n who_o be_v neither_o choose_v by_o the_o clergy_n nor_o desire_v by_o the_o people_n nor_o consecrate_a by_o the_o provincial_a bishop_n at_o the_o appointment_n of_o the_o metropolitan_a whence_o when_o the_o question_n often_o arise_v concern_v the_o honour_n he_o mean_v episcopacy_n and_o the_o power_n of_o ordain_v who_o can_v doubt_v that_o what_o do_v not_o appear_v to_o have_v be_v true_o confer_v be_v in_o no_o wise_a to_o be_v give_v by_o those_o pseudo_fw-la episcopi_fw-la but_o if_o any_o clergyman_n in_o those_o church_n which_o belong_v unto_o their_o own_o proper_a bishop_n have_v be_v ordain_v by_o those_o pseudo_fw-la episcopi_fw-la and_o the_o ordination_n be_v perform_v with_o the_o consent_n and_o appointment_n of_o the_o precedent_n or_o proper_a bishop_n it_o may_v be_v ratify_v provide_v they_o remain_v in_o those_o church_n this_o pope_n leo_n flourish_v about_o the_o year_n 442._o now_o mr._n o._n who_o allege_v this_o decree_n of_o pope_n leo_n against_o 131._o we_o be_v upon_o the_o proof_n of_o presbyter_n ordain_v which_o i_o do_v not_o see_v be_v in_o the_o least_o favour_v by_o these_o word_n except_o he_o will_v ãâã_d these_o pseudo_fw-la episcopi_fw-la be_v presbyter_n only_o when_o mr._n o._n shall_v have_v prove_v this_o i_o shall_v think_v myself_o oblige_v to_o return_v a_o answer_n to_o it_o and_o not_o before_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o i_o observe_v mr._n o._n leave_v his_o argument_n adduce_n this_o passage_n to_o throw_v dirt_n upon_o our_o establish_v bishop_n and_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v uncanonical_o ordain_v instead_o of_o confirm_v his_o own_o dear_a presbyterian_a ordination_n but_o let_v we_o see_v what_o he_o say_v two_o thing_n be_v remarkable_a in_o the_o decision_n of_o leo_n the_o great_a 1._o that_o our_o english_a bishop_n want_v two_o of_o the_o requisite_n mention_v in_o the_o pope_n decree_n sc_n the_o election_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o demand_n of_o the_o people_n their_o ordination_n therefore_o have_v a_o canonical_a nullity_n in_o they_o and_o our_o english_a bishop_n will_v have_v be_v reckon_v pseudo_fw-la episcopi_fw-la in_o leo_n time_n upon_o which_o remark_n i_o make_v the_o follow_a reflection_n 1._o we_o be_v behold_v to_o mr._n o._n for_o make_v his_o simple_a friend_n believe_v that_o we_o be_v depart_v from_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o pope_n from_o henceforth_o then_o let_v they_o not_o reproach_v our_o bishop_n for_o popish_a 2._o mr._n o._n be_v in_o the_o right_n pope_n leo_n perhaps_o will_v have_v call_v our_o bishop_n pseudo_fw-la episcopi_fw-la i_o be_o sure_a at_o this_o day_n the_o pope_n do_v not_o fail_v to_o condemn_v they_o as_o such_o 3._o the_o uncanonical_a ordination_n of_o bishop_n among_o we_o will_v not_o excuse_v that_o of_o the_o presbyterian_o much_o less_o justify_v their_o anti-scriptural_a ordination_n no_o one_o can_v defend_v himself_o by_o recrimination_n but_o a_o great_a fault_n can_v never_o be_v excuse_v by_o a_o lesser_a 4._o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o tie_v up_o ourselves_o to_o the_o strict_a observation_n of_o papal_n or_o provincial_a canon_n that_o we_o think_v not_o ourselves_o absolute_o oblige_v to_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o ecumenical_a synod_n but_o take_v libery_a to_o vary_v from_o they_o when_o ever_o necessity_n or_o great_a convenience_n invite_v we_o to_o it_o otherwise_o we_o endeavour_v to_o conform_v ourselves_o to_o they_o as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a 5._o i_o have_v more_o than_o once_o in_o the_o preface_n to_o i._o n._n and_o in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o this_o treatise_n i_o hope_v sufficient_o evince_v that_o our_o bishop_n want_v neither_o the_o election_n of_o the_o clergy_n nor_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n and_o therefore_o their_o ordination_n on_o that_o score_n have_v no_o canonical_a nullity_n in_o they_o but._n 2._o mr._n o._n remark_n from_o the_o foresay_a decree_n of_o pope_n leo_n that_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o true_a bishop_n ex_fw-la post_fw-la facto_fw-la make_v the_o ordination_n of_o mere_a presbyter_n lawful_a which_o can_v not_o be_v unless_o presbyter_n have_v a_o intrinsic_a power_n of_o ordination_n hereunto_o i_o return_v 1._o mr._n o._n ought_v first_o to_o prove_v that_o these_o pseudo_fw-la episcopi_fw-la be_v mere_a presbyter_n i_o be_o otherwise_o persuade_v and_o think_v i_o can_v evince_v it_o out_o of_o leo_n decree_n 2._o the_o consent_n of_o the_o true_a bishop_n be_v not_o require_v ex_fw-la post_fw-la facto_fw-la that_o be_v the_o disingenuous_a and_o false_a gloss_n of_o a_o adversary_n but_o antecedent_n to_o the_o ordination_n as_o appear_v from_o these_o word_n &_o si_fw-la ordinatio_fw-la clericorum_fw-la consensu_fw-la &_o judicio_fw-la praesidentium_fw-la facta_fw-la est_fw-la if_o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o minister_n be_v make_v with_o the_o consent_n and_o appointment_n of_o the_o bishop_n let_v any_o man_n of_o understand_a judge_n whether_o this_o consent_n and_o appointment_n of_o the_o provincial_a bishop_n be_v to_o be_v antecedent_n to_o the_o ordination_n or_o to_o follow_v they_o 3._o whereas_o mr._n o._n render_v pseudo_fw-la episcopi_fw-la false_a bishop_n as_o it_o be_v in_o opposition_n to_o true_a bishop_n so_o he_o render_v proprios_fw-la episcopos_fw-la it_o be_v i_o think_v a_o mistake_n the_o proper_a bishop_n be_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o diocese_n within_o the_o province_n and_o by_o consequence_n the_o pseudo_fw-la episcopi_fw-la such_o as_o have_v no_o diocese_n there_o and_o therefore_o can_v not_o ordain_v regular_o without_o the_o consent_n and_o appointment_n of_o the_o proper_a bishop_n of_o the_o diocese_n of_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v before_o upon_o the_o whole_a matter_n how_o mr._n o._n will_v be_v able_a to_o infer_v hence_o that_o ordination_n by_o mere_a presbyter_n can_v be_v lawful_a or_o that_o they_o have_v a_o intrinsic_a power_n to_o ordain_v i_o be_o yet_o to_o learn_v if_o these_o pseudo_fw-la episcopi_fw-la be_v real_a bishop_n as_o they_o must_v have_v be_v if_o their_o ordination_n be_v valid_a when_o the_o proper_a bishop_n consent_n be_v first_o obtain_v what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o advantage_n of_o presbyterian_a ordination_n ãâã_d who_o will_v believe_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n at_o this_o time_n of_o day_n viz._n in_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o 5_o century_n will_v decree_v any_o thing_n that_o may_v countenance_v the_o ordination_n of_o mere_a presbyter_n this_o be_v plain_a that_o though_o the_o pope_n call_v they_o pseudo_fw-la episcopi_fw-la yet_o they_o reckon_v themselves_o real_a bishop_n and_o not_o mere_a presbyter_n which_o be_v a_o strong_a presumption_n that_o in_o those_o time_n mere_a presbyter_n be_v not_o allow_v to_o ordain_v for_o to_o what_o purpose_n else_o shall_v they_o assume_v the_o title_n and_o character_n of_o bishop_n our_o presbyterian_o do_v not_o think_v there_o be_v any_o need_n for_o they_o to_o usurp_v the_o title_n of_o bishop_n and_o that_o because_o they_o believe_v themselves_o to_o have_v power_n of_o ordination_n as_o presbyter_n all_o the_o difficulty_n be_v why_o leo_n call_v they_o pseudo_fw-la episcopi_fw-la if_o they_o be_v real_a bishop_n ans._n the_o reason_n hereof_o ay_o conceiué_fw-fr be_v because_o they_o have_v be_v ordain_v bishop_n but_o be_v not_o possess_v of_o any_o diocese_n in_o those_o province_n and_o yet_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o act_n there_o which_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v do_v it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o peace_n and_o establish_a order_n of_o the_o church_n this_o appear_v from_o the_o first_o word_n of_o the_o decree_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n they_o shall_v be_v account_v bishop_n that_o be_v have_v liberty_n to_o act_n as_o bishop_n in_o those_o diocese_n and_o province_n who_o be_v neither_o choose_v by_o the_o clergy_n nor_o desire_v by_o the_o people_n nor_o consecrate_a by_o the_o provincial_a bishop_n at_o the_o appointment_n of_o the_o metropolitan_a from_o these_o word_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o mere_a presbyter_n for_o it_o be_v never_o require_v by_o any_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n that_o mere_a presbyter_n be_v to_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o provincial_a bishop_n with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o metropolitan_a this_o ecclesiastical_a rule_n and_o constitution_n concern_v bishop_n only_o so_o that_o i_o reckon_v the_o pope_n call_v they_o pseudo_fw-la episcopi_fw-la not_o because_o they_o be_v not_o ordain_v bishop_n but_o because_o they_o act_v irregular_o in_o other_o bishop_n diocese_n chap._n xvi_o of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o island_n of_o taprobane_n we_o be_v come_v now_o to_o the_o year_n 520._o when_o say_v mr._n o._n 158._o in_o the_o island_n of_o taprobane_n or_o ceylon_n zeilan_n as_o it_o be_v now_o call_v there_o be_v a_o church_n of_o christian_n govern_v by_o a_o presbyter_n and_o his_o deacon_n without_o any_o superior_a bishop_n to_o who_o he_o or_o his_o flock_n be_v subject_a this_o island_n
be_v above_o 2000_o mile_n in_o compass_n a_o province_n big_a enough_o for_o a_o bishop_n yet_o have_v none_o in_o justin_n the_o emperor_n time_n which_o be_v about_o the_o year_n 520._o but_z be_v under_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o a_o presbyter_n ordain_v in_o persia_n who_o in_o all_o likelihood_n ordain_v his_o successor_n and_o will_v not_o be_v at_o the_o trouble_n of_o send_v for_o one_o to_o very_o remote_a country_n from_o hence_o mr._n o._n roundly_o conclude_v that_o bishop_n be_v not_o think_v essential_a to_o church_n no_o not_o in_o the_o 6_o age_n and_o that_o mere_a presbyter_n have_v power_n of_o jurisdiction_n and_o consequent_o of_o ordination_n i_o will_v not_o now_o contest_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o story_n let_v we_o rather_o suppose_v the_o matter_n of_o fact_n to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v report_v by_o mr._n o._n but_o i_o have_v these_o follow_a thing_n to_o reply_v to_o it_o and_o to_o the_o conclusion_n draw_v from_o it_o 1._o how_o do_v mr._n o._n know_v that_o this_o presbyter_n and_o his_o deacon_n and_o the_o flock_n of_o christian_n belong_v to_o they_o be_v without_o a_o superior_a bishop_n to_o who_o they_o be_v subject_a they_o may_v be_v subject_a to_o some_o bishop_n in_o persia_n for_o any_o thing_n he_o can_v tell_v or_o the_o first_o relator_n say_v it_o be_v true_a this_o presbyter_n regebat_fw-la he_o do_v rule_v the_o flock_n but_o it_o may_v be_v under_o some_o bishop_n the_o likelihood_n hereof_o be_v the_o great_a because_o he_o be_v ordain_v in_o persia_n and_o from_o thence_o send_v to_o propagate_v the_o gospel_n 2._o whereas_o mr._n o._n think_v to_o magnify_v the_o power_n of_o presbyter_n and_o to_o show_v what_o vast_a church_n have_v be_v rule_v by_o they_o without_o bishop_n acquaint_v we_o that_o this_o island_n be_v or_o be_v 2000_o mile_n in_o compass_n and_o that_o it_o be_v big_a enough_o for_o a_o bishop_n it_o may_v not_o be_v unseasonable_a to_o ask_v he_o first_o whether_o he_o be_v not_o mistake_v in_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o island_n heylin_n make_v it_o but_o 700_o or_o 800_o at_o most_o well_o but_o i_o will_v not_o stand_v with_o mr._n o._n for_o 1200_o or_o 1300_o mile_n almost_o two_o three_o shall_v ãâã_d break_v square_n between_o he_o and_o i_o especial_o since_o he_o have_v so_o good_a a_o geographer_n on_o his_o side_n as_o n._n lloyd_n grant_v then_o this_o 2._o neither_o his_o countryman_n lloyd_n nor_o heylin_n make_v any_o mention_n of_o christian_n in_o this_o island_n the_o story_n than_o may_v be_v but_o a_o fable_n at_o last_o 3._o i_o ask_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o more_o than_o one_o single_a congregation_n of_o christian_n in_o this_o island_n or_o more_o than_o one_o presbyter_n and_o his_o deacon_n if_o not_o he_o have_v the_o reason_n why_o there_o be_v no_o bishop_n in_o the_o island_n but_o that_o the_o presbyter_n and_o his_o flock_n be_v subject_a unto_o some_o persian_a bishop_n if_o he_o say_v there_o be_v christian_n up_o and_o down_o in_o the_o island_n as_o his_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o large_a compass_n of_o it_o seem_v to_o intimate_v and_o many_o congregation_n and_o yet_o this_o presbyter_n rule_v they_o all_o why_o then_o we_o have_v a_o real_a though_o not_o nominal_a bishop_n i_o mean_v in_o respect_n of_o jurisdiction_n 4._o whereas_o mr._n o._n make_v this_o reflection_n that_o this_o island_n in_o compass_n 2000_o miles_n be_v a_o province_n big_a enough_o for_o a_o bishop_n he_o will_v give_v i_o leave_v i_o hope_v to_o retort_v that_o it_o seem_v it_o be_v not_o too_o big_a for_o one_o presbyter_n and_o his_o deacon_n 3._o let_v it_o be_v observe_v that_o mr._n o._n know_v not_o but_o this_o presbyter_n have_v a_o predecessor_n in_o that_o island_n for_o there_o be_v a_o tradition_n that_o philip_n the_o evangelist_n preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o persia_n india_n and_o taprobane_n i_o demand_v then_o upon_o that_o supposition_n who_o ordain_v his_o predecessor_n a_o bishop_n in_o persia_n in_o likelihood_n for_o so_o much_o be_v reasonable_o gather_v from_o this_o presbyter_n be_v himself_o ordain_v there_o and_o bishop_n be_v before_o that_o time_n in_o persia_n 14._o if_o so_o there_o be_v more_o probability_n that_o this_o presbyter_n successor_n also_o be_v ordain_v in_o persia_n than_o that_o the_o presbyter_n himself_o ordain_v he_o but_o these_o thing_n be_v all_o in_o the_o dark_a and_o we_o know_v not_o certain_o that_o this_o presbyter_n have_v either_o a_o predecessor_n or_o a_o successor_n and_o so_o mr._n oh_o whole_a argument_n be_v lose_v he_o have_v build_v upon_o no_o foundation_n it_o tumble_v down_o ãâã_d it_o be_v own_o accord_n i_o add_v it_o be_v likely_a this_o church_n in_o taprobane_n increase_v not_o much_o nor_o continue_v long_o there_o be_v no_o monument_n of_o a_o christian_a church_n there_o but_o the_o monk_n cosma_n tale_n of_o this_o single_a presbyter_n 4._o since_o we_o must_v contend_v with_o likelihood_n i_o ask_v whether_o it_o be_v not_o much_o more_o likely_a that_o this_o presbyter_n be_v ordain_v in_o persia_n do_v take_v care_n rather_o that_o his_o successor_n if_o he_o have_v any_o shall_v be_v there_o ordain_v likewise_o than_o that_o himself_o shall_v presume_v to_o ordain_v he_o there_o be_v not_o any_o the_o least_o ground_n to_o conjecture_v that_o the_o presbyter_n himself_o ordain_v he_o but_o there_o be_v some_o to_o think_v that_o his_o successor_n be_v ordain_v in_o persia_n viz._n because_o he_o himself_o be_v 5._o admit_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o island_n of_o taprobane_n continue_v there_o for_o some_o age_n if_o it_o increase_v not_o much_o which_o be_v most_o likely_a because_o we_o hear_v nothing_o more_o of_o it_o it_o may_v depend_v upon_o and_o remain_v subject_a unto_o some_o persian_a bishop_n and_o be_v under_o his_o guidance_n and_o direction_n as_o our_o western_a island_n be_v under_o the_o bishop_n of_o london_n if_o it_o flourish_v and_o christian_n multiply_v considerable_o there_o who_o can_v tell_v but_o they_o have_v bishop_n of_o their_o own_o afterward_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o matter_n be_v a_o certain_a monk_n call_v cosmas_n a_o man_n of_o no_o note_n and_o reputation_n that_o i_o know_v of_o tell_v a_o lame_a story_n of_o a_o presbyter_n without_o a_o name_n which_o render_v the_o tale_n suspicious_a who_o in_o the_o year_n 520_o when_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o be_v confess_o episcopal_n be_v ordain_v in_o persia_n where_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v episcopal_a and_o rule_v a_o church_n in_o zeilan_n no_o one_o know_v how_o numerous_a or_o how_o long_o he_o rule_v it_o nor_o how_o long_o it_o continue_v a_o church_n without_o a_o superior_a bishop_n say_v mr._n o._n which_o be_v more_o than_o be_v testify_v by_o the_o relator_n and_o in_o all_o likelihood_n ordain_v his_o own_o successor_n and_o will_v not_o be_v at_o the_o trouble_v of_o send_v for_o one_o to_o very_o remote_a country_n all_o which_o be_v speak_v at_o random_n it_o be_v in_o the_o story_n not_o so_o much_o as_o intimate_v that_o he_o have_v any_o successor_n or_o that_o he_o ordain_v he_o or_o that_o he_o be_v unwilling_a to_o get_v a_o successor_n from_o a_o remote_a country_n and_o from_o hence_o without_o any_o colour_n of_o pretence_n very_o rash_o and_o very_o weak_o mr._n o._n have_v gather_v that_o even_o in_o the_o 6_o century_n bishop_n be_v think_v essential_a and_o that_o mere_a presbyter_n have_v power_n to_o ordain_v if_o this_o must_v pass_v for_o a_o tolerable_a argument_n against_o episcopal_a government_n or_o in_o the_o least_o favour_n the_o presbyterian_a i_o do_v renounce_v all_o pretence_n to_o common_a sense_n chap._n xvii_o of_o pelagius_n his_o ordination_n we_o have_v now_o be_v a_o long_a journey_n in_o search_n after_o some_o instance_n of_o presbyter_n ordain_v or_o some_o law_n and_o custom_n that_o warrant_v it_o we_o have_v be_v in_o africa_n and_o among_o the_o moor_n in_o egypt_n and_o the_o desert_n of_o scetis_n at_o taprobane_n which_o lie_v to_o east-india_n among_o the_o northern_a scythian_n in_o england_n and_o in_o france_n and_o among_o the_o pict_n and_o scot_n in_o the_o most_o remote_a part_n of_o britain_n we_o have_v examine_v the_o most_o famous_a council_n and_o their_o definition_n of_o nice_a of_o ancyra_n antioch_n and_o the_o carthaginian_a synod_n and_o all_o to_o as_o little_a purpose_n as_o they_o who_o seek_v a_o needle_n in_o a_o bottle_n of_o hay_n we_o be_v now_o at_o length_n go_v to_o visit_v limina_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la rome_n its_o self_n the_o centre_n of_o christendom_n and_o thence_o to_o learn_v what_o may_v be_v find_v in_o the_o practice_n of_o st._n peter_n and_o st._n paul_n successor_n for_o presbyter_n power_n to_o ordain_v and_o sure_o we_o will_v not_o decline_v the_o
determination_n of_o this_o question_n which_o the_o infallible_a church_n have_v make_v by_o her_o example_n to_o this_o purpose_n therefore_o we_o be_v put_v in_o mind_n of_o the_o ordination_n of_o pelagius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o happen_v about_o the_o year_n 555_o and_o be_v remember_v by_o anastasius_n who_o write_v the_o life_n of_o the_o pope_n anastasius_n then_o 140._o relate_v as_o mr._n o._n tell_v i_o how_o that_o pelagius_n the_o first_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v ordain_v by_o john_n bishop_n of_o perusia_n bonus_n bishop_n of_o florence_n and_o andrea_n presbyter_n de_fw-fr hostia_fw-la whereas_o by_o the_o canon_n three_o bishop_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o the_o ordination_n of_o a_o bishop_n before_o i_o make_v a_o direct_a answer_n to_o this_o and_o to_o the_o argument_n which_o mr._n o._n build_v upon_o the_o fact_n it_o be_v requisite_a that_o i_o tell_v the_o story_n a_o little_a more_o large_o for_o some_o man_n have_v get_v a_o scurvy_a trick_n to_o leave_v out_o whatever_o be_v to_o their_o disadvantage_n or_o in_o validate_n the_o force_n of_o their_o argument_n it_o be_v not_o the_o truth_n but_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o cause_n which_o they_o labour_v to_o support_v the_o story_n than_o be_v thus_o vigilius_n the_o immediate_a predecessor_n of_o pelagius_n ejus_fw-la have_v be_v severe_o treat_v at_o constantinople_n by_o justinian_n or_o rather_o theodora_n his_o empress_n and_o return_v back_o to_o rome_n fall_v sick_a and_o die_v pelagius_n be_v suspect_v to_o have_v have_v a_o hand_n in_o his_o death_n anasta_n at_o least_o have_v be_v his_o enemy_n and_o a_o cause_n supra_fw-la of_o his_o suffering_n for_o which_o reason_n the_o clergy_n hate_v pelagius_n so_o that_o he_o can_v not_o procure_v three_o bishop_n to_o consecrate_v he_o he_o therefore_o in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o three_o admit_v andrea_n the_o presbyter_n of_o hostia_fw-la and_o what_o will_v not_o such_o a_o man_n as_o pelagius_n do_v to_o establish_v himself_o in_o so_o considerable_a a_o post_n as_o the_o bishopric_n of_o rome_n but_o if_o such_o as_o these_o shall_v pass_v for_o good_a precedent_n any_o irregularity_n in_o the_o world_n may_v at_o this_o rate_n be_v justify_v thus_o much_o be_v premise_v let_v we_o see_v what_o use_n mr._n o._n make_v of_o this_o ordination_n of_o pelagius_n he_o argue_v thus_o either_o pelagius_n be_v no_o canonical_a bishop_n etc._n etc._n or_o else_o a_o presbyter_n have_v intrinsic_a power_n of_o ordination_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v either_o pelagius_n be_v no_o canonical_a bishop_n and_o then_o the_o succession_n be_v interrupt_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o consequent_o the_o english_a bishop_n have_v no_o canonical_a succession_n or_o etc._n etc._n ans._n i_o reply_v that_o though_o pelagius_n be_v no_o canonical_a bishop_n i._n e._n not_o canonical_o ordain_v yet_o this_o notwithstanding_o the_o english_a bishop_n have_v true_a canonical_a succession_n for_o 1._o we_o need_v not_o pretend_v to_o derive_v the_o succession_n of_o our_o bishop_n from_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v more_o probable_a that_o they_o be_v the_o successor_n of_o st._n paul_n or_o some_o other_o apostolical_a man_n who_o first_o plant_v the_o gospel_n here_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o soon_o after_o so_o that_o we_o be_v not_o concern_v at_o any_o irregularity_n suppose_v in_o the_o roman_a succession_n 2._o we_o have_v bishop_n here_o in_o england_n or_o britain_n long_o before_o pelagius_n be_v pope_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o some_o british_a bishop_n assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o arles_n hold_v in_o the_o day_n of_o constantine_n the_o great_a and_o at_o that_o of_o ariminum_n call_v together_o by_o constantius_n his_o son_n above_o 200_o year_n before_o pelagius_n and_o this_o race_n of_o bishop_n continue_v even_o unto_o austin_n the_o monk_n come_v hither_o whatever_o then_o become_v of_o pelagius_n his_o consecration_n it_o be_v no_o matter_n to_o we_o his_o irregularity_n affect_v not_o our_o english_a bishop_n 3._o suppose_v what_o nevertheless_o be_v not_o true_a that_o the_o heathen_a saxon_n the_o angli_fw-la and_o the_o dane_n quite_o extirpated_a christianity_n in_o this_o land_n until_o austin_n the_o monk_n come_v from_o rome_n with_o the_o pope_n commission_n once_o more_o reduce_v and_o bring_v back_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o this_o isle_n unto_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o give_v we_o a_o new_a line_n of_o bishop_n yet_o still_o the_o irregularity_n of_o pelagius_n consecration_n will_v not_o at_o all_o disparage_v our_o succession_n of_o bishop_n as_o mr._n o._n know_v very_o well_o if_o he_o will_v not_o dissemble_v for_o i_o ought_v to_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v read_v the_o know_a history_n of_o venerable_n bede_n over_o and_o over_o and_o thorough_o digest_v he_o because_o he_o so_o oft_o and_o familiar_o quote_v he_o in_o the_o plea_n etc._n etc._n he_o may_v then_o please_v to_o remember_v that_o austin_n be_v not_o create_v bishop_n by_o pope_n gregory_n but_o by_o etherius_fw-la archbishop_n of_o arles_n in_o france_n interea_fw-la vir_fw-la domini_fw-la augustinus_n 27._o venit_fw-la arelas_n &_o ab_fw-la archiepiscopo_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la civitatis_fw-la etherio_fw-la juxta_fw-la quod_fw-la jussa_fw-la sti._n patris_fw-la gregorii_n acceperant_fw-la archiepiscopus_fw-la genti_fw-la anglorum_fw-la ordinatus_fw-la est_fw-la so_o that_o from_o henceforth_o mr._n o._n and_o the_o papist_n may_v take_v notice_n that_o the_o english_a bishop_n as_o to_o the_o succession_n of_o their_o order_n be_v nothing_o behold_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n at_o least_o not_o unto_o pelagius_n that_o if_o etherius_fw-la be_v a_o canonical_a bishop_n as_o i_o must_v believe_v till_o the_o contrary_a be_v prove_v so_o be_v austin_n a_o canonical_a bishop_n and_o so_o be_v our_o english_a bishop_n unto_o this_o day_n whatever_o become_v of_o pelagius_n his_o consecration_n without_o any_o far_a fear_n of_o danger_n therefore_o i_o may_v conclude_v that_o pelagius_n be_v no_o canonical_a bishop_n that_o be_v be_v not_o canonical_o ordain_v and_o yet_o we_o have_v a_o true_a succession_n of_o canonical_o ordain_v bishop_n in_o england_n but_o mr._n o._n go_v on_o or_o else_o he_o be_v a_o canonical_a bishop_n and_o what_o then_o why_o then_o it_o follow_v a_o presbyter_n have_v a_o canonical_a power_n to_o ordain_v for_o so_o andreas_n have_v if_o pelagius_n be_v canonical_o ordain_v and_o then_o by_o another_o consequence_n that_o presbyter_n have_v a_o intrinsic_a power_n to_o ordain_v because_o no_o ecclesiastical_a law_n can_v give_v to_o any_o order_n of_o man_n a_o canonical_a power_n to_o that_o which_o they_o have_v not_o a_o intrinsical_a power_n to_o do_v suppose_v this_o for_o i_o need_v not_o contend_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o the_o answer_n then_o to_o the_o whole_a argument_n be_v as_o before_o that_o pelagius_n be_v not_o canonical_o ordain_v but_o now_o i_o think_v on_o it_o what_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v affirm_v that_o pelagius_n be_v canonical_o ordain_v and_o yet_o assert_v that_o a_o presbyter_n have_v not_o a_o intrinsical_a power_n to_o ordain_v the_o first_o apostolical_a canon_n decree_n let_v a_o bishop_n be_v ordain_v by_o two_o or_o three_o bishop_n pelagius_n consecration_n therefore_o be_v canonical_a be_v perform_v by_o two_o bishop_n according_a to_o this_o canoh_fw-mi and_o presbyter_n andreas_n may_v stand_v for_o a_o cypher_n true_o the_o nicene_n and_o other_o synod_n afterward_o say_v by_o three_o bishop_n nevertheless_o the_o apostolical_a canon_n be_v always_o reckon_v as_o part_v of_o the_o code_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n the_o nicene_n and_o all_o other_o canon_n aught_o in_o conformity_n to_o this_o to_o be_v favourable_o interpret_v i_o mean_v that_o it_o do_v not_o intend_v peremptory_o to_o command_v but_o rather_o prudential_o advise_v that_o if_o it_o can_v be_v a_o bishop_n shall_v be_v consecrate_a by_o three_o bishop_n it_o be_v not_o improbable_a but_o pelagius_n consecration_n be_v upon_o this_o very_a account_n afterward_o allow_v of_o for_o this_o be_v manifest_a that_o pelagius_n what_o ever_o his_o ordination_n be_v be_v not_o reckon_v among_o the_o schismatical_a bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o be_v acknowledge_v and_o peaceable_o submit_v to_o mr._n o._n then_o be_v too_o positive_a when_o he_o affirm_v that_o by_o the_o canon_n three_o bishop_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o the_o ordination_n of_o a_o bishop_n without_o all_o peradventure_o few_o may_v serve_v in_o case_n of_o necessity_n as_o this_o haply_o afterward_o may_v be_v judge_v if_o god_n himself_o be_v please_v that_o his_o own_o law_n shall_v submit_v to_o those_o of_o necessity_n much_o more_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v wise_a man_n have_v so_o determine_v even_o in_o this_o particular_a case_n gregory_n declare_v that_o austin_n notwithstanding_o the_o canon_n might_n himself_o alone_o consecrate_v bishop_n &_o quidem_fw-la in_o
anglorum_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la in_fw-la qua_fw-la solus_fw-la tu_fw-la episcopus_fw-la inveniris_fw-la ordinare_fw-la episcopum_fw-la non_fw-la aliter_fw-la nisi_fw-la sine_fw-la episcopis_fw-la potes_fw-la 8._o doubtless_o than_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o canon_n must_v be_v that_o in_o ordinary_a and_o when_o it_o may_v be_v with_o convenience_n three_o bishop_n be_v require_v to_o the_o consecration_n of_o a_o bishop_n though_o even_o one_o in_o the_o case_n of_o necessity_n be_v sufficient_a i_o will_v not_o affirm_v there_o be_v a_o necessity_n in_o the_o case_n of_o pelagius_n because_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n he_o shall_v be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n yet_o after_o his_o consecration_n the_o wise_a italian_n may_v judge_v it_o necessary_a to_o overlook_v the_o late_a canon_n and_o confirm_v his_o consecration_n rather_o than_o create_v a_o antipope_n and_o a_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n pelagius_n then_o be_v a_o canonical_a bishop_n according_a to_o the_o apostolical_a canon_n though_o not_o canonical_o ordain_v according_a to_o the_o strictness_n of_o the_o nicene_n canon_n but_o it_o will_v be_v demand_v why_o do_v not_o pelagius_n content_v himself_o with_o two_o bishop_n but_o take_v in_o a_o presbyter_n to_o assist_v in_o the_o ordination_n the_o reason_n be_v plain_a because_o pelagius_n be_v a_o wise_a man_n as_o be_v to_o be_v presume_v though_o not_o so_o good_a as_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v will_v give_v his_o adversary_n as_o little_a occasion_n as_o be_v possible_a to_o quarrel_v at_o his_o ãâã_d if_o therefore_o he_o can_v not_o get_v three_o bishop_n he_o at_o least_o procure_v two_o and_o a_o three_o person_n and_o so_o come_v as_o near_o to_o the_o nicene_n canon_n as_o he_o can_v he_o observe_v the_o number_n though_o not_o the_o exact_a qualification_n of_o the_o ordainer_n and_o so_o vary_v as_o little_a from_o the_o rule_n as_o may_v be_v hereby_o he_o make_v account_n to_o impose_v upon_o the_o ignorant_a multitude_n who_o it_o be_v likely_a be_v the_o principal_a spectator_n of_o the_o solemnity_n of_o his_o ordination_n for_o the_o clergy_n will_v not_o be_v present_a to_o countenance_v his_o ordination_n who_o they_o hate_v chap._n xviii_o of_o the_o waldenses_n the_o boyarians_n the_o lollard_n and_o some_o other_o people_n who_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o roman_a communion_n of_o the_o waldenses_n mr._n o._n speak_v in_o his_o preface_n page_n 1._o etc._n etc._n and_o in_o the_o plea_n p._n 156_o to_o the_o effect_n follow_v that_o the_o vaudois_n or_o waldenses_n have_v have_v no_o other_o minister_n for_o near_o 500_o year_n past_a than_o presbyter_n ordain_v by_o presbyter_n without_o bishop_n that_o they_o maintain_v all_o minister_n to_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o parity_n that_o their_o presbyter_n impose_v hand_n for_o ordination_n that_o the_o fratres_n bohemi_n have_v their_o succession_n of_o minister_n from_o these_o waldenses_n and_o for_o the_o truth_n of_o all_o this_o he_o quote_v perrin_n history_n of_o the_o waldenses_n of_o what_o authority_n perrin_n be_v may_v be_v hence_o guess_v that_o the_o synod_n which_o set_v he_o on_o work_n disapprove_v it_o as_o i_o be_o tell_v or_o whether_o mr._n o._n have_v give_v we_o a_o honest_a and_o fair_a account_n of_o he_o i_o know_v not_o i_o be_o a_o stranger_n to_o that_o author_n nor_o can_v i_o hereabout_o light_a on_o he_o neither_o be_o i_o very_o much_o concern_v about_o any_o thing_n he_o say_v which_o be_v so_o late_o sc_n according_a to_o mr._n oh_o computation_n near_o 1200_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o so_o obscure_a that_o no_o weight_n can_v be_v lay_v upon_o the_o argument_n draw_v from_o the_o practice_n of_o these_o waldenses_n i_o say_v obscure_a for_o they_o be_v a_o poor_a and_o illiterate_a thin_a scatter_a and_o harass_v people_n and_o almost_o always_o under_o persecution_n it_o be_v moral_o impossible_a they_o shall_v have_v a_o exact_a history_n of_o themselves_o transmit_v unto_o these_o last_o age_n especial_o consider_v that_o their_o enemy_n the_o papist_n make_v it_o their_o business_n to_o destroy_v the_o most_o ancient_a record_n of_o that_o people_n and_o as_o sir_n s._n morland_n testify_v 8._o the_o most_o that_o be_v know_v of_o they_o be_v suppose_v general_o to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o their_o adversary_n write_n who_o will_v sometime_o make_v bold_a to_o load_v those_o who_o separate_v from_o they_o with_o calumny_n and_o fasten_v on_o they_o odd_a opinion_n mere_o to_o expose_v and_o render_v they_o the_o more_o odious_a last_o although_o i_o do_v not_o delight_v to_o detract_v from_o their_o merit_n yet_o i_o see_v no_o great_a reason_n for_o those_o excessive_a commendation_n some_o think_v ãâã_d to_o bestow_v on_o they_o when_o i_o call_v to_o mind_n that_o at_o the_o time_n when_o the_o fratres_n bohemi_n become_v ãâã_d acquaint_v with_o they_o they_o find_v the_o waldenses_n take_v the_o liberty_n of_o go_v to_o mass_n and_o join_v with_o the_o papist_n in_o their_o idolatrous_a worship_n 24_o nevertheless_o these_o exception_n set_v apart_o what_o i_o find_v in_o such_o author_n as_o be_v at_o hand_n shall_v here_o be_v produce_v to_o confront_v the_o other_o cite_v by_o mr._n o._n to_o the_o end_n the_o reader_n may_v judge_v whether_o mr._n o._n and_o his_o author_n perrin_n have_v make_v a_o faithful_a report_n of_o the_o waldensian_a church_n at_o least_o whether_o it_o may_v not_o true_o be_v affirm_v that_o the_o history_n of_o that_o people_n be_v so_o uncertain_a that_o no_o argument_n can_v thence_o be_v draw_v to_o countenance_v the_o presbyterian_a government_n and_o ordination_n by_o mere_a presbyter_n sir_n sam._n morland_n in_o his_o history_n of_o the_o waldenses_n show_v 10._o that_o claudius_n archbishop_n of_o turin_n be_v a_o great_a promoter_n of_o true_a doctrine_n against_o roman_a idolatry_n in_o his_o diocese_n that_o the_o waldenses_n succeed_v this_o archbishop_n 11._o that_o the_o say_a archbishop_n deliver_v his_o doctrine_n to_o his_o disciple_n and_o these_o unto_o their_o successor_n unto_o the_o nine_o and_o ten_o century_n introd_a in_o the_o year_n 1059._o the_o waldenses_n again_o separate_v from_o rome_n 238._o in_o the_o year_n 1223._o the_o albigenses_n in_o bulgaria_n croatia_n and_o dalmatia_n have_v one_o bartholomew_n who_o they_o style_v their_o pope_n the_o pope_n legate_n call_v he_o bishop_n mat._n paris_n antipope_n add_v that_o he_o draw_v over_o to_o he_o bishop_n and_o other_o and_o that_o he_o ordain_v bishop_n 752._o in_o the_o year_n 1254._o reinerius_n make_v mention_n of_o their_o bishop_n in_o lombardy_n in_o the_o year_n 1470._o the_o waldenses_n in_o moravia_n and_o austria_n have_v bishop_n etc._n they_o assert_v that_o they_o have_v lawful_o ordain_v bishop_n among_o they_o and_o a_o uninterrupted_a sucession_n of_o that_o order_n even_o from_o the_o apostle_n although_o out_o of_o hatred_n to_o the_o papist_n they_o choose_v to_o call_v they_o seniores_fw-la and_o antistites_fw-la in_o their_o responsio_fw-la excusatoria_n expetendarum_fw-la anno_fw-la 1500._o they_o declare_v nec_fw-la summum_fw-la ãâã_d romanum_fw-la nec_fw-la nostrum_fw-la nec_fw-la quempiam_fw-la alium_fw-la caput_fw-la esse_fw-la ãâã_d plain_o intimate_v that_o they_o have_v bishop_n among_o they_o as_o well_o as_o the_o romanist_n anno_fw-la 1655._o leger_n be_v moderator_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o valley_n 243._o which_o office_n be_v for_o life_n with_o power_n to_o call_v synod_n to_o preside_v in_o they_o and_o to_o lay_v on_o hand_n thus_o much_o be_v deliver_v as_o matter_n of_o fact_n let_v we_o now_o see_v what_o be_v their_o principle_n concern_v church-government_n wolfius_n 380._o say_v they_o hold_v there_o be_v but_o three_o degree_n of_o church-officer_n sc_n bishop_n priest_n sacerdotes_fw-la and_o deacon_n the_o same_o be_v deliver_v by_o guido_n but_o aeneas_n silvius_n 14._o that_o a_o bishop_n be_v not_o superior_a to_o a_o presbyter_n either_o in_o dignity_n or_o in_o power_n as_o alphonsus_n de_fw-fr castro_n also_o observe_v 337._o and_o most_o of_o the_o popish_a writer_n charge_v they_o with_o that_o opinion_n but_o one_o of_o they_o viz._n reinerius_n do_v set_v forth_o their_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n to_o the_o effect_n follow_v the_o cathari_n or_o puritan_n mean_v the_o waldenses_n have_v four_o ecclesiastical_a order_n viz._n the_o bishop_n the_o elder_a son_n the_o young_a son_n something_o like_o the_o chorepiscopus_n or_o suffragan_n bishop_n and_o the_o deacon_n the_o office_n of_o the_o bishop_n be_v always_o tenere_fw-la prioratum_fw-la to_o possess_v the_o supremacy_n in_o every_o thing_n do_v in_o the_o imposition_n ãâã_d hand_n in_o celebrate_v the_o lord's-supper_n and_o in_o begin_v the_o prayer_n as_o do_v the_o elder_a son_n in_o the_o bishop_n absence_n the_o say_v order_n be_v create_v by_o the_o bishop_n or_o by_o the_o son_n with_o the_o bishop_n ãâã_d when_o the_o bishop_n be_v dead_a the_o young_a son_n ordain_v the_o elder_a a_o
bishop_n then_o the_o bishop_n ordain_v the_o young_a son_n to_o be_v the_o elder_a and_o last_o another_o young_a son_n be_v choose_v by_o prelatis_n &_o subditis_fw-la the_o minister_n and_o people_n and_o ordain_v but_o by_o another_o part_n of_o these_o cathari_n near_o the_o sea_n thus_o the_o bishop_n before_o his_o death_n ordain_v the_o elder_a son_n bishop_n to_o succeed_v he_o and_o then_o as_o before_o all_o the_o aforesaid_a ordination_n be_v make_v with_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o the_o honour_n of_o ordain_v and_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v attribute_v unto_o the_o bishop_n or_o unto_o he_o that_o be_v the_o elder_a son_n who_o hold_v he_o book_n of_o the_o new-testament_n 758._o upon_o the_o head_n of_o he_o on_o who_o the_o hand_n be_v lay_v thus_o much_o their_o adversary_n say_v of_o they_o wherein_z doubtless_o there_o be_v a_o mixture_n of_o truth_n and_o i_o alshood_n at_o least_o this_o miserable_a people_n scatter_v up_o and_o down_o do_v somewhat_o vary_v in_o their_o rite_n and_o be_v never_o at_o all_o time_n and_o in_o all_o place_n steady_a to_o themselves_o i_o have_v mention_v before_o how_o that_o about_o the_o year_n 1470._o the_o waldenses_n in_o austria_n and_o moravia_n have_v bishop_n and_o from_o these_o it_o be_v that_o the_o fratres_n ãâã_d draw_v the_o succession_n of_o their_o ãâã_d order_n which_o history_n will_v deserve_v here_o to_o be_v more_o particular_o transcribe_v in_o order_n whereunto_o i_o must_v now_o tell_v the_o story_n of_o the_o fratres_n bohemi_n as_o comenius_n and_o the_o history_n of_o the_o persecut_n bohem_n have_v make_v it_o ready_a to_o my_o hand_n fetch_v it_o from_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o christianity_n the_o sclavonian_a nation_n be_v convert_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n rom._n 15._o 19_o 2_o ep._n to_o tim._n 4._o 10._o by_o sclavonian_n comenius_n mean_v all_o the_o nation_n from_o macedonia_n northward_o even_o to_o 4._o russia_n polonia_n and_o germany_n some_o proof_n of_o their_o early_a embrace_v the_o gospel_n he_o fetch_v from_o st._n jerom_n who_o be_v bear_v 5._o at_o strydon_n a_o city_n of_o ãâã_d or_o dalmatia_n in_o the_o six_o synod_n of_o constantinople_n in_o the_o year_n 680._o the_o lombard_n and_o sclavonian_n be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v christian_n about_o the_o year_n 861._o cyrillus_n and_o methodius_n two_o grecian_a bishop_n make_v the_o ibid._n people_n inhabit_v about_o the_o danube_n christian_n and_o then_o pass_v into_o moravia_n and_o bohemia_n propagate_v the_o faith_n among_o they_o 7._o after_o this_o comenius_n mention_n ditmarus_n saxo_n bishop_n of_o prague_n *_o the_o history_n of_o the_o bohemian_a persecution_n tell_v of_o waytichius_fw-la ii_o bishop_n of_o prague_n in_o the_o year_n 907._o of_o boleslaus_n pius_n another_o bishop_n of_o prague_n anno_fw-la 965._o of_o priest_n 9_o and_o prelate_n anno_fw-la 1197._o who_o oppose_v the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o 36._o pope_n and_o of_o conrade_n bishop_n of_o prague_n who_o leave_v the_o romish_a error_n remain_v bishop_n there_o anno_fw-la 1421._o about_o 20_o year_n before_o this_o happen_v viz._n anno_fw-la 1400._o the_o bohemian_a church_n separate_v from_o the_o roman_a upon_o the_o account_n that_o the_o public_a prayer_n be_v make_v in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n that_o the_o clergy_n be_v oblige_v to_o celibacy_n that_o transubstatiation_n be_v make_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o the_o people_n be_v deprive_v of_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o lord's-supper_n this_o occasion_v the_o dispersion_n of_o the_o bohemian_n and_o their_o settlement_n in_o austria_n from_o whence_o they_o send_v unto_o the_o greek_a church_n for_o the_o ordination_n of_o their_o minister_n and_o have_v hope_n give_v they_o of_o their_o obtain_n it_o they_o remove_v after_o into_o silesia_n 20._o now_o it_o be_v that_o gregory_n a_o holy_a man_n be_v by_o the_o persecutor_n torture_v but_o fall_v into_o a_o trance_n feel_v no_o pain_n and_o be_v believe_v dead_a recover_v he_o tell_v his_o friend_n of_o a_o vision_n wherein_z among_o other_o thing_n he_o see_v three_o man_n stand_v about_o a_o tree_n lade_v with_o fruit_n and_o defend_v it_o from_o the_o bird_n 21._o and_o about_o the_o same_o time_n the_o fratres_n bohemi_n be_v under_o some_o trouble_n of_o mind_n how_o they_o shall_v for_o the_o future_a be_v provide_v with_o a_o succession_n of_o right_o ordain_v minister_n for_o they_o consider_v that_o though_o several_a of_o the_o roman_a priest_n come_v over_o to_o they_o it_o be_v too_o uncertain_a to_o hope_v for_o they_o ãâã_d rome_n they_o doubt_v also_o whether_o the_o ordination_n be_v valid_a when_o a_o presbyter_n and_o not_o a_o bishop_n ordain_v a_o presbyter_n and_o that_o if_o the_o question_n be_v once_o move_v about_o it_o whether_o they_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o defend_v such_o a_o ordination_n either_o at_o home_o or_o abroad_o at_o length_n after_o some_o year_n deliberation_n viz_o 1467._o and_o about_o 6_o year_n after_o the_o say_a vision_n of_o gregory_n have_v fast_v and_o pray_v for_o direction_n from_o god_n they_o resolve_v upon_o the_o follow_a course_n they_o choose_v nine_o of_o the_o most_o deserve_a brethren_n and_o fit_a for_o the_o ministry_n they_o wrap_v up_o twelve_o ticket_n nine_o whereof_o be_v blank_n and_o three_o full_a one_o have_v write_v on_o they_o est_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o they_o mean_v it_o shall_v signify_v it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n but_o the_o blank_n be_v to_o denote_v it_o be_v not_o the_o will_n of_o god_n they_o shall_v have_v bishop_n these_o twelve_o ticket_n be_v mix_v be_v deliver_v to_o a_o young_a boy_n not_o know_v what_o he_o do_v to_o be_v distribute_v one_o to_o every_o one_o of_o those_o nine_o person_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o nine_o blank_a ticket_n may_v every_o one_o have_v be_v give_v out_o unto_o those_o nine_o person_n from_o whence_o it_o will_v have_v be_v conclude_v that_o what_o they_o be_v about_o to_o do_v be_v not_o the_o will_n of_o god_n but_o it_o so_o happen_v that_o the_o three_o full_a ticket_n be_v deliver_v to_o three_o of_o the_o nine_o sc_n to_o kunwaldius_fw-la praelausius_fw-la and_o crenovius_fw-la and_o hence_o they_o gather_v assure_o that_o what_o they_o be_v design_v be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n sc_n to_o seek_v for_o episcopal_a order_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o continue_v a_o right_a succession_n of_o they_o and_o that_o to_o that_o end_n those_o three_o person_n be_v to_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n according_o they_o send_v three_o person_n unto_o the_o church_n of_o the_o waldenses_n who_o be_v at_o that_o time_n plant_v in_o the_o confine_n of_o moravia_n and_o austria_n acquaint_v they_o with_o what_o be_v do_v and_o ask_v their_o advice_n one_o of_o these_o three_o be_v michael_n zambergius_n so_o call_v because_o he_o be_v pastor_n zambergensis_fw-la 20._o his_o true_a name_n be_v michael_n bradacius_fw-la how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o be_v send_v in_o the_o room_n of_o one_o of_o the_o other_o three_o choose_v by_o lot_n be_v not_o say_v time_n but_o zambergius_n and_o the_o other_o two_o come_v to_o the_o wâldenses_n find_v one_o stephen_n their_o bishop_n who_o call_v to_o he_o another_o waldensian_a bishop_n and_o some_o minister_n they_o create_v these_o three_o bishop_n with_o imposition_n of_o hand_n thereby_o confer_v on_o they_o the_o power_n of_o ordain_v minister_n 60._o ãâã_d three_o new_a ordain_v bishop_n of_o the_o fratres_n bohemi_n be_v the_o three_o which_o ãâã_d see_v in_o his_o ãâã_d guardian_n of_o the_o tree_n that_o be_v of_o the_o bohemian_a church_n note_v that_o the_o waldenses_n affirm_v themselves_o to_o have_v have_v a_o lawful_a and_o uninterrupted_a succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o the_o apostle_n day_n supra_fw-la and_o derive_v their_o original_a from_o the_o time_n of_o ãâã_d this_o happen_v i_o reckon_v about_o 1420._o or_o 1430._o about_o the_o year_n 1500._o my_o author_n witness_v that_o there_o be_v 200_o church_n in_o bohemia_n and_o moravia_n in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o bohemian_a persecution_n after_o their_o have_v receive_v bishop_n from_o the_o waldenses_n i_o read_v of_o lucas_n pragene_n bishop_n of_o the_o bohemian_n 79._o of_o sanctuariensis_fw-la a_o italian_a bishop_n who_o for_o conscience_n sake_n embrace_v the_o bohemian_a communion_n anno_fw-la 1482._o 81._o and_o of_o philip_n bishop_n of_o sidon_n be_v among_o they_o anno_fw-la 1493._o afterward_o in_o the_o year_n 1499._o the_o bohemian_n send_v as_o far_o as_o armenia_n for_o ordination_n 82._o their_o succession_n perhaps_o by_o some_o accident_n fail_v anno_fw-la 1542._o i_o find_v joane_v augusta_n be_v their_o antistes_fw-la 36._o or_o bishop_n the_o next_o year_n after_o i_o meet_v with_o a_o great_a number_n of_o the_o bohemian_n retire_v into_o prussia_n who_o their_o bishop_n mathias_n sionius_fw-la 38._o follow_v soon_o after_o
deceive_v we_o we_o have_v take_v a_o long_a and_o chargeable_a journey_n to_o the_o waldenses_n but_o have_v bring_v no_o thing_n back_o worthy_a our_o pain_n but_o a_o word_n and_o empty_a title_n thus_o the_o whole_a action_n be_v mere_a pageantry_n a_o scene_n of_o imposture_n and_o a_o intrigue_n carry_v on_o by_o hypocrite_n on_o both_o side_n this_o must_v be_v confess_v if_o the_o waldensian_a bishop_n be_v mere_o titular_a as_o mr._n o._n be_v please_v to_o say_v on_o the_o other_o hand_n the_o history_n assure_v we_o that_o the_o fratres_fw-la bohemi_n be_v exceed_o comfort_v and_o encourage_v at_o the_o return_n of_o their_o presbyter_n now_o create_v bishop_n and_o derive_v their_o order_n in_o a_o uninterrupted_a succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n as_o they_o believe_v but_o at_o length_n my_o adversary_n seem_v to_o melt_v a_o little_a and_o to_o come_v half_a way_n over_o to_o we_o he_o profess_v thus_o in_o his_o own_o and_o brethren_n name_n we_o dislke_v not_o that_o for_o order_n sake_n the_o exercise_n of_o this_o power_n shall_v be_v ordinary_o restrain_v to_o the_o grave_a minister_n provide_v they_o assume_v it_o not_o as_o proper_a to_o they_o by_o divine_a right_n nor_o clog_v it_o with_o unscriptural_a imposition_n from_o this_o conclusion_n of_o mr._n o._n it_o follow_v 1._o that_o in_o mr._n oh_o judgement_n the_o church_n may_v restrain_v the_o power_n of_o ordain_v take_v the_o exercise_n of_o it_o from_o some_o of_o the_o yonnger_n fry_n and_o lodging_n it_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o grave_a sort_n but_o the_o mischief_n be_v the_o young_a sort_n will_v present_o cry_v our_o against_o the_o usurpation_n they_o will_v plead_v that_o they_o be_v presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o other_o and_o have_v a_o inherent_a power_n to_o ordain_v that_o it_o can_v be_v take_v from_o they_o by_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n that_o they_o can_v in_o conscience_n part_n with_o that_o power_n and_o right_n which_o the_o scripture_n give_v they_o and_o in_o short_a will_v turn_v all_o mr._n oh_o batter_a ram_n against_o the_o grave_a minister_n which_o he_o have_v plant_v against_o our_o bishop_n and_o with_o more_o reason_n too_o for_o st._n paul_n when_o he_o restrain_v the_o power_n of_o ordination_n he_o have_v not_o respect_n to_o age_n but_o to_o ability_n ãâã_d by_o be_v but_o a_o young_a man_n when_o paul_n set_v he_o over_o the_o church_n of_o ãâã_d and_o i_o have_v reason_n to_o think_v ãâã_d be_v so_o too_o for_o he_o admonish_v he_o to_o take_v care_n that_o ãâã_d man_n despise_v he_o c._n 2._o 15._o where_o i_o suppose_v it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o titus_n also_o be_v but_o young_a and_o demas_n bishop_n of_o magnesia_n in_o ignatius_n be_v a_o young_a man_n also_o 2._o if_o mr._n o._n will_v be_v please_v to_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o suppose_v st._n paul_n as_o wise_a as_o himself_o it_o be_v all_o i_o ask_v i_o will_v suppose_v then_o that_o the_o say_a apostle_n for_o order_n sake_n do_v restrain_v the_o exercise_n of_o the_o ordain_v power_n to_o some_o person_n by_o he_o make_v choice_n of_o and_o for_o the_o prevention_n of_o schism_n do_v prescribe_v the_o same_o rule_n unto_o the_o church_n which_o mr._n o._n see_v some_o reason_n for_o now_o doubtless_o then_o st._n paul_n leave_v not_o the_o power_n of_o ordain_v promiscuous_o unto_o all_o presbyter_n but_o limit_v it_o unto_o a_o few_o i_o will_v not_o say_v the_o grave_a or_o old_a sort_n but_o the_o wise_a and_o most_o holy_a if_o mr._n o._n will_v nourish_v this_o principle_n and_o make_v such_o deduction_n from_o it_o as_o it_o be_v capable_a of_o he_o will_v soon_o see_v that_o episcopal_a ordination_n be_v apostolical_a but_o i_o believe_v his_o own_o party_n will_v con_v he_o no_o thanks_o for_o this_o liberal_a concession_n mr._n o._n add_v and_o not_o clog_v it_o with_o unscriptural_a imposition_n if_o there_o be_v any_o order_n in_o a_o church_n some_o few_o thing_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v impose_v but_o this_o be_v what_o the_o dissenter_n aim_v at_o that_o every_o one_o may_v be_v leave_v at_o liberty_n to_o say_v and_o do_v what_o be_v right_a in_o his_o own_o eye_n the_o imposition_n lay_v upon_o the_o ordain_v among_o we_o be_v not_o such_o as_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o alone_o devise_v but_o the_o whole_a church_n consent_v unto_o and_o though_o they_o be_v not_o prescribe_v in_o scripture_n they_o be_v not_o antiscriptural_a nor_o introduce_v into_o the_o place_n of_o any_o thing_n require_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o short_a do_v not_o the_o presbyterian_o when_o they_o be_v in_o the_o saddle_n clog_v their_o ordination_n with_o unscriptural_a imposition_n i_o mean_v that_o of_o take_v the_o covenant_n but_o this_o be_v to_o carry_v the_o controversy_n into_o another_o quarter_n i_o shall_v therefore_o let_v it_o pass_v of_o the_o lollard_n ãâã_d have_v it_o be_v ãâã_d fasten_v that_o practice_n on_o the_o lollard_n that_o their_o presbyter_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o bishop_n do_v create_v new_a presbyter_n and_o that_o every_o priest_n or_o presbyter_n have_v as_o good_a a_o power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v and_o to_o minister_v in_o all_o other_o thing_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n as_o the_o pope_n himself_o give_v or_o can_v give_v but_o to_o this_o it_o may_v be_v reply_v that_o it_o be_v only_o the_o report_n of_o a_o adversary_n and_o perhaps_o may_v be_v a_o scandal_n it_o may_v again_o be_v answer_v that_o these_o lollard_n come_v too_o late_o to_o prescribe_v unto_o the_o church_n in_o any_o thing_n by_o they_o practise_v it_o may_v yet_o further_o be_v say_v that_o when_o people_n grope_v their_o way_n in_o a_o dark_a night_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o they_o now_o and_o then_o stumble_v they_o be_v to_o be_v both_o pity_v and_o pardon_v for_o last_o it_o be_v manifest_a if_o the_o testimony_n of_o their_o adversary_n concern_v they_o be_v admit_v that_o the_o lollard_n look_v upon_o even_a presbyter_n as_o a_o order_n no_o way_n approve_v of_o by_o god_n it_o be_v one_o of_o their_o maxim_n presbyteratus_n non_fw-la est_fw-la ãâã_d approbatus_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la so_o that_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o bishop_n be_v by_o the_o same_o authority_n utter_o ãâã_d the_o church_n it_o be_v another_o of_o their_o opinion_n ãâã_d to_o ãâã_d ãâã_d 566._o that_o no_o day_n be_v holy_a not_o the_o lord's-day_n or_o sabbath_n day_n as_o people_n will_v call_v it_o but_o that_o on_o every_o day_n man_n may_v work_v eat_v and_o drink_v etc._n etc._n if_o then_o the_o lollard_n err_v thus_o gross_o in_o these_o point_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o they_o be_v mistake_v in_o that_o of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n by_o bishop_n but_o if_o their_o authority_n be_v ãâã_d to_o establish_v presbyter_n in_o the_o power_n of_o ordain_v by_o the_o same_o authority_n it_o may_v be_v prove_v the_o lordsday_n be_v not_o holy_a yea_o rather_o ãâã_d the_o order_n of_o presbyter_n be_v not_o approve_v of_o by_o god_n it_o be_v in_o vain_a for_o mr_n o._n to_o equal_v they_o unto_o bishop_n because_o the_o lollard_n bring_v they_o down_o as_o low_a as_o the_o people_n and_o utter_o cancel_v their_o office_n at_o least_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n in_o short_a i_o think_v they_o be_v a_o well_o meaning_n but_o ignorant_a people_n who_o have_v ãâã_d and_o knowledge_n enough_o to_o discover_v the_o gross_a superstition_n idolatry_n and_o corruption_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n but_o not_o to_o define_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n about_o government_n and_o discipline_n final_o note_v here_o that_o this_o instance_n of_o the_o lollard_n who_o appear_v at_o soon_a about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 14_o century_n be_v by_o mr_n o._n bring_v in_o proof_n of_o this_o proposition_n that_o ordination_n by_o 126._o presbyter_n be_v valid_a in_o the_o primitive_a church_n now_o i_o do_v believe_v that_o there_o be_v one_o other_o author_n extant_a that_o pretend_v such_o familiar_a acquaintance_n with_o the_o father_n and_o council_n as_o mr._n o._n do_v especial_o not_o among_o the_o protestant_n that_o ever_o reckon_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o 14_o century_n for_o primitive_a the_o four_o or_o 5_o age_n be_v the_o late_a we_o be_v wont_n to_o appeal_v to_o at_o least_o under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o what_o all_o be_v father_n with_o mr._n o._n that_o favour_n his_o opinion_n and_o the_o primitive_a church_n will_v never_o have_v a_o end_n so_o long_o as_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v find_v conformable_a to_o the_o presbyterian_a discipline_n concern_v the_o boiarians_n or_o bavarian_n who_o as_o mr._n o._n will_v have_v we_o believe_v be_v once_o presbyterian_o i_o will_v only_o say_v thus_o much_o in_o short_a i_o find_v
in_o their_o history_n write_v by_o jo._n aventinus_n edit_n basil._n 1580._o that_o from_o the_o early_a time_n of_o their_o embrace_a christianity_n they_o have_v bishop_n and_o long_o before_o they_o submit_v their_o neck_n to_o the_o yoke_n of_o the_o roman_a pontiff_n i_o have_v make_v some_o collection_n and_o remark_n out_o of_o the_o forementioned_a historian_n but_o will_v not_o trouble_v myself_o or_o reader_n with_o they_o he_o that_o be_v curious_a and_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o search_v into_o the_o principle_n and_o practice_n of_o this_o people_n may_v take_v aventinus_n into_o his_o hand_n and_o satisfy_v himself_o whether_o ever_o there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o the_o boiarians_n be_v without_o bishop_n and_o govern_v by_o presbyter_n only_o it_o be_v not_o indeed_o the_o design_n of_o this_o history_n to_o treat_v of_o this_o argument_n direct_o but_o however_o as_o he_o go_v along_o he_o still_o occasional_o mention_n the_o boiarian_a bishop_n even_o before_o they_o be_v bring_v into_o subjection_n to_o rome_n chap._n xix_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n at_o and_o since_o the_o reformation_n the_o controversy_n at_o last_o be_v bring_v to_o our_o own_o door_n and_o continue_v down_o to_o our_o own_o time_n this_o doctrine_n 112._o say_v mr._n o._n meaning_n the_o identity_n of_o priest_n and_o bishop_n have_v be_v maintain_v also_o by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n both_o popish_a and_o protestant_n hereunto_o belong_v the_o testimony_n which_o he_o have_v in_o dvers_fw-la ãâã_d of_o his_o plea_n draw_v from_o the_o public_a act_n of_o the_o church_n and_o state_n and_o the_o ãâã_d sentiment_n of_o private_a doctor_n both_o of_o the_o roman_a and_o protestant_a communion_n both_o of_o the_o establish_v and_o dissent_v party_n among_o we_o all_o i_o be_o concern_v for_o be_v to_o consider_v whether_o the_o identity_n of_o presbyter_n and_o bishop_n have_v be_v declare_v in_o any_o public_a act_n of_o this_o kingdom_n to_o be_v find_v or_o produce_v by_o mr._n o._n out_o of_o the_o national_a record_n at_o or_o since_o the_o reformation_n for_o it_o be_v nothing_o to_o i_o if_o the_o popish_a church_n of_o england_n be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n with_o our_o dissenter_n as_o perhaps_o many_o papist_n be_v for_o advance_v the_o power_n and_o supremacy_n of_o their_o pontiff_n nor_o be_v it_o my_o business_n to_o account_v for_o every_o casual_a expression_n that_o have_v drop_v from_o the_o pen_n of_o any_o episcopal_a writer_n much_o less_o of_o the_o dissenter_n who_o golden_a say_n make_v up_o a_o great_a part_n of_o those_o numerous_a quotation_n wherewith_o he_o have_v ãâã_d his_o plea_n my_o design_n be_v upon_o mr._n o._n himself_o and_o the_o authority_n he_o have_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o public_a transaction_n or_o such_o as_o be_v direct_v and_o confirm_v by_o the_o government_n mr._n o._n have_v allege_v three_o against_o we_o the_o little_a treatise_n common_o call_v the_o bishop_n book_n another_o called_z the_o institution_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n and_o a_o three_o be_v that_o celebrate_v ms._n ãâã_d publish_v by_o mr._n stillingfleet_n the_o late_a lord_n bishop_n of_o worcester_n in_o his_o irenicum_fw-la all_o which_o as_o i_o shall_v prove_v belong_v unto_o the_o reign_n of_o hen._n viii_o and_o whatever_o opinion_n be_v there_o to_o be_v meet_v with_o be_v not_o to_o be_v impute_v to_o our_o first_o reformer_n at_o least_o not_o as_o their_o fix_a and_o settle_a judgement_n for_o i_o reckon_v that_o in_o hen._n viii_n day_n the_o reformation_n be_v but_o a_o embryo_n in_o the_o womb_n new_o conceive_v not_o bring_v forth_o that_o in_o edward_n vi.'s_n time_n it_o be_v a_o infant_n new_a bear_v and_o in_o its_o swaddle_a clothes_n and_o in_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n arrive_v to_o the_o best_a degree_n of_o perfection_n and_o maturity_n that_o it_o have_v yet_o be_v able_a to_o attain_v unto_o during_o which_o queen_n government_n something_o also_o be_v object_v to_o we_o which_o shall_v be_v examine_v in_o its_o order_n the_o bishop_n book_n be_v a_o explanation_n of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n 50._o the_o creed_n and_o the_o ground_n of_o religion_n fit_v for_o the_o common_a people_n instruction_n it_o be_v compose_v by_o sundry_a bishop_n of_o who_o cranmer_n be_v chief_a by_o virtue_n of_o a_o commission_n issue_v out_o by_o henry_n viii_o in_o the_o year_n 1537._o establish_v by_o parliament_n and_o print_v by_o tho._n barthelet_n with_o this_o title_n the_o godly_a and_o pious_a institution_n of_o a_o christian_a man._n out_o of_o this_o book_n fox_n have_v furnish_v we_o with_o this_o follow_a passage_n 2._o that_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v neither_o in_o the_o scripture_n nor_o in_o the_o write_n of_o any_o authentic_a doctor_n or_o author_n of_o the_o church_n be_v within_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o christ_n do_v ever_o make_v or_o constitute_v any_o distinction_n or_o difference_n to_o be_v in_o the_o preeminence_n of_o power_n order_n or_o jurisdiction_n between_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o and_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o but_o that_o they_o be_v all_o equal_a in_o power_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o there_o be_v now_o and_o since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n any_o such_o diversity_n it_o be_v devise_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o the_o conservation_n of_o good_a order_n and_o unity_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n 114._o from_o hence_o mr._n o._n have_v gather_v for_o he_o refer_v to_o fox_n martyrology_n that_o these_o bishop_n the_o author_n of_o that_o book_n affirm_v the_o difference_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v a_o device_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o not_o mention_v in_o scripture_n ans._n this_o deduction_n be_v downright_a false_a and_o direct_o against_o the_o obvious_a mean_v of_o the_o word_n the_o design_n of_o that_o prince_n at_o that_o time_n be_v to_o throw_v off_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o church_n and_o bishop_n of_o england_n to_o this_o end_n in_o the_o bishop_n book_n it_o be_v affirm_v that_o as_o the_o apostle_n be_v equal_a among_o themselves_o so_o be_v the_o bishop_n equal_a among_o themselves_o in_o the_o apostollcal_a time_n or_o according_a to_o jerom_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o by_o divine_a right_o superior_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o eugubium_n that_o therefore_o as_o i_o anon_o observe_v out_o of_o the_o king_n book_n patriarch_n primate_fw-la metropolitan_n and_o archbishop_n and_o particular_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v original_o no_o preeminence_n and_o authority_n over_o other_o bishop_n particular_o not_o over_o the_o english_a only_o that_o it_o be_v a_o voluntury_n agreement_n among_o themselves_o for_o order_n sake_n but_o from_o the_o beginning_n it_o be_v not_o so_o here_o be_v not_o one_o word_n of_o presbyter_n or_o exempt_n they_o from_o subjection_n unto_o bishop_n now_o that_o i_o have_v not_o do_v the_o least_o wrong_n unto_o this_o book_n i_o appeal_v to_o what_o i_o find_v elsewhere_o take_v thence_o by_o mr._n stripe_n 53._o how_o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v in_o no_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n but_o to_o the_o king_n law_n that_o priest_n and_o bishop_n never_o have_v any_o authority_n by_o the_o gospel_n in_o matter_n civil_a and_o moral_a but_o by_o grant_n and_o gift_n of_o prince_n that_o it_o be_v always_o and_o ever_o shall_v be_v lawful_a unto_o king_n and_o prince_n with_o the_o consent_n of_o their_o parliament_n to_o revoke_v and_o call_v again_o into_o their_o hand_n or_o otherwise_o to_o restrain_v all_o the_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n give_v and_o permit_v by_o their_o authority_n and_o assent_n and_o sufferance_n without_o which_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o other_o bishop_n whatsoever_o shall_v take_v upon_o they_o any_o authority_n or_o jurisdiction_n in_o such_o matter_n as_o ãâã_d civil_a that_o bishop_n be_v not_o worthy_a the_o name_n be_v a_o usurper_n and_o subverter_n of_o the_o kingdom_n that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v a_o catholic_n and_o apostolic_a church_n as_o well_o as_o that_o of_o rome_n that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n in_o superiority_n preeminence_n or_o authority_n of_o one_o bishop_n over_o another_o but_o they_o be_v all_o of_o equal_a power_n and_o dignity_n and_o that_o all_o church_n be_v free_a from_o the_o subjection_n and_o ãâã_d of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o equality_n here_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o beginning_n and_o in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o this_o period_n be_v not_o between_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n in_o the_o same_o church_n but_o between_o bishop_n and_o bishop_n church_n and_o church_n and_o particular_o that_o no_o church_n that_o of_o england_n especial_o be_v subject_a to_o rome_n and_o though_o in_o the_o beginning_n he_o name_v priest_n and_o bishop_n such_o priest_n
haply_o be_v mean_v as_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o act_n here_o in_o england_n in_o subordination_n to_o and_o by_o the_o pope_n authority_n not_o a_o syllable_n of_o the_o equality_n of_o bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v here_o to_o be_v find_v only_o that_o both_o depend_v upon_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n and_o that_o in_o civil_a and_o moral_a matter_n only_o the_o second_o testimony_n allege_v by_o mr._n o._n be_v another_o if_o haply_o it_o be_v another_o book_n entitle_v the_o institution_n of_o a_o christian_a 113._o man_n draw_v up_o by_o the_o whole_a clergy_n in_o a_o provincial_a synod_n anno_fw-la 1537._o set_v forth_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o king_n henry_n viii_o and_o the_o parliament_n and_o command_v to_o be_v preach_v out_o of_o this_o book_n afterward_o translate_v into_o latin_a as_o i_o guess_v mr._n o._n cite_v as_o follow_v in_o novo_fw-la testamento_fw-la nulla_fw-la mentio_fw-la facta_fw-la est_fw-la aliorum_fw-la graduum_fw-la ãâã_d distinctionum_fw-la in_o ordinibus_fw-la sed_fw-la diaconorum_fw-la vel_fw-la ministrorum_fw-la &_o presbyterorum_fw-la sive_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la which_o word_n it_o must_v be_v confess_v look_v pretty_a fair_a and_o favourable_a towards_o mr._n o._n at_o first_o sight_n ans._n in_o the_o first_o place_n i_o will_v here_o present_v the_o reader_n with_o what_o the_o author_n of_o the_o memorial_n have_v deliver_v concern_v ibid._n this_o and_o some_o other_o book_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o write_v with_o the_o same_o design_n the_o bishop_n book_n otherwise_o call_v the_o godly_a and_o pious_a institution_n of_o a_o christian_a man_n of_o which_o before_o come_v forth_o again_o two_o year_n after_o sc_n in_o the_o year_n 1540_o but_o bear_v another_o name_n viz._n a_o necessary_a doctrine_n and_o erudition_n for_o a_o christian_a man_n print_v also_o by_o barthelet_n that_o this_o also_o be_v once_o more_o publish_v in_o engglish_a and_o date_a anno_fw-la 1543._o as_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o say_a book_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o those_o time_n though_o at_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o title_n page_n i_o find_v it_o date_v also_o 1534._o this_o be_v compose_v by_o cranmer_n but_o call_v the_o king_n book_n because_o hen_n viii_o recommend_v it_o to_o the_o people_n by_o proclamation_n add_v to_o it_o by_o way_n of_o preface_n and_o assume_v to_o himself_o the_o be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o mr._n stripe_n far_o acquaint_v i_o that_o in_o the_o year_n 1536._o have_v be_v publish_v a_o book_n entitle_v the_o bishop_n book_n because_o frame_v by_o they_o i_o guess_v it_o the_o same_o with_o that_o i_o first_o speak_v of_o and_o that_o it_o be_v write_v by_o the_o bishop_n anno_fw-la 1636._o but_o print_a 1637._o and_o he_o yet_o tell_v we_o of_o another_o which_o come_v forth_o in_o the_o year_n 1633._o also_o common_o call_v the_o king_n book_n but_o entitle_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o kingly_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n i_o have_v procure_v a_o sight_n also_o of_o a_o latin_a book_n go_v under_o this_o title_n christiani_n hominis_fw-la institutio_fw-la edit_fw-la 1544._o in_o the_o preface_n whereof_o it_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v at_o first_o write_v in_o english_a and_o then_o translate_v into_o latin_a by_o who_o or_o by_o what_o authority_n i_o find_v not_o and_o whether_o this_o be_v the_o same_o with_o mr._n oh_o i_o know_v not_o but_o this_o be_v sure_a mr._n oh_o be_v print_v 1537._o as_o himself_o confess_v my_o 1544._o and_o the_o passage_n cite_v by_o mr._n o._n be_v no_o where_o to_o be_v read_v in_o i_o and_o since_o nothing_o like_o it_o be_v to_o be_v meet_v with_o in_o any_o of_o the_o other_o book_n and_o all_o the_o controversy_n in_o those_o time_n be_v between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o english_a bishop_n not_o about_o the_o superiority_n or_o the_o distinction_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n in_o the_o same_o church_n i_o be_o apt_a to_o fear_v some_o foul_a play_n but_o concern_v the_o testimony_n its_o self_n as_o allow_v of_o i_o shall_v speak_v more_o by_o and_o by_o mean_a while_n let_v we_o search_v for_o what_o may_v be_v have_v to_o the_o purpose_n in_o the_o king_n book_n entitle_v a_o necessary_a doctrine_n and_o erudition_n of_o a_o christian_a man._n if_o it_o shall_v be_v say_v that_o mr._n oh_o deduction_n before_o speak_v of_o be_v borrow_v not_o out_o of_o the_o king_n book_n but_o the_o bishop_n book_n yet_o i_o hope_v the_o one_o will_v be_v allow_v to_o explain_v the_o other_o thus_o than_o i_o read_v in_o the_o king_n book_n that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n be_v a_o gift_n or_o grace_n of_o i._n ministration_n in_o christ_n church_n give_v of_o god_n to_o christian_a man_n by_o the_o consecration_n and_o imposition_n of_o the_o bishop_n hand_n that_o this_o sacrament_n be_v confer_v and_o give_v at_o the_o begin_n by_o the_o apostle_n unto_o priest_n and_o bishop_n that_o st._n paul_n ordered_n and_o consecrate_a timothy_n priest_n that_o the_o apostle_n appoint_v and_o will_v the_o other_o bishop_n after_o they_o to_o do_v the_o like_a as_o be_v manifest_a from_o tit._n 1._o 5._o 1_o tim._n 5._o 22._o that_o there_o be_v no_o certain_a rule_n prescribe_v or_o limit_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o 2._o the_o nomination_n election_n presentation_n or_o appoint_v of_o any_o such_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n but_o the_o same_o be_v leave_v unto_o the_o positive_a law_n and_o ordinance_n of_o every_o christian_a region_n provide_v make_v or_o to_o be_v make_v etc._n etc._n he_o afterward_o enumerate_v in_o particular_a the_o common_a office_n and_o ministry_n both_o of_o priest_n and_o bishop_n sc_n teach_v preach_a minister_a the_o sacrament_n consecrate_v and_o offer_v the_o bless_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n lose_v and_o assoil_v from_o sin_n excommunicate_v and_o final_o pray_v for_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o their_o own_o flock_n in_o special_a that_o they_o may_v not_o exercise_n nor_o execute_v those_o office_n but_o with_o such_o sort_n and_o such_o limitation_n as_o the_o law_n permit_v and_o suffer_v 5._o that_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v deacon_n also_o acts._n 6._o that_o of_o these_o two_o order_n only_o that_o be_v priest_n and_o deacon_n scripture_n make_v express_v mention_n and_o how_o they_o be_v confer_v of_o the_o apostle_n by_o prayer_n and_o imposition_n of_o hand_n that_o patriarch_n primate_fw-la 6._o archbishop_n and_o metropolitan_o have_v not_o now_o nor_o heretofore_o at_o any_o time_n have_v just_o and_o lawful_o authority_n power_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o other_o bishop_n give_v they_o by_o god_n in_o holy_a scripture_n that_o all_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o any_o one_o bishop_n over_o another_o be_v and_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o consent_n ordinance_n and_o positive_a law_n of_o man_n only_o etc._n etc._n in_o the_o christiani_n hominis_fw-la institutio_fw-la which_o i_o have_v see_v there_o be_v some_o disagreement_n to_o be_v find_v for_o whereas_o the_o necessary_a doctrine_n and_o erudition_n etc._n etc._n seem_v to_o speak_v of_o two_o order_n only_o i._n e._n priest_n and_o deacon_n the_o christiani_n hominis_fw-la institutio_fw-la express_v it_o thus_o the_o his_o tantum_fw-la ordinationibus_fw-la presbyterorum_fw-la &_o diaconorum_fw-la scriptura_fw-la express_v meminit_fw-la etc._n etc._n meaning_n as_o i_o suppose_v not_o two_o rank_n and_o degree_n of_o church_n officer_n but_o two_o ordination_n or_o consecration_n of_o person_n appoint_v to_o the_o ministry_n sc_n of_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n that_o be_v the_o consecration_n of_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n be_v only_o express_o mention_v in_o scripture_n and_o that_o bishop_n receive_v not_o any_o new_a distinct_a imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o so_o order_n in_o the_o necessary_a doctrine_n etc._n etc._n be_v to_o be_v understand_v as_o i_o conceive_v not_o of_o person_n but_o of_o the_o ordination_n of_o they_o as_o it_o be_v often_o use_v unto_o this_o day_n it_o be_v not_o then_o affirm_v in_o either_o that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n but_o two_o rank_n or_o degree_n of_o ecclesiastical_a office_n that_o be_v priest_n and_o deacon_n and_o not_o bishop_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n but_o that_o two_o consecration_n only_o be_v express_o mention_v there_o nevertheless_o a_o superior_a rank_n may_v be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n though_o not_o separate_v thereto_o by_o a_o new_a imposition_n of_o hand_n mro_n quotation_n seem_v indeed_o to_o sound_v quite_o to_o another_o sense_n and_o to_o his_o purpose_n rather_o sc_n that_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n no_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o other_o degree_n and_o distinction_n in_o ordinibus_fw-la but_o of_o deacon_n or_o minister_n and_o of_o presbyter_n or_o bishop_n how_o minister_n and_o bishop_n creep_v in_o here_o i_o will_v not_o say_v but_o they_o be_v capable_a still_o of_o the_o same_o sense_n sc_n that_o
of_o these_o fox_n and_o to_o unkennel_v they_o for_o the_o security_n of_o the_o flock_n as_o well_o as_o to_o curb_v the_o dissenter_n themselves_o minister_n be_v think_v a_o fit_a word_n to_o be_v add_v unto_o the_o act_n to_o the_o end_n none_o may_v escape_v subscribe_v mr._n oh_o ãâã_d here_o turn_v upon_o himself_o whilst_o he_o distinguish_v where_o the_o law_n do_v not_o contrary_a to_o that_o wise_a rule_n of_o interpret_n law_n beside_o these_o word_n in_o the_o statute_n who_o pretend_v to_o be_v priest_n or_o minister_n by_o reason_n of_o any_o other_o form_n of_o institution_n or_o consecration_n or_o order_n than_o the_o english_a then_o in_o force_n do_v in_o my_o opinion_n plain_o and_o more_o open_o strike_v at_o the_o popish_a ordination_n the_o great_a design_n of_o that_o reign_n especial_o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v to_o extirpate_v the_o romish_a priest_n it_o may_v be_v urge_v that_o the_o dissent_v minister_n by_o subscribe_v those_o article_n which_o only_o belong_v unto_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n be_v to_o be_v admit_v or_o continue_v in_o their_o benefice_n and_o by_o consequence_n their_o ordination_n allow_v though_o they_o do_v not_o declare_v their_o assent_n unto_o the_o ceremony_n and_o tradition_n nor_o to_o the_o 20_o and_o 36th_o article_n of_o religion_n ans._n this_o can_v be_v for_o i_o shall_v show_v anon_o that_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o subscribe_v those_o two_o article_n which_o if_o they_o do_v ex_fw-la animo_fw-la they_o must_v of_o necessity_n forth_o with_o enter_v into_o episcopal_a order_n and_o approve_v of_o and_o use_v church_n ceremony_n which_o be_v what_o the_o statute_n aim_v at_o nor_o as_o mr._n o._n argue_v do_v the_o subscription_n seem_v to_o intend_v those_o only_a who_o scruple_v tradition_n and_o ceremony_n and_o not_o the_o other_o doctrine_n in_o the_o 39_o article_n which_o be_v the_o case_n of_o the_o dissenter_n alone_o for_o the_o papist_n scruple_n many_o other_o of_o the_o 39_o article_n which_o also_o be_v to_o be_v assent_v unto_o but_o be_v not_o scruple_v by_o the_o presbyterian_a dissenter_n though_o other_o dissent_v minister_n haply_o do_v and_o though_o the_o papist_n scruple_n not_o ceremony_n and_o tradition_n in_o general_n yet_o they_o scruple_n we_o in_o particular_a by_o consequence_n be_v intend_v in_o the_o act_n as_o much_o and_o more_o than_o the_o dissenter_n mr._n o._n because_o the_o assent_n and_o subscription_n be_v only_o to_o the_o article_n of_o religion_n concern_v the_o confession_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n therefore_o a_o indulgence_n be_v intend_v the_o dissent_v minister_n who_o scruple_v nothing_o else_o but_o ceremony_n and_o the_o book_n of_o consecration_n which_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v not_o require_v to_o be_v subscribe_v and_o assent_v to_o and_o by_o consequence_n ordination_n by_o presbyter_n be_v here_o allow_v ans._n all_o i_o have_v to_o do_v be_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o 20_o and_o 36th_o article_n among_o the_o 39_o be_v by_o this_o statute_n require_v to_o be_v subscribe_v and_o assent_v to_o and_o thus_o i_o prove_v it_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o 39_o article_n be_v mean_v in_o this_o statute_n viz._n from_o these_o word_n in_o the_o act_n article_n agree_v to_o by_o the_o archbishop_n and_o ãâã_d of_o both_o province_n and_o the_o whole_a clergy_n in_o convocation_n anno_fw-la 1562._o for_o avoid_v diversity_n of_o opinion_n in_o religion_n oh_o but_o cry_v mr._n o._n it_o be_v mean_v of_o such_o article_n only_o as_o concern_v the_o confession_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n which_o the_o two_o aforesaid_a article_n do_v not_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v oppose_v it_o seem_v unto_o the_o 20_o and_o 36th_o article_n ans._n it_o be_v very_o absurd_a in_o my_o judgement_n to_o interpret_v act_n of_o parliament_n in_o so_o loose_a a_o manner_n which_o be_v wont_a to_o speak_v more_o correct_o and_o with_o great_a exactness_n and_o if_o this_o have_v be_v intend_v the_o statute_n will_v certain_o have_v except_v the_o two_o article_n i_o rather_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o religion_n here_o mention_v be_v oppose_v to_o other_o article_n of_o the_o queen_n set_v forth_o in_o the_o 6_o of_o her_o reign_n anno_fw-la 1564._o and_o to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o collection_n of_o dr._n sparrow_n etc._n call_v article_n ãâã_d doctrine_n and_o preach_v for_o administration_n of_o prayer_n and_o ãâã_d for_o certain_a order_n in_o ecclesiastical_a polity_n apparel_n or_o person_n ecclesiastical_a and_o sundry_a other_o protestation_n all_o which_o be_v enjoin_v by_o the_o queen_n letter_n and_o authority_n only_o unto_o which_o this_o statute_n do_v not_o direct_v a_o assent_n and_o subscription_n but_o to_o the_o 39_o only_o which_o for_o distinction_n sake_n be_v entitle_v article_n of_o religion_n and_o in_o allusion_n thereto_o be_v so_o call_v in_o the_o statute_n to_o all_o these_o 39_o article_n call_v ãâã_d of_o religion_n all_o priest_n and_o minister_n be_v to_o subscribe_v and_o this_o be_v enact_v as_o well_o for_o the_o avoid_v diversity_n of_o opinion_n as_o establish_v of_o consent_n touch_v true_a religion_n moreover_o by_o ceremony_n we_o common_o understand_v thing_n of_o mere_a humane_a or_o ecclesiastical_a institution_n these_o indeed_o consider_v every_o one_o single_o by_o itself_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o true_a christian_n faith_n right_o but_o the_o 20_o article_n which_o in_o general_n define_v and_o declare_v it_o to_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n to_o appoint_v some_o decent_a ceremony_n ãâã_d a_o principle_n or_o proposition_n which_o belong_v unto_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n as_o be_v found_v on_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o with_o the_o rest_n be_v to_o be_v subscribe_v the_o book_n of_o consecration_n confirm_v in_o the_o 36th_o article_n contain_v the_o scripture_n rule_n of_o ordination_n by_o bishop_n and_o so_o concern_v the_o true_a christian_a faith_n it_o be_v then_o to_o be_v assent_v unto_o final_o that_o i_o have_v not_o mistake_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o statute_n or_o the_o lawgiver_n intendment_n i_o will_v support_v my_o interpretation_n by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o great_a oracle_n of_o the_o law_n and_o other_o reverend_a judge_n before_o he_o subscription_n require_v of_o the_o subscription_n clergy_n be_v twofold_a one_o by_o force_n of_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n confirm_v and_o establish_v the_o 39_o article_n of_o religion_n agree_v upon_o at_o a_o convocation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o ratify_v by_o queen_n eliz._n c._n 12._o refer_v to_o canon_n make_v by_o the_o clergy_n of_o england_n at_o a_o convocation_n hold_v at_o london_n 1562._o contain_v 39_o article_n of_o religion_n and_o ratify_v as_o aforesaid_a he_o add_v that_o in_o smith_n case_n who_o subscribe_v the_o 39_o article_n of_o religion_n with_o this_o addition_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o the_o same_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v resolve_v by_o wray_n chief_a justice_n and_o all_o the_o judge_n of_o england_n that_o this_o subscription_n be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o statute_n of_o the_o 13_o eliz._n because_o the_o statute_n require_v a_o absolute_a subscription_n that_o this_o statute_n be_v make_v for_o avoid_v diversity_n of_o opinion_n which_o be_v the_o scope_n of_o the_o act_n but_o by_o this_o addition_n the_o party_n may_v by_o his_o own_o private_a opinion_n take_v some_o of_o they_o to_o be_v against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n contrary_n to_o the_o design_n of_o the_o statute_n and_o the_o 39_o article_n themselves_o belike_o smith_n intend_v to_o decline_v subscribe_v unto_o the_o 20_o and_o 36th_o article_n hereby_o then_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o this_o act_n intend_v no_o indulgence_n unto_o the_o dissenter_n nor_o allowance_n of_o presbyterian_a order_n in_o king_n james_n the_o first_o be_v reign_v be_v publish_v a_o book_n entitle_v tractatus_fw-la de_fw-la politia_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la anglicanae_n by_o dr._n mocket_n the_o than_o archbishops_n chaplain_n whereunto_o the_o author_n annex_v jewel_n apology_n the_o great_a and_o less_o catechism_n the_o public_a liturgy_n the_o 39_o article_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o homily_n now_o because_o blondel_n build_v upon_o these_o i_o ought_v at_o least_o to_o examine_v the_o treatise_n and_o the_o catechism_n the_o latter_a i_o can_v get_v a_o sight_n of_o and_o shall_v at_o present_v only_o look_v into_o the_o former_a from_o whence_o it_o may_v be_v collect_v that_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n be_v twofold_a the_o first_o have_v respect_n unto_o all_o the_o faithful_a of_o the_o whole_a flock_n the_o second_o unto_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n as_o to_o the_o former_a it_o be_v acknowledge_v that_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v the_o same_o degree_n of_o office_n or_o
tentamen_fw-la novum_n continuatum_fw-la or_o a_o answer_n to_o m_n r_o owen_n plea_n and_o defence_n wherein_o bishop_n pearson_n chronology_n about_o the_o time_n of_o st._n paul_n constitute_v timothy_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o titus_n of_o crete_n be_v confirm_v the_o second_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n demonstrate_v to_o have_v be_v write_v in_o the_o apostle_n latter_a imprisonment_n at_o rome_n and_o all_o mr._n owen_n argument_n draw_v from_o antiquity_n for_o presbyterian_a parity_n and_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n be_v overthrow_v herein_o be_v more_o particular_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n ever_o since_o the_o reformation_n believe_v the_o divine_a right_n of_o bishop_n by_o thomas_n gipps_n rector_n of_o bury_n in_o lancashire_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d con._n gang._n can._n 5._o &_o 6._o london_n print_v by_o tho._n warren_n for_o ephraim_n johnson_n bookseller_n in_o manchester_n 1699._o the_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n there_o have_v be_v two_o book_n publish_v by_o mr._n james_n owen_n minister_n of_o a_o separate_a congregation_n at_o oswestry_n ãâã_d i_o be_o under_o a_o obligation_n and_o promise_n of_o reply_v unto_o the_o plea_n for_o scripture_n ordination_n and_o the_o tutamen_fw-la evangelicum_fw-la alius_fw-la defence_n of_o the_o plea_n and_o though_o the_o time_n of_o their_o publication_n may_v just_o require_v i_o to_o consider_v the_o plea_n in_o the_o first_o place_n yet_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o argument_n force_v i_o to_o invert_v that_o order_n and_o to_o begin_v with_o the_o defence_n the_o reason_n whereof_o be_v this_o i_o have_v set_v out_o a_o small_a book_n entitle_v tentamen_fw-la novum_n or_o a_o new_a essay_n prove_v the_o divine_a right_n of_o episcopacy_n the_o which_o engage_v i_o to_o answer_v some_o few_o thing_n in_o the_o plea_n which_o concern_v that_o part_n of_o the_o controversy_n between_o the_o dissenter_n and_o we_o of_o the_o establish_v church_n viz._n the_o scripture_n evidence_n hereupon_o mr._n o._n print_a his_o defence_n endeavour_v ãâã_d ãâã_d to_o overthrow_v my_o hypothesis_n in_o the_o tentamen_fw-la novum_n and_o to_o vindicate_v the_o ãâã_d one_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v therefore_o necessary_a i_o shall_v first_o of_o all_o reply_n ãâã_d the_o defence_n that_o be_v clear_v my_o point_n about_o the_o divine_a right_n of_o episcopacy_n ãâã_d also_o manifest_a the_o inconsistency_n of_o the_o old_a hypothesis_n with_o the_o scripture_n and_o ãâã_d descend_v to_o his_o numerous_a testimony_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a ãâã_d in_o behalf_n of_o presbyterian_a parity_n which_o will_v be_v a_o full_a and_o proper_a answer_n to_o ãâã_d ãâã_d according_o i_o have_v cast_v this_o book_n into_o two_o part_n the_o first_o contain_v a_o ãâã_d to_o the_o defence_n except_o a_o few_o testimony_n of_o antiquity_n which_o be_v more_o ãâã_d reserve_v to_o the_o second_o part_n wherein_o i_o answer_v his_o plea_n in_o the_o management_n of_o this_o work_n the_o reader_n must_v not_o expect_v that_o i_o shall_v follow_v my_o adversary_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d step_n by_o step_n in_o all_o the_o sally_n he_o have_v make_v into_o point_n nothing_o at_o all_o ãâã_d to_o the_o present_a controversy_n and_o involve_v myself_o into_o new_a dispute_n before_o the_o old_a one_o be_v do_v with_o my_o purpose_n be_v to_o keep_v close_o to_o the_o game_n and_o not_o to_o run_v after_o every_o fresh_a hare_n mr._n o._n be_v please_v to_o start_v this_o will_v be_v a_o edless_a piece_n of_o work_n and_o swell_v this_o book_n unto_o a_o intolerable_a bulk_n which_o i_o design_n to_o draw_v into_o as_o narrow_a compass_n as_o i_o possible_o can_v and_o as_o the_o unreasonable_a cavil_n of_o my_o adversary_n will_v permit_v nor_o will_v i_o trouble_v myself_o or_o my_o reader_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o all_o those_o snarl_a and_o ill-natured_a reflection_n which_o the_o defence_n abound_v with_o without_o any_o occasion_n give_v by_o i_o that_o i_o be_o sensible_a of_o it_o be_v much_o better_a to_o neglect_v they_o than_o weary_a myself_o and_o other_o with_o impertinent_a and_o abusive_a raillery_n which_o betray_v the_o weakness_n of_o the_o writer_n or_o his_o cause_n and_o hurt_v no_o body_n but_o the_o man_n from_o who_o it_o proceed_v ãâã_d 15._o 18._o nevertheless_o it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o remove_v some_o little_a of_o the_o rubbish_n of_o both_o kind_n out_o of_o the_o way_n lest_o haply_o the_o world_n may_v be_v tempt_v to_o suspect_v i_o as_o ignorant_a and_o my_o performance_n as_o ãâã_d as_o my_o adversary_n have_v all_o along_o represent_v '_o they_o but_o when_o i_o have_v vindicated_n myself_o in_o a_o few_o of_o the_o most_o material_a thing_n of_o that_o nature_n if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o the_o ingenious_a reader_n will_v i_o hope_v ãâã_d persuade_v that_o i_o be_o able_a if_o i_o be_v as_o willing_a to_o discharge_v myself_o of_o the_o most_o trivial_a matter_n that_o be_v to_o be_v meet_v with_o in_o the_o defence_n only_o let_v it_o be_v note_v that_o i_o intend_v not_o to_o mix_v these_o by._n dispute_n with_o the_o main_a argument_n which_o will_v be_v perplex_v thereby_o and_o become_v more_o obscure_a but_o to_o cast_v they_o into_o a_o appendix_n by_o themselves_o at_o the_o end_n of_o every_o chapter_n as_o a_o separate_a entertainment_n unto_o those_o who_o shall_v have_v the_o curiosity_n and_o leisure_n to_o consult_v they_o and_o which_o may_v be_v easy_o lay_v aside_o by_o such_o as_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o trouble_v themselves_o with_o unnecessary_a squabble_n in_o my_o reply_n to_o the_o defence_n and_o vindication_n of_o my_o hypothesis_n as_o also_o to_o the_o plea_n i_o will_v not_o ãâã_d myself_o with_o the_o opinion_n of_o ãâã_d author_n how_o eminent_a soever_o they_o be_v or_o still_o be_v in_o the_o church_n that_o be_v i_o will_v not_o be_v sway_v or_o govern_v by_o they_o far_o than_o my_o own_o reason_n conduct_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v convince_v i_o i_o be_o sensible_a that_o most_o if_o not_o all_o of_o the_o former_a writer_n engage_v in_o this_o controversy_n about_o episcopal_a government_n even_o many_o of_o the_o episcopal_a party_n as_o well_o as_o the_o dissenter_n for_o want_n of_o due_o examine_v and_o understand_v the_o time_n of_o paul_n beseech_v timothy_n to_o abide_v at_o ephesus_n have_v run_v themselves_o into_o such_o labyrinth_n and_o absurdity_n that_o a_o man_n may_v just_o wonder_v they_o can_v ever_o sit_v down_o quiet_o and_o content_v themselves_o with_o their_o own_o sentiment_n and_o explication_n i_o be_o very_o persuade_v there_o be_v not_o one_o man_n in_o the_o world_n that_o will_v allow_v himself_o the_o freedom_n of_o think_v but_o will_v subscribe_v unto_o that_o learned_a prelate_n dr._n pearson_n judgement_n in_o this_o cause_n after_o it_o be_v once_o full_o and_o fair_o represent_v to_o he_o except_o only_o such_o as_o be_v captivate_v by_o some_o powerful_a interest_n secret_a pride_n ãâã_d prejudice_n or_o the_o design_n of_o uphold_v a_o party_n where_o these_o evil_a affection_n rule_n and_o ãâã_d truth_n will_v not_o be_v able_a to_o prevail_v non_fw-fr suaseris_fw-la etiam_fw-la si_fw-la persuaseris_fw-la of_o this_o we_o ãâã_d have_v a_o notorious_a instance_n of_o another_o kind_n in_o the_o present_a age_n when_o dr._n harvey_n have_v ãâã_d and_o learned_o demonstrate_v the_o circulation_n of_o the_o blood_n almost_o all_o the_o naturalist_n and_o ãâã_d in_o the_o world_n even_o those_o of_o the_o first_o form_n with_o open_a mouth_n decry_v both_o the_o author_n ãâã_d ãâã_d doctrine_n and_o when_o the_o truth_n have_v by_o degree_n force_v its_o ãâã_d and_o gain_v ground_n upon_o ãâã_d ãâã_d part_n of_o they_o than_o envy_n step_v in_o and_o will_v have_v snatch_v the_o laurel_n from_o the_o brow_n ãâã_d ãâã_d immortal_a philosopher_n and_o physician_n how_o many_o of_o the_o ancient_n be_v allege_v to_o have_v ãâã_d the_o circulation_n of_o the_o blood_n and_o solomon_n besure_n be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o it_o as_o some_o have_v ãâã_d to_o prove_v from_o the_o 12_o chap._n of_o his_o ãâã_d so_o ãâã_d a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o bring_v man_n off_o their_o old_a mumpsimus_n and_o reconcile_v they_o to_o the_o truth_n when_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o shape_n of_o ãâã_d or_o to_o do_v justice_n unto_o those_o who_o have_v have_v the_o good_a hap_n to_o find_v she_o out_o but_o to_o return_v to_o my_o business_n mr._n o._n in_o his_o plea_n cite_v some_o hundred_o of_o authority_n in_o favour_n of_o pres_n byterian_a parity_n and_o ordination_n my_o design_n be_v not_o as_o i_o say_v to_o meddle_v with_o those_o which_o be_v adduce_v out_o of_o private_a and_o modern_a writer_n all_o that_o be_v needful_a for_o i_o to_o do_v be_v to_o consider_v the_o primitive_a the_o council_n especial_o the_o general_a
and_o know_v the_o secret_n of_o man_n heart_n the_o thing_n enjoin_v by_o the_o apostle_n except_v fornication_n be_v not_o necessary_a before_o they_o be_v enjoin_v but_o only_o charitable_o and_o prudential_o necessary_a and_o so_o our_o few_o ceremony_n too_o be_v and_o still_o be_v charitable_o and_o prudential_o necessary_a which_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o their_o be_v enjoin_v at_o first_o and_o still_o continue_v among_o we_o the_o council_n of_o jerusalem_n do_v not_o widen_v the_o door_n of_o church-fellowship_n as_o mr._n o._n assert_n but_o make_v it_o straight_a if_o the_o matter_n here_o speak_v of_o can_v be_v say_v to_o belong_v unto_o church-fellowship_n the_o gentile_a believer_n have_v a_o natural_a right_n to_o eat_v blood_n thing_n strangle_v and_o thing_n offer_v unto_o idol_n when_o sell_v in_o the_o market_n but_o the_o apostle_n deprive_v they_o of_o this_o liberty_n command_v they_o to_o symbolize_v with_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o forbearance_n of_o '_o they_o and_o i_o will_v know_v a_o reason_n why_o in_o a_o few_o matter_n of_o indifference_n decency_n and_o solemnity_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o the_o church-governor_n now_o to_o restrain_v the_o liberty_n of_o believer_n i_o say_v in_o some_o few_o thing_n out_o of_o charity_n to_o many_o foreign_a protestant_n who_o have_v ceremony_n and_o to_o the_o primitive_a christian_n which_o be_v not_o without_o they_o even_o as_o the_o apostle_n restrain_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gentile_a believer_n in_o charity_n to_o the_o jew_n and_o why_o be_v it_o not_o as_o lawful_a for_o we_o to_o symbolize_v with_o the_o primitive_a christian_n and_o our_o foreign_a brethren-protestants_a as_o the_o apostle_n with_o the_o jew_n 2._o mr._n o._n go_v on_o the_o council_n of_o jerusalem_n free_v the_o christian_n from_o the_o yoke_n of_o circumcision_n ans._n but_o it_o put_v on_o they_o those_o three_o yoke_n aforesaid_a beside_o as_o the_o apostle_n free_v the_o christian_n from_o circumcision_n or_o rather_o declare_v they_o free_a from_o it_o for_o they_o be_v never_o under_o that_o bondage_n so_o do_v the_o convocation_n free_v we_o from_o all_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n 3._o the_o apostle_n he_o add_v assert_v that_o christian_a liberty_n which_o jesus_n christ_n purchase_v and_o oblige_v we_o to_o maintain_v gal._n 5._o 1._o ans._n and_o yet_o the_o apostle_n take_v away_o the_o gentile_n liberty_n in_o the_o thing_n aforementioned_a the_o text_n of_o scripture_n here_o cite_v have_v a_o false_a construction_n put_v upon_o it_o the_o liberty_n there_o speak_v of_o be_v not_o a_o liberty_n not_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o its_o own_o nature_n indifferent_a no_o not_o a_o liberty_n from_o all_o the_o small_a observation_n of_o the_o law_n for_o then_o the_o apostle_n can_v not_o have_v enjoin_v the_o forbearance_n of_o the_o three_o thing_n nor_o can_v paul_n have_v preach_v and_o urge_v the_o observation_n of_o those_o decree_n as_o he_o do_v act_v 16._o 4._o but_o it_o be_v the_o liberty_n from_o the_o bondage_n of_o circumcision_n which_o make_v man_n debtor_n to_o the_o whole_a 3._o law_n and_o to_o every_o ceremony_n thereof_o 4._o he_o complain_v of_o the_o number_n of_o our_o canon_n whereas_o say_v 25._o he_o the_o apostle_n at_o jerusalem_n make_v none_o new_a and_o continue_v but_o a_o few_o which_o be_v oblige_v before_o ans._n that_o these_o three_o canon_n make_v by_o the_o apostle_n at_o jerusalem_n be_v new_a to_o the_o gentile_a believer_n be_v out_o of_o all_o question_n though_o mr._n o._n affirm_v the_o contrary_a not_o new_a as_o if_o they_o have_v never_o be_v know_v or_o hear_v of_o before_o but_o they_o be_v i_o say_v new_a to_o the_o gentile_a believer_n who_o be_v not_o before_o oblige_v to_o the_o observation_n of_o they_o though_o mr._n o._n say_v they_o be_v but_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n at_o jerusalem_n continue_v make_v but_o a_o few_o canon_n it_o be_v true_a nevertheless_o at_o other_o time_n and_o at_o other_o place_n they_o may_v have_v make_v more_o than_o threescore_o for_o any_o thing_n we_o know_v the_o code_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n consist_v of_o two_o hundred_o and_o seven_o canon_n yet_o they_o be_v make_v at_o several_a justellus_n time_n and_o in_o several_a place_n even_o so_o though_o the_o apostle_n at_o this_o time_n and_o at_o jerusalem_n make_v but_o three_o canon_n yet_o at_o other_o time_n and_o in_o other_o place_n they_o may_v have_v make_v more_o and_o do_v so_o as_o we_o may_v learn_v from_o 1_o cor._n 7._o wherein_n i_o think_v we_o meet_v with_o several_a canon_n as_o from_o those_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n the_o rest_n will_v i_o set_v in_o order_n when_o i_o come_v 1_o cor._n 11._o 14._o and_o again_o hold_v the_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v be_v teach_v whether_o by_o word_n or_o our_o epistle_n 2_o thes._n 2._o 15._o that_o thou_o shall_v set_v in_o order_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v want_v tit._n 1._o 5._o but_o 5._o the_o apostle_n say_v mr._n o._n annex_v no_o ãâã_d nor_o excommunication_n against_o the_o breaker_n of_o their_o canon_n they_o only_o conclude_v they_o with_o these_o gentle_a word_n from_o which_o if_o you_o keep_v yourselves_o you_o shall_v do_v well_o ans._n well!_o and_o the_o gentile_a believer_n ready_o obey_v the_o apostle_n decree_n without_o more_o ado_n not_o stubborn_o clamour_v for_o ãâã_d liberty_n wherewith_o christ_n have_v make_v they_o free_a for_o christ_n have_v make_v the_o gentile_a christian_n free_a from_o the_o three_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o well_o as_o from_o circumcision_n but_o do_v well_o be_v a_o effectual_a motive_n in_o those_o day_n unto_o obedience_n though_o not_o in_o these_o licentious_a time_n of_o we_o if_o the_o punishment_n annex_v unto_o canon_n be_v now_o more_o severe_a than_o ordinary_a it_o be_v because_o some_o man_n be_v more_o stiff_a and_o refractory_a more_o disobedient_a and_o unpeaceable_a than_o the_o gentile_a believer_n be_v of_o old_a 6._o mr._n o._n add_v the_o canon_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v make_v by_o the_o apostle_n elder_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o we_o by_o the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n in_o convocation_n which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o england_n by_o representation_n by_o which_o he_o think_v to_o destroy_v the_o parallel_n because_o the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n be_v not_o present_a at_o the_o make_v our_o canon_n as_o they_o be_v at_o the_o make_n of_o those_o at_o jerusalem_n to_o obviate_v this_o exception_n i_o observe_v that_o our_o canon_n be_v consent_v unto_o or_o confirm_v and_o receive_v by_o the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n that_o be_v by_o their_o representative_n in_o parliament_n but_o mr._n o._n have_v nothing_o else_o to_o cavil_v at_o or_o wherewith_o he_o may_v invalidate_v the_o parallel_n which_o be_v so_o much_o to_o the_o advantage_n of_o our_o church_n and_o fatal_a to_o the_o dissenter_n corrupt_v my_o word_n and_o by_o way_n of_o gloss_n add_v to_o the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n that_o be_v say_v he_o the_o church_n i_o say_v and_o say_v it_o again_o that_o the_o parliament_n represent_v the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n but_o i_o never_o say_v that_o be_v the_o church_n nor_o any_o thing_n like_o it_o this_o invention_n be_v hammer_v out_o at_o mr._n oh_o own_o forge_n whence_o a_o abundance_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n have_v be_v utter_v all_o the_o colour_n he_o have_v for_o thus_o misrepresent_v i_o be_v that_o i_o make_v the_o bishop_n to_o answer_v the_o apostle_n the_o presbyter_n the_o elder_n therefore_o i_o must_v make_v the_o parliament_n to_o answer_v the_o whole_a church_n and_o so_o i_o do_v yet_o this_o will_v do_v mr._n o._n no_o service_n for_o that_o expression_n the_o whole_a church_n in_o the_o 15_o the_o of_o act._n 22._o be_v not_o so_o exact_a but_o will_v need_v a_o little_a explanation_n on_o this_o occasion_n these_o word_n then_o the_o whole_a church_n can_v be_v understand_v strict_o for_o the_o whole_a church_n here_o must_v be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n but_o sure_o these_o also_o be_v part_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n proper_o speak_v the_o word_n than_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n they_o be_v call_v the_o multitude_n v_o 12._o and_o in_o contradistinction_n to_o the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n and_o therefore_o i_o avoid_v say_v the_o whole_a church_n and_o choose_v to_o express_v myself_o thus_o the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n i_o be_o than_o i_o flatter_v myself_o pretty_a safe_a from_o mr._n o._n and_o my_o diocesan_n too_o be_v he_o what_o he_o be_v far_o from_o be_v the_o most_o severe_a and_o haughty_a prelate_n in_o christendom_n because_o it_o be_v a_o common_a objection_n against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n constitution_n that_o parish_n priest_n have_v no_o power_n of_o discipline_n i_o assert_v
volunteer_n last_o he_o urge_v that_o we_o have_v no_o power_n to_o judge_v any_o man_n to_o be_v excommunicate_v nor_o to_o absolve_v '_o they_o ans._n mr._n o._n be_v so_o fond_a of_o the_o power_n of_o judge_v that_o it_o be_v a_o thousand_o pity_n he_o be_v not_o breed_v a_o lawyer_n that_o so_o in_o good_a time_n he_o may_v have_v be_v my_o lord_n judge_n for_o i_o suppose_v he_o have_v no_o exception_n against_o a_o temporal_a lordship_n but_o it_o fall_v out_o to_o his_o great_a mortification_n that_o in_o the_o post_n he_o be_v in_o though_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v a_o judge_n yet_o he_o be_v but_o a_o crier_n the_o mouth_n of_o his_o congregation_n and_o echo_n their_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n and_o that_o of_o absolution_n also_o how_o can_v he_o do_v less_o since_o he_o eat_v their_o bread_n wear_v their_o livery_n and_o be_v their_o stipendiary_a i_o produce_v he_o a_o example_n of_o this_o kind_a just_a now_o but_o that_o we_o have_v power_n to_o judge_v and_o absolve_v be_v manifest_a in_o sick_n the_o case_n of_o die_v person_n confess_v their_o sin_n and_o desire_a absolution_n in_o a_o word_n we_o be_v not_o ashamed_a of_o the_o name_n priest_n though_o we_o be_v sensible_a the_o dissenter_n oft_o call_v we_o so_o out_o of_o contempt_n and_o we_o be_v ashamed_a of_o their_o folly_n in_o upbraid_v we_o with_o a_o title_n which_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v give_v we_o chap._n ii_o be_v a_o answer_n to_o mr._n of_o s_o 2_o d_o chap._n in_o thè_z first_o chapter_n of_o the_o tentamen_fw-la n._n my_o design_n be_v to_o consider_v in_o their_o order_n all_o those_o passage_n of_o scripture_n which_o seem_v any_o way_n to_o concern_v ordination_n or_o any_o other_o act_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n except_v what_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n in_o particular_a which_o be_v treat_v of_o by_o itself_o afterward_o here_o i_o take_v notice_n of_o mathias_n constitute_v a_o apostle_n in_o the_o place_n of_o judas_n act._n 1._o of_o the_o deacon_n be_v appoint_v and_o ordain_v unto_o their_o office_n chap._n 6._o of_o peter_n and_o john_n lay_v on_o of_o hand_n upon_o some_o of_o the_o new_a convert_v of_o samaria_n chap._n 8._o of_o ananias_n impose_v hand_n upon_o saul_n chap._n 9_o of_o barnabas_n and_o saul_n separation_n unto_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gentile_n chap._n 13._o of_o the_o ordination_n mention_v chap._n 14._o of_o st._n paul_n lay_v hand_n on_o twelve_o at_o eph._n chap._n 19_o of_o timothy_n ordination_n speak_v of_o 1_o tim._n 4._o 14._o 2_o tim._n 1._o 6._o epis._n 21._o 6._o and_o not_o know_v when_o nor_o in_o what_o place_n give_v he_o of_o the_o deliver_v the_o incestuous_a person_n unto_o satan_n 1_o cor._n 5._o and_o of_o the_o council_n of_o jerusalem_n ast._n 15._o now_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o i_o and_o to_o my_o design_n in_o this_o chapter_n what_o become_v of_o the_o four_o first_o instance_n and_o of_o that_o other_o in_o the_o 19_o the_o of_o act_n whether_o they_o be_v ordination_n or_o not_o if_o not_o let_v mr._n prinn_n look_v to_o it_o or_o mr._n o._n in_o his_o behalf_n as_o they_o will_v do_v i_o no_o good_a so_o they_o can_v do_v i_o no_o harm_n though_o if_o they_o shall_v prove_v ordination_n the_o advantage_n i_o make_v of_o '_o emis_fw-la of_o some_o moment_n in_o the_o question_n before_o we_o they_o be_v perform_v either_o by_o apostle_n or_o prophet_n no_o other_o inferior_a and_o ordinary_a church_n officer_n join_v with_o they_o which_o be_v what_o i_o level_v at_o against_o mr._n prinn_n but_o the_o first_o uncontroverted_a ordination_n unto_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n be_v that_o of_o barnabas_n and_o saul_n act._n 13_o the_o this_o ordination_n be_v have_v by_o prophet_n and_o teacher_n who_o receive_v a_o express_a and_o extraordinary_a commission_n from_o god_n to_o separate_v these_o two_o unto_o the_o work_n whereunto_o say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n i_o have_v call_v they_o see_v then_o prophet_n as_o superior_a and_o extraordinary_a species_n of_o church_n officer_n influence_v by_o the_o immediate_a and_o express_a command_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n preside_v over_o this_o work_n of_o separate_a barnabas_n and_o saul_n it_o can_v be_v no_o sufficient_a warrant_n nor_o precedent_n unto_o mere_a presbyter_n to_o ordain_v by_o virtue_n of_o their_o ordinary_a power_n and_o office_n herein_o lie_v the_o force_n of_o my_o observation_n which_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v fair_o answer_v but_o mr._n o._n instead_o of_o this_o fall_v a_o cavil_v at_o my_o expound_v 68_o prophet_n and_o teacher_n the_o same_o person_n that_o be_v ordinary_a minister_n or_o presbyter_n endue_v at_o that_o time_n with_o the_o gift_n of_o prophecy_n or_o receive_v a_o special_a commission_n from_o heaven_n whereas_o he_o will_v needs_o have_v they_o distinct_a person_n and_o officer_n prophet_n and_o teacher_n in_o sensu_fw-la diviso_fw-la ans._n i_o will_v not_o here_o deny_v but_o mr._n oh_o interpretation_n may_v be_v true_a yet_o neither_o can_v i_o see_v any_o thing_n hinder_v but_o i_o may_v be_v so_o for_o caiaphas_n be_v but_o a_o ordinary_a though_o the_o supreme_a officer_n in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o yet_o he_o prophesy_v and_o by_o consequence_n pro_fw-la hâc_fw-la vice_n be_v a_o prophet_n if_o a_o man_n will_v have_v describe_v he_o it_o have_v not_o be_v improper_a to_o have_v say_v he_o be_v a_o prophet_n and_o the_o high_a ãâã_d now_o how_o to_o compromise_v this_o small_a difference_n between_o we_o i_o know_v not_o i_o will_v therefore_o suppose_v what_o mr._n o._n take_v for_o grant_v though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n i_o think_v the_o contrary_n be_v most_o evident_a saul_n and_o barnabas_n at_o least_o be_v both_o prophet_n and_o teacher_n the_o prophet_n there_o speak_v of_o be_v person_n different_a from_o the_o teacher_n yet_o if_o it_o be_v so_o my_o argument_n be_v not_o alter_v nor_o ever_o the_o worse_a still_o the_o teacher_n be_v preside_v over_o by_o the_o prophet_n and_o still_o the_o ordainer_n act_v by_o special_a and_o extraordinary_a commission_n from_o heaven_n which_o can_v warrant_v ordinary_a presbyter_n and_o teacher_n to_o ordain_v by_o virtue_n of_o their_o ordinary_a power_n if_o mr._n o._n himself_o or_o any_o layman_n shall_v ordain_v some_o person_n by_o special_a command_n from_o god_n appoint_v thereunto_o no_o body_n can_v with_o reason_n call_v his_o ordination_n into_o question_n but_o then_o this_o can_v not_o rational_o be_v draw_v into_o example_n nor_o justify_v every_o private_a believer_n in_o england_n to_o ordain_v at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n it_o be_v not_o material_a whether_o the_o revelation_n be_v immediate_o give_v to_o the_o teacher_n or_o to_o the_o prophet_n only_o and_o by_o they_o unto_o the_o teacher_n nevertheless_o i_o think_v mr._n o._n ought_v not_o to_o deny_v the_o former_a the_o word_n run_v thus_o and_o they_o the_o prophet_n and_o teacher_n minister_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o fast_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v separate_a i_n barnabas_n and_o saul_n etc._n etc._n and_o when_o they_o have_v fast_v and_o pray_v and_o lay_v their_o ãâã_d on_o they_o they_o send_v they_o away_o they_o who_o send_v barnabas_n and_o saul_n away_o be_v the_o same_o that_o separate_v they_o by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o they_o who_o separate_v barnabas_n and_o saul_n be_v the_o person_n to_o who_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v and_o they_o to_o who_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v be_v the_o person_n that_o minister_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o fast_v and_o they_o who_o minister_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o fast_v be_v the_o teacher_n as_o well_o as_o the_o prophet_n therefore_o the_o revelation_n be_v communicate_v immediate_o to_o the_o teacher_n therefore_o the_o teacher_n be_v prophet_n also_o therefore_o this_o be_v no_o precedent_n unto_o common_a presbyter_n to_o ordain_v by_o virtue_n of_o their_o ordinary_a power_n by_o consequence_n my_o argument_n hold_v good_a concern_v the_o ordination_n speak_v of_o act._n 14._o 23._o i_o note_v that_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n act_v not_o therein_o by_o any_o special_a revelation_n but_o by_o their_o apostolical_a power_n be_v not_o assist_v therein_o by_o any_o presbyter_n that_o therefore_o these_o can_v be_v good_a precedent_n for_o presbyterian_a ordination_n mr._n o._n reply_v that_o this_o instance_n make_v little_a for_o i_o 74._o ans._n it_o make_v thus_o much_o for_o i_o that_o it_o make_v nothing_o for_o the_o dissenter_n nor_o against_o i_o which_o be_v what_o i_o design_v by_o it_o though_o i_o may_v say_v it_o be_v a_o plain_a instance_n of_o ordination_n by_o church_n officer_n superior_a to_o presbyter_n as_o for_o mr._n oh_o reason_n why_o philip_n do_v not_o lay_v hand_n on_o with_o peter_n and_o john_n viz._n because_o it_o
govern_v those_o chuche_n and_o the_o particular_a act_n of_o supreme_a power_n be_v express_o commit_v to_o they_o which_o be_v enough_o i_o think_v to_o prove_v they_o the_o supreme_a ruler_n of_o those_o church_n and_o be_v all_o i_o contend_v for_o beside_o mr._n o._n shall_v remember_v that_o he_o himself_o acknowledge_v they_o evangelist_n which_o where_o officer_n in_o the_o church_n superior_a unto_o ordinary_a presbyter_n according_a to_o the_o supposition_n agree_v upon_o between_o he_o and_o i_o but_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n whether_o the_o presbyter_n speak_v of_o 1_o pet._n 5._o and_o act._n 20._o be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v dispute_v but_o whether_o they_o have_v the_o supreme_a power_n commit_v to_o they_o be_v the_o question_n and_o be_v i_o hope_v resolve_v in_o the_o negative_a to_o satisfaction_n in_o the_o formentioned_a page_n of_o t._n n._n viz._n that_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v so_o from_o those_o expression_n feed_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n take_v the_o oversight_n thereof_o take_v heed_n unto_o the_o flock_n over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v you_o overseer_n to_o feed_v the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o these_o exhortation_n may_v be_v proper_o give_v to_o the_o rector_n and_o vicar_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n though_o subject_a to_o a_o diocesian_a bishop_n yea_o may_v be_v give_v to_o every_o ordain_a presbyter_n ãâã_d though_o but_o a_o curate_n appendix_n mr_n o._n except_v many_o thing_n against_o my_o instance_n of_o the_o jew_n 48._o ecclesiastical_a government_n by_o a_o highpriest_n inferior_a priest_n and_o levite_n concern_v who_o i_o note_v that_o the_o father_n and_o particular_o clem._n roman_n seem_v to_o make_v this_o a_o precedent_n for_o the_o government_n of_o christian_a ãâã_d etc._n etc._n to_o the_o authority_n of_o clemens_n i_o add_v in_o the_o margin_n jerom_n epistle_n to_o euag._n that_o which_o deserve_v to_o be_v consider_v be_v that_o he_o observe_v the_o jewish_a highpriest_n to_o have_v be_v a_o type_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o highpriest_n of_o our_o profession_n and_o say_v he_o we_o follow_v the_o jewish_a typical_a precedent_n that_o be_v we_o acknowledge_v jesus_n christ_n to_o be_v our_o highpriest_n ans._n for_o all_o this_o the_o jewish_a oeconomy_n be_v a_o type_n of_o the_o christian_a at_o least_o the_o pather_n though_o they_o make_v not_o the_o jewish_a highpriest_n a_o type_n of_o the_o christian_a bishop_n yet_o they_o make_v he_o a_o precedent_n or_o pattern_n of_o he_o and_o clemens_n do_v so_o in_o particular_a as_o also_o many_o other_o as_o i_o shall_v show_v in_o its_o proper_a place_n viz._n my_o answer_n to_o his_o plea_n but_o why_o have_v not_o mr._n o._n after_o so_o much_o pain_n take_v in_o vindicate_a clemens_n from_o what_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o endeavour_v to_o take_v off_o the_o force_n of_o my_o other_o testimony_n out_o of_o jerom_n there_o be_v something_o in_o the_o wind_n that_o he_o who_o undertake_v to_o reply_v so_o full_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o clemens_n leave_v poor_a jerom_n in_o the_o lurch_n and_o have_v not_o one_o syllable_n to_o plead_v in_o his_o behalf_n but_o the_o ãâã_d of_o this_o be_v plain_a it_o be_v too_o hard_a a_o knot_n for_o the_o minister_n at_o ãâã_d to_o untie_v or_o so_o much_o as_o to_o cut_v blundel_n promise_v to_o account_v for_o it_o but_o be_v not_o as_o good_a as_o his_o word_n walo_n put_v we_o in_o hope_n of_o it_o from_o salmafius_fw-la but_o he_o deceive_v the_o world_n of_o their_o expectation_n and_o honest_a ludovicus_n capella_n be_v afraid_a to_o take_v the_o least_o notice_n of_o it_o i_o know_v nothing_o that_o can_v excuse_v mr._n o._n and_o the_o other_o gentleman_n ãâã_d a_o parting-blow_n upon_o this_o argument_n mr._n o._n entertain_v we_o with_o a_o piece_n of_o drollery_n the_o rector_n say_v he_o call_v the_o ãâã_d ordinary_a minister_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n say_v they_o be_v prophet_n that_o be_v extraordinary_a minister_n one_o will_v think_v if_o they_o be_v ordinary_a minister_n they_o be_v not_o extraordinary_a if_o extraordinary_a not_o ordinary_a now_o the_o rector_n undertake_v to_o reconcile_v this_o contradiction_n and_o to_o expose_v mr._n o._n as_o a_o mere_a trifler_n the_o same_o man_n may_v be_v a_o ordinary_a and_o a_o extraordinary_a person_n on_o several_a account_n not_o secundum_fw-la idem_fw-la i_o will_v give_v he_o one_o single_a instance_n and_o so_o ãâã_d this_o point_n mr._n o._n be_v as_o i_o reckon_v but_o a_o ordinary_a minister_n and_o yet_o i_o account_v he_o a_o extraordinary_a wrangler_n i_o have_v say_v in_o t._n n._n according_a to_o my_o present_a apprehension_n that_o 77._o james_n be_v not_o the_o apostle_n but_o mr._n o._n will_v needs_o have_v he_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v one_o of_o the_o twelve_o for_o that_o be_v my_o meaning_n ans_fw-fr this_o i_o be_o sensible_a have_v of_o old_a and_o be_v still_o a_o controversy_n among_o the_o learned_a and_o bishop_n pearson_n who_o the_o minister_n get_v on_o his_o side_n as_o oft_o as_o he_o can_v be_v not_o very_o positive_a in_o it_o though_o he_o ãâã_d that_o way_n however_o i_o will_v comply_v with_o mr._n o._n for_o once_o and_o let_v james_n pass_v for_o one_o of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n but_o then_o i_o must_v acquaint_v he_o that_o one_o of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n be_v the_o fix_v and_o constant_a perfect_a or_o ruler_n that_o be_v bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n we_o read_v of_o he_o be_v at_o jerusalem_n act._n 12._o 17._o gal._n 1._o 19_o act._n 15._o 13._o gal._n 2._o 9_o 12._o act._n 21._o 18._o all_o which_o time_n to_o his_o death_n take_v up_o near_o thirty_o year_n as_o be_v compute_v it_o seem_v then_o that_o he_o be_v fix_v and_o resident_a at_o jerusalem_n salmasius_n think_v that_o he_o never_o be_v absent_a from_o jerusalem_n nor_o move_v a_o foot_n once_o from_o thence_o to_o his_o die_a day_n now_o that_o he_o be_v perfect_a or_o 1._o bishop_n there_o be_v prove_v from_o clem._n alexandrinus_n from_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n from_o hegesippus_n and_o from_o jerom_n beside_o 9_o a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n more_o and_o among_o they_o calvin_n that_o may_v be_v adduce_v in_o confirmation_n of_o this_o whoever_o please_v to_o be_v so_o curious_a 23._o may_v be_v direct_v to_o they_o in_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o the_o learned_a mr._n burscough_n treatise_n of_o church-government_n from_o 22._o who_o i_o have_v borrow_v all_o this_o and_o several_a other_o thing_n in_o ser._n these_o paper_n appendix_n in_o this_o chapter_n mr._n o._n have_v move_v two_o controversy_n in_o philology_n his_o masterpiece_n on_o which_o he_o seem_v to_o value_v himself_o the_o first_o whereof_o be_v that_o i_o call_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o apostle_n a_o 54._o oligarchy_n which_o he_o say_v be_v a_o mistake_n i_o have_v prepare_v a_o pretty_a large_a and_o exact_a account_n of_o this_o word_n but_o have_v think_v good_a to_o contract_v it_o and_o it_o be_v in_o short_a this_o that_o though_o plato_n 8._o disparage_v oligarchy_n in_o comparison_n with_o monarchy_n and_o aristotle_n 8._o call_v it_o not_o oligarchy_n for_o with_o he_o that_o be_v the_o corruption_n of_o the_o government_n but_o aristocracy_n yet_o that_o the_o word_n original_o signify_v a_o lawful_a and_o honest_a kind_n of_o government_n and_o set_v forth_o the_o true_a and_o distinct_a nature_n of_o it_o as_o be_v manifest_a from_o its_o etymology_n which_o aristocracy_n do_v not_o for_o this_o word_n according_a to_o the_o philosopher_n denote_v any_o of_o the_o three_o sort_n of_o government_n well_o manage_v that_o ãâã_d in_o herodotus_n 80._o commend_v this_o form_n of_o government_n by_o the_o very_a name_n of_o oligarchy_n that_o plutarch_n dem._n speak_v of_o it_o under_o the_o same_o name_n describe_v it_o also_o by_o two_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o call_v its_o corruption_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d not_o ãâã_d that_o hesychius_n ãâã_d reckon_v up_o three_o kind_n of_o government_n one_o of_o which_o be_v oligarchy_n and_o last_o that_o aristotle_n himself_o confess_v supra_fw-la when_o a_o few_o govern_v well_o and_o for_o the_o common_a good_a it_o be_v a_o right_a and_o just_a government_n plain_o imply_v there_o be_v no_o harm_n in_o the_o word_n oligarchy_n or_o in_o the_o government_n though_o in_o his_o time_n and_o country_n custom_n have_v disparage_v it_o the_o next_o thing_n he_o quarrel_v about_o be_v my_o writing_n sanedrin_n and_o that_o i_o seem_v to_o make_v it_o a_o hebrew_n word_n ans._n the_o rector_n neither_o make_v nor_o seem_v to_o make_v sanedrin_n a_o hebrew_n word_n but_o if_o mr._n o_o have_v any_o good_a nature_n
or_o observation_n in_o he_o he_o will_v rather_o have_v conclude_v that_o the_o rector_n seem_v to_o derive_v the_o word_n from_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d as_o himself_o also_o believe_v for_o my_o writing_n sanedrin_n without_o the_o aspirate_n h_o in_o the_o middle_n may_v reasonable_o have_v be_v judge_v do_v in_o conformity_n to_o the_o greek_a language_n which_o frequent_o cast_v away_o the_o aspirat_fw-la h_z in_o the_o middle_n of_o compound_v word_n the_o conjugate_v at_o least_o of_o many_o derive_v from_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d this_o especial_o synedrium_fw-la wherefore_o since_o mr._n o._n will_v needs_o have_v ãâã_d borrow_v from_o the_o greek_n it_o be_v more_o conformable_a to_o the_o original_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d or_o to_o write_v it_o sanedrin_n not_o sanhedrin_n with_o the_o aspirat_fw-la and_o to_o speak_v the_o very_a truth_n in_o write_v that_o word_n my_o thought_n be_v ever_o upon_o the_o greek_a noun_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d without_o ãâã_d into_o the_o orthography_n but_o when_o all_o be_v say_v concern_v this_o word_n sanhedrin_n i_o must_v acknowledge_v i_o have_v some_o scruple_n and_o suspicion_n about_o it_o it_o be_v very_o odd_a in_o my_o thought_n that_o the_o name_n of_o this_o great_a council_n which_o begin_v with_o moses_n shall_v descend_v from_o the_o greek_a tongue_n a_o long_a while_n unknown_a to_o the_o jew_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v have_v no_o other_o title_n in_o the_o hebrew_n language_n that_o i_o ever_o hear_v of_o but_o ãâã_d or_o too_o much_o of_o this_o trivial_a matter_n chap._n iii_o be_v a_o answer_n to_o mr._n of_o s_o 3_o d_o chap._n mr_n o._n in_o this_o chapter_n undertake_v first_o to_o ãâã_d his_o 103._o own_o hypothesis_n scil_n that_o paul_n at_o his_o take_n final_a leave_n of_o the_o ephesian_a elder_n act._n 20._o appoint_v they_o the_o sole_a governor_n of_o that_o church_n in_o a_o parity_n and_o that_o this_o constitution_n be_v and_o be_v intend_v to_o be_v unchangeable_a i_o will_v brief_o run_v through_o his_o argument_n and_o as_o i_o go_v along_o make_v my_o answer_n to_o every_o one_o of_o they_o single_o mr._n o._n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o appoint_v one_o presbyter_n supreme_a 100_o to_o preside_v over_o the_o rest_n for_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v not_o ordinary_a presbyter_n but_o extraordinary_a officer_n that_o be_v evangelist_n there_o be_v no_o hint_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o tim._n and_o tit._n that_o they_o be_v ordain_v to_o be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n in_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n ans._n i_o shall_v consider_v in_o the_o follow_a five_o chapter_n this_o pretence_n of_o their_o be_v extraordinary_a officer_n and_o evangelist_n whereby_o mr._n o._n will_v evade_v our_o argument_n for_o timothy_n be_v make_v the_o perfect_a or_o ruler_n of_o ephesus_n in_o the_o apostle_n stead_n mean_v while_n grant_v there_o be_v no_o hint_n in_o the_o epistle_n to_o tim._n that_o he_o be_v ordain_v to_o be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n in_o ephesus_n though_o the_o second_o epistle_n 1._o 6._o be_v a_o shrewd_a intimation_n of_o it_o according_a to_o jerom_n yet_o it_o follow_v not_o hence_o that_o he_o be_v not_o the_o apostle_n successor_n the_o reverend_a dr._n stratford_n be_v not_o ordain_v presbyter_n with_o ãâã_d design_n to_o be_v afterward_o bishop_n of_o chester_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o he_o be_v bishop_n of_o this_o see_n mr._n o._n the_o apostle_n do_v and_o it_o be_v the_o proper_a season_n and_o his_o duty_n at_o his_o take_n final_a leave_n to_o settle_v the_o government_n of_o that_o church_n but_o he_o than_o commit_v it_o to_o the_o presbytery_n in_o a_o parity_n and_o not_o to_o any_o single_a person_n act._n 20._o 28._o ans._n 1._o for_o any_o thing_n to_o be_v find_v in_o that_o act._n 20._o 28._o st._n ãâã_d may_v have_v before_o this_o time_n appoint_v a_o single_a person_n over_o the_o ephesian_a elder_n and_o so_o have_v leave_v it_o these_o word_n take_v heed_n therefore_o unto_o yourselves_o and_o to_o all_o the_o flock_n over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v you_o overseer_n to_o feed_v the_o ãâã_d of_o god_n might_n and_o may_v proper_o enough_o at_o this_o day_n be_v speak_v unto_o presbyter_n subject_a to_o a_o precedent_n or_o bishop_n set_v over_o they_o but_o 2._o if_o the_o supreme_a power_n be_v here_o commit_v to_o the_o elder_n however_o it_o be_v not_o prove_v nor_o can_v be_v that_o it_o be_v in_o a_o parity_n the_o word_n may_v have_v be_v speak_v to_o they_o divisim_fw-la several_o which_o dive_v one_o part_n of_o the_o dissenter_n of_o their_o presbytery_n 3._o however_o it_o be_v suppose_v the_o government_n lodge_v in_o the_o presbytery_n st._n paul_n may_v afterward_o by_o divine_a authority_n intrust_v it_o with_o a_o single_a person_n as_o to_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n whether_o he_o do_v so_o be_v the_o present_a controversy_n the_o issue_n whereof_o will_v depend_v on_o what_o follow_v mr._n o._n we_o may_v with_o better_a reason_n affirm_v that_o timothy_n 102._o power_n at_o ephesus_n be_v temporary_a than_o that_o of_o the_o elder_n ans._n not_o so_o if_o timothy_n supreme_a power_n follow_v that_o of_o the_o elder_n as_o shall_v be_v prove_v and_o if_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o the_o ãâã_d of_o government_n commit_v to_o timothy_n be_v ever_o change_v afterward_o by_o any_o subsequent_a act_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o objection_n vanish_v mr._n o._n paul_n give_v not_o the_o least_o hint_n act._n 20._o of_o any_o ruler_n set_v or_o to_o be_v set_v over_o they_o that_o he_o must_v needs_o know_v what_o government_n god_n will_v have_v settle_v in_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n ans._n what_o hint_n be_v there_o to_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o one_a epistle_n to_o limb_n concern_v presbyterian_a parity_n or_o indeed_o of_o the_o presbyter_n have_v the_o least_o share_n in_o the_o church_n government_n it_o be_v as_o necessary_a he_o shall_v mention_v the_o presbytery_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n suppose_v by_o mr._n o._n write_v before_o the_o farewell_n sermon_n as_o to_o make_v mention_n of_o their_o prelatical_a bishop_n in_o his_o farewell_n sermon_n nor_o do_v the_o apostle_n know_v beforehand_o all_o the_o mind_n and_o intention_n of_o god_n concern_v his_o church_n he_o know_v not_o so_o much_o as_o what_o will_v befall_v himself_o save_v what_o other_o prophet_n tell_v he_o v._n 23._o and_o yet_o still_o he_o be_v leave_v in_o the_o dark_a as_o to_o many_o thing_n v._n 22._o i_o see_v no_o reason_n for_o believe_v paul_n must_v needs_o know_v at_o that_o time_n god_n intention_n of_o alter_v the_o church_n government_n afterward_o if_o so_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v wonder_v he_o do_v not_o acquaint_v the_o presbyter_n with_o it_o beside_o there_o be_v good_a reason_n to_o think_v that_o paul_n though_o he_o know_v it_o will_v not_o acquaint_v they_o with_o it_o at_o that_o time_n happy_a he_o see_v they_o will_v not_o then_o brook_v nor_o endure_v to_o hear_v of_o the_o alteration_n and_o of_o be_v subject_a to_o any_o other_o single_a person_n except_o the_o apostle_n himself_o especial_o when_o no_o occasion_n be_v as_o yet_o give_v for_o it_o but_o in_o process_n of_o time_n after_o some_o of_o themselves_o be_v rise_v and_o have_v speak_v perverse_a thing_n and_o turn_v schismatic_n ãâã_d draw_v away_o disciple_n after_o they_o v_o 30._o than_o be_v the_o time_n for_o change_v the_o government_n and_o charge_v timothy_n to_o silence_v those_o that_o teach_v false_a doctrine_n 1_o tim._n 1._o 3._o and_o then_o it_o be_v that_o at_o least_o the_o humble_a and_o peaceable_a and_o obedient_a and_o holy_a presbyter_n will_v ready_o submit_v to_o the_o change_n mr._n o._n ask_v whether_o there_o be_v no_o prophecy_n of_o timothy_n 103._o be_v the_o suture_a bishop_n ruler_n of_o ephesus_n if_o there_o be_v why_o do_v paul_n suppress_v it_o in_o act._n 20._o ans._n i_o have_v give_v a_o reason_n of_o this_o already_o but_o further_a note_n that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o prophecy_n as_o i_o believe_v 1_o tim._n 1._o 18._o though_o it_o may_v not_o have_v be_v give_v till_o after_o paul_n farewell_n sermon_n i_o add_v it_o be_v very_o probable_a also_o that_o he_o be_v ordain_v unto_o it_o 2._o epist._n 1._o 6._o so_o st._n jerom_n think_v as_o i_o have_v already_o observe_v mr._n o._n to_o overthrow_v the_o common_a reason_n give_v of_o the_o change_n of_o church_n government_n assert_n that_o the_o establishment_n of_o the_o presbytery_n at_o ephesus_n be_v for_o a_o remedy_n against_o schism_n therefore_o the_o elder_n be_v admonish_v to_o oversee_v the_o flock_n v_o 28._o ans._n the_o minister_n here_o be_v not_o at_o all_o fair_a in_o his_o reason_n for_o the_o remedy_n which_o the_o apostle_n prescribe_v against_o the_o wolf_n
or_o interloper_n that_o will_v thrust_v themselves_o in_o among_o they_o and_o against_o the_o viper_n which_o will_v arise_v out_o of_o their_o own_o bowel_n be_v to_o take_v heed_n to_o themselves_o and_o to_o the_o flock_n to_o feed_v the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o other_o word_n over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v you_o overseer_n be_v only_o a_o remind_v they_o by_o the_o way_n of_o their_o power_n and_o duty_n all_o government_n of_o what_o kind_n soever_o it_o be_v it_o be_v confess_v be_v in_o general_a a_o remedy_n against_o schism_n but_o these_o elder_n be_v not_o say_v to_o have_v be_v ordain_v overseer_n by_o the_o apostle_n as_o if_o that_o particular_a government_n of_o presbyterian_a parity_n be_v especial_o intend_v for_o a_o remedy_n against_o future_a schism_n the_o proper_a and_o parcular_a remedy_n here_o prescribe_v by_o st._n paul_n be_v to_o take_v heed_n etc._n etc._n and_o as_o it_o follow_v v_o 31._o to_o watch_v etc._n etc._n without_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o provide_v effectual_o against_o a_o surprise_n from_o their_o enemy_n the_o wolf_n and_o the_o viper_n there_o speak_v of_o be_v overseer_n or_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n will_v not_o do_v the_o work_n whether_o they_o act_v in_o a_o parity_n or_o in_o subordination_n to_o some_o single_a person_n be_v the_o same_o thing_n as_o to_o the_o apostle_n argument_n here_o and_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o still_o it_o be_v their_o take_a heed_n and_o watch_v must_v secure_v they_o against_o schism_n and_o against_o heresy_n but_o if_o afterward_o this_o presbyterian_a parity_n be_v by_o experience_n find_v inconvenient_a rather_o a_o nursery_n and_o occasion_n of_o schism_n and_o therefore_o for_o that_o very_a reason_n alter_v into_o prelatical_a form_n of_o government_n for_o the_o security_n of_o the_o church_n in_o peace_n and_o order_n as_o jerom_n own_v it_o be_v most_o proper_a to_o say_v that_o prelacy_n be_v introduce_v into_o the_o church_n as_o a_o design_a remedy_n against_o schism_n and_o not_o presbyterian_a parity_n which_o be_v indeed_o the_o occasion_n of_o it_o at_o least_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o prevent_v it_o mr._n o._n further_o argue_v that_o god_n do_v not_o can_v not_o change_v 103._o the_o first_o institute_v church_n government_n because_o he_o foresee_v all_o event_n and_o know_v how_o to_o prevent_v schism_n by_o apt_a and_o effectual_a remedy_n and_o with_o he_o be_v no_o variableness_n nor_o shadow_n of_o turn_v ans._n such_o general_a harangue_n though_o ground_v on_o true_a principle_n if_o right_o understand_v and_o explain_v prove_v nothing_o for_o on_o the_o other_o side_n we_o know_v that_o god_n ofttimes_o repent_v and_o take_v new_a measure_n for_o the_o accomplish_n his_o own_o great_a and_o good_a design_n god_n employ_v noah_n a_o preacher_n of_o righteousness_n to_o persuade_v the_o then_o wicked_a world_n to_o repentance_n and_o reformation_n when_o this_o succeed_v not_o it_o repent_v he_o that_o he_o have_v make_v man_n and_o so_o he_o drown_v all_o the_o world_n except_o eight_o person_n god_n who_o himself_o in_o a_o peculiar_a manner_n govern_v israel_n appoint_v what_o prophet_n and_o ruler_n shall_v succeed_v at_o a_o vacancy_n the_o government_n of_o israel_n be_v hence_o call_v a_o theocracy_n yield_v to_o the_o importunity_n of_o the_o people_n and_o give_v they_o a_o king_n saul_n to_o govern_v they_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o nation_n but_o present_o after_o it_o repent_v god_n that_o he_o have_v set_v up_o saul_n to_o be_v king_n because_o he_o turn_v back_o from_o follow_v god_n 1_o sam_n 15._o 11._o where_o then_o be_v the_o absurdity_n in_o say_v god_n upon_o the_o occasion_n of_o schism_n direct_v the_o apostle_n to_o alter_v the_o government_n among_o the_o christian_n or_o rather_o as_o bishop_n pearson_n 73._o speak_v to_o perfect_a and_o complete_a it_o for_o the_o apostle_n so_o long_o as_o it_o seem_v good_a unto_o they_o retain_v in_o their_o own_o hand_n the_o government_n of_o all_o the_o church_n by_o they_o found_v as_o appear_v from_o act._n 14._o 21_o 22_o 23._o and_o chap._n 15._o 36._o but_o when_o the_o time_n of_o their_o departure_n draw_v on_o or_o when_o business_n increase_a on_o their_o hand_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o many_o conversion_n they_o be_v force_v to_o be_v absent_a or_o distant_a from_o those_o church_n a_o long_a time_n they_o substitute_v in_o their_o room_n successor_n and_o single_a person_n to_o preside_v over_o the_o church_n which_o indeed_o in_o exact_a speak_n be_v not_o a_o change_n but_o a_o continuance_n rather_o of_o the_o former_a government_n all_o the_o difference_n be_v that_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n be_v governor_n of_o many_o church_n these_o their_o successor_n be_v rule_n but_o of_o one_o haply_o of_o which_o difference_n i_o speak_v afterward_o mr._n o._n after_o he_o have_v endeavour_v to_o confirm_v his_o own_o opinion_n 104._o by_o such_o weak_a argument_n as_o we_o have_v here_o mention_v proceed_v in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o attack_v i_o many_o thing_n be_v here_o repeat_v which_o have_v be_v answer_v already_o and_o many_o thing_n offer_v which_o depend_v on_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o main_a point_n and_o which_o to_o make_v a_o particular_a reply_n unto_o here_o be_v superfluous_a mr._n o._n the_o 1_o tim._n 1._o 3._o do_v not_o say_v that_o paul_n constitute_v 106._o timothy_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n that_o be_v ruler_n ans._n let_v the_o text_n with_o the_o other_o passage_n of_o this_o epistle_n relate_v unto_o the_o power_n commit_v unto_o timothy_n speak_v for_o itself_o i_o put_v they_o together_o in_o t._n n._n and_o mr._n o._n have_v no_o other_o way_n to_o evade_v the_o force_n of_o the_o evidence_n but_o plead_v that_o timothy_n be_v a_o evangelist_n and_o extraordinary_a officer_n as_o before_o be_v note_v mr._n o_o st._n john_n reside_v long_o at_o ephesus_n after_o paul_n departure_n thence_o he_o return_v thither_o after_o his_o release_n from_o his_o banishment_n at_o paimos_n and_o live_v there_o and_o among_o the_o other_o asian_a church_n until_o trajan_n day_n by_o consequence_n st._n john_n be_v the_o supreme_a ruler_n of_o ephesus_n and_o not_o timothy_n ans._n let_v we_o see_v what_o the_o author_n he_o quote_v say_v in_o this_o matter_n euseb._n l._n 3._o c._n 18._o write_v that_o in_o the_o persecution_n raise_v by_o domitian_n john_n be_v banish_v into_o the_o island_n patmos_n and_o out_o of_o ãâã_d that_o he_o receive_v his_o revelation_n at_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o domitian_n '_o s_o reign_n no_o more_o than_o this_o be_v par._n to_o be_v find_v in_o that_o chapter_n of_o euseb._n cite_v by_o the_o minister_n and_o yet_o mr._n o._n affirm_v euseb._n here_o write_v that_o john_n return_v to_o ephesus_n after_o he_o be_v release_v etc._n etc._n there_o be_v here_o not_o a_o syllable_n of_o return_v nor_o of_o ephesus_n nor_o of_o release_v nor_o of_o live_v at_o ephesus_n or_o among_o the_o other_o asian_a church_n until_o trajan_n '_o s_o day_n this_o notwithstanding_o i_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o euseb._n in_o other_o place_n assert_n these_o thing_n but_o this_o signify_v 24._o nothing_o euseb._n say_v not_o that_o john_n in_o particular_a govern_v ephesus_n but_o the_o asian_a church_n after_o the_o manner_n it_o may_v seem_v of_o a_o metropolitan_a to_o the_o same_o purpose_n speak_v jerom_n c._n s._n e._n sub_fw-la nerva_n principe_fw-la redit_fw-la ephesum_fw-la ãâã_d usque_fw-la ad_fw-la trajanum_fw-la perseverans_fw-la totas_fw-la asiae_n fundavit_fw-la rexitque_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la they_o affirm_v not_o that_o john_n govern_v these_o asian_a church_n immediate_o after_o st._n paul_n departure_n into_o macedonia_n but_o in_o the_o day_n of_o trajan_n and_o after_o his_o release_n out_o of_o patmos_n nor_o do_v they_o tell_v we_o who_o govern_v ephesus_n and_o the_o other_o asian_a church_n from_o the_o time_n of_o paul_n go_v into_o macedonia_n 1_o tim._n 1._o 3._o unto_o the_o reign_n of_o nerva_n or_o trajan_n and_o therefore_o timothy_n may_v in_o that_o interval_n of_o time_n notwithstanding_o any_o thing_n here_o produce_v to_o the_o contrary_a have_v be_v the_o ruler_n or_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n i_o do_v further_o grant_v that_o ãâã_d l._n 3._o c._n 3._o write_v that_o john_n remain_v among_o the_o asian_a christian_n or_o church_n until_o trajan_n but_o he_o say_v not_o that_o the_o apostle_n remain_v there_o from_o the_o time_n of_o paul_n last_o depart_v from_o ephesus_n into_o macedonia_n when_o he_o constitute_v timothy_n ruler_n or_o bishop_n there_o one_o thing_n must_v not_o be_v omit_v that_o whereas_o eusebius_n and_o irenaeus_n confess_v what_o be_v indeed_o manifest_a in_o scripture_n that_o paul_n found_v these_o asian_a church_n yet_o jerom_n make_v john_n the_o ãâã_d and_o ruler_n of_o they_o totas_fw-la asiae_n
fundavit_fw-la &_o rexit_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la which_o how_o to_o reconcile_v may_v deserve_v a_o few_o word_n that_o paul_n found_v the_o asian_o church_n can_v be_v deny_v and_o settle_v their_o government_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v question_v that_o these_o asian_a church_n be_v to_o decay_v by_o the_o time_n of_o john_n banishment_n into_o patmos_n be_v manifest_a from_o the_o epistle_n unto_o the_o seven_o church_n in_o the_o revelation_n that_o john_n after_o his_o release_n return_v into_o ãâã_d new_a form_v regulate_v and_o reform_v ãâã_d church_n be_v most_o probable_a and_o therefore_o be_v say_v by_o jerom_n to_o have_v found_v and_o govern_v they_o perhaps_o he_o remove_v some_o of_o the_o angel_n or_o bishop_n of_o those_o church_n who_o have_v misbehave_v themselves_o in_o their_o office_n whether_o for_o a_o while_o he_o personal_o govern_v they_o all_o himself_o without_o continue_v or_o place_v over_o they_o bishop_n or_o whether_o as_o a_o metropolitan_a have_v a_o subordinate_a bishop_n in_o every_o church_n under_o he_o can_v with_o certainty_n be_v determine_v but_o it_o be_v out_o of_o question_n that_o he_o appoint_v bishop_n in_o they_o before_o he_o die_v as_o appear_v from_o ãâã_d epistle_n and_o from_o those_o remarkable_a word_n in_o tertullian_n 32._o ordo_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la ad_fw-la originem_fw-la recensus_fw-la in_o joannem_fw-la stabit_fw-la authorem_fw-la mr._n o._n that_o he_o may_v shake_v off_o the_o argument_n for_o bishop_n 108._o draw_v from_o the_o angel_n in_o the_o revelation_n argue_v 1._o that_o angel_n minister_n to_o the_o heir_n of_o salvation_n heb._n 1._o 14._o which_o import_v a_o ministry_n not_o superiority_n ans._n he_o abuse_v the_o text_n it_o be_v minister_a for_o not_o to_o the_o heir_n of_o salvation_n they_o minister_n to_o god_n for_o we_o so_o the_o king_n be_v the_o minister_n of_o or_o to_o god_n rom._n 13._o 4._o for_o we_o nevertheless_o he_o be_v our_o superior_a even_o as_o the_o angel_n be_v brief_o by_o this_o argument_n neither_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o the_o apostle_n nor_o bishop_n nor_o presbyter_n nor_o dissent_v minister_n have_v any_o authority_n for_o all_o these_o minister_n for_o our_o salvation_n or_o pretend_v it_o 2._o that_o angel_n singular_a be_v often_o take_v collective_o for_o angel_n plural_a as_o be_v star_n also_o ans._n mr._n o._n have_v not_o produce_v one_o example_n hereof_o if_o any_o one_o be_v at_o leisure_n to_o examine_v the_o text_n cite_v by_o he_o he_o will_v find_v this_o true_a for_o of_o mal._n 2._o 7._o i_o treat_v by_o and_o by_o 3._o that_o the_o epistle_n be_v direct_v to_o all_o the_o believer_n of_o the_o asiatic_a church_n so_o i_o understand_v he_o and_o not_o to_o the_o angel_n only_o ans._n not_o so_o but_o to_o the_o angle_n only_o for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o believer_n 4._o that_o it_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o there_o be_v a_o hierarchy_n among_o the_o angel_n that_o the_o pseudo-dionysius_n make_v they_o the_o low_a order_n that_o therefore_o they_o can_v represent_v the_o high_a order_n in_o the_o church_n ans._n it_o be_v mere_a jangle_n to_o allege_v the_o opinion_n of_o a_o author_n confess_o spurious_a but_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o there_o be_v a_o angelical_a hierarchy_n from_o 16._o scripture_n and_o that_o angel_n be_v the_o superior_a order_n may_v be_v gather_v from_o rom._n 3._o 38._o where_o they_o reckon_v 16._o in_o the_o first_o place_n before_o principality_n and_o power_n last_o the_o superlative_a excellency_n of_o angel_n suppose_v they_o the_o low_a order_n make_v they_o a_o fit_a representation_n of_o the_o high_a degree_n among_o men._n we_o may_v say_v of_o the_o mean_a angel_n he_o that_o be_v least_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v great_a than_o the_o mighty_a potentate_n of_o the_o earth_n even_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v call_v a_o angel_n mal._n 3._o 1._o 5._o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o epistle_n allude_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o synagogue_n in_o conformity_n to_o the_o language_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n job_n 33._o 23._o hag._n 1._o 13._o mal._n 2._o 1_o 7._o ch_z 3._o 1._o ans._n in_o these_o text_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o synagogue_n nor_o any_o where_o else_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n nor_o do_v we_o meet_v with_o angel_n of_o the_o synagogue_n but_o ruler_n in_o the_o new_a nor_o any_o where_o else_o but_o in_o the_o late_a rabbin_n job_n messenger_n be_v either_o a_o real_a angel_n or_o extraordinary_a prophet_n interpreter_n and_o one_o of_o a_o thousand_o v_o 23._o hagga_n be_v a_o prophet_n so_o be_v the_o baptist_n not_o minister_n of_o synagogue_n when_o mr._n o._n appeal_n unto_o malachy_n he_o be_v go_v from_o the_o synagogue_n to_o the_o temple_n and_o so_o quit_v his_o argument_n nor_o do_v priest_n mal._n 2._o 1._o signify_v all_o even_o the_o secondary_a priest_n in_o the_o temple_n but_o the_o high_a priest_n only_o in_o succession_n who_o be_v therefore_o v_o 7._o express_v in_o the_o singular_a and_o indefinite_o or_o if_o mr._n o._n will_v have_v it_o so_o priests_z here_o signfy_v collective_o all_o high_a priest_n for_o it_o must_v be_v confess_v when_o the_o subject_a of_o a_o proposition_n be_v put_v indefinite_o in_o the_o singular_a number_n and_o the_o predicate_v belong_v to_o the_o whole_a species_n than_o the_o subject_n may_v be_v take_v collective_o and_o be_v equivalent_a to_o a_o universal_a proposition_n as_o when_o we_o say_v man_n be_v a_o rational_a creature_n we_o mean_v all_o man_n be_v so_o but_o it_o will_v be_v say_v that_o the_o predicate_v viz._n his_o lip_n shall_v keep_v knowledge_n etc._n etc._n appertain_v to_o the_o whole_a species_n of_o priest_n even_o the_o secondary_a i_o reply_v 1._o suppose_v this_o yet_o still_o there_o be_v a_o high_a priest_n in_o the_o temple_n and_o therefore_o agreeable_o hereunto_o though_o all_o the_o elder_n be_v call_v angel_n admit_v this_o yet_o there_o be_v a_o archangel_n in_o every_o church_n unto_o who_o the_o epistle_n be_v direct_v who_o be_v the_o angel_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d for_o 2_o angel_n in_o the_o epistle_n be_v not_o describe_v by_o a_o specifical_a but_o a_o individual_a character_n ex_fw-la gr_n the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n if_o it_o be_v say_v this_o be_v a_o specifical_a character_n because_o all_o the_o elder_n be_v angel_n of_o that_o church_n i_o return_v that_o can_v be_v for_o no_o body_n ever_o direct_v a_o letter_n thus_o indefinite_o to_o all_o and_o to_o every_o one_o or_o any_o one_o of_o the_o same_o denomination_n the_o title_n may_v haply_o belong_v to_o many_o person_n for_o different_a reason_n and_o yet_o the_o letter_n be_v intend_v for_o some_o one_o more_o eminent_o call_v so_o as_o if_o a_o letter_n be_v direct_v to_o the_o speaker_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o though_o every_o member_n be_v speaker_n if_o he_o please_v and_o though_o of_o the_o topping_n and_o forward_a commoner_n we_o usual_o say_v they_o be_v speaker_n because_o they_o often_o speak_v to_o matter_n in_o debate_n yet_o every_o footboy_n will_v apprehend_v the_o letter_n be_v send_v to_o a_o particular_a determinate_a person_n common_o call_v the_o speaker_n wherefore_o if_o all_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n be_v in_o some_o sense_n angel_n yet_o the_o angel_n must_v mean_v some_o single_a person_n know_v in_o special_a manner_n style_v angel_n who_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o prelatical_a ruler_n of_o that_o church_n a_o great_a deal_n be_v argue_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o hebrew_n read_v of_o deut._n 32._o 8._o against_o that_o of_o the_o seventy_o but_o beside_o what_o have_v be_v elsewhere_o offer_v in_o the_o vindication_n of_o the_o latter_a i_o here_o add_v that_o clemens_n 2._o romanus_n *_o that_o origen_n *_o and_o jerom_n *_o himself_o the_o fierce_a stickler_n for_o the_o hebrew_n read_v the_o place_n according_a to_o the_o seventy_o it_o may_v then_o with_o reason_n be_v suspect_v that_o the_o proud_a conceit_a jew_n corrupt_v this_o scripture_n to_o magnify_v themselves_o and_o their_o nation_n as_o if_o god_n in_o divide_v the_o nation_n have_v his_o eye_n '_o special_o on_o the_o son_n of_o israel_n model_v the_o world_n according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o they_o that_o go_v down_o with_o jacob_n into_o egypt_n as_o the_o rabbin_n imagine_v as_o for_o the_o precise_a number_n of_o province_n and_o their_o guardian_n angel_n though_o the_o rabbin_n and_o the_o hebrew_n read_v of_o deut._n 32._o 8._o seem_v to_o determine_v they_o by_o the_o number_n of_o jacob_n child_n who_o go_v with_o he_o into_o egypt_n yet_o neither_o the_o seventy_o nor_o i_o have_v adventure_v so_o punctual_o to_o define_v it_o but_o have_v leave_v that_o point_n uncertain_a and_o indefinite_a it_o be_v not_o know_v into_o how_o many_o province_n god_n cast_v the_o
world_n at_o first_o nor_o can_v we_o tell_v into_o how_o many_o more_o he_o may_v afterward_o multiply_v or_o into_o how_o few_o reduce_v it_o for_o even_o the_o roman_n be_v wont_n sometime_o to_o increase_v and_o sometime_o to_o diminish_v their_o province_n as_o therefore_o god_n may_v for_o any_o thing_n we_o know_v in_o the_o beginning_n have_v divide_v the_o nation_n into_o seventy_o time_n seven_o province_n and_o constitute_v so_o many_o guardian_n angel_n over_o they_o and_o afterward_o alter_v the_o number_n of_o both_o by_o add_v or_o diminish_v as_o he_o see_v good_a so_o may_v he_o have_v appoint_v and_o vary_v the_o number_n of_o bishop_n as_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n require_v into_o sometime_o more_o and_o sometime_o less_o i_o will_v conclude_v the_o whole_a argument_n with_o two_o or_o three_o observation_n which_o will_v confirm_v what_o be_v before_o plead_v that_o there_o be_v a_o hierarchy_n among_o the_o celestial_a spirit_n and_o angel_n as_o i_o say_v according_a to_o the_o current_a opinion_n in_o former_a time_n preside_v as_o guardian_n over_o kingdom_n and_o province_n be_v witness_v by_o 8._o jerom_n who_o thus_o deliver_v himself_o angeli_fw-la qui_fw-la regnis_fw-la &_o nationibus_fw-la praesidebant_fw-la that_o angel_n in_o the_o revelation_n be_v a_o allusion_n to_o these_o guardian_n angel_n be_v countenance_v 2._o by_o that_o note_a passage_n in_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n 6._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d etc._n etc._n the_o progression_n of_o bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n be_v i_o think_v imitation_n of_o the_o angelical_a glory_n and_o of_o that_o ordination_n as_o also_o by_o that_o other_o of_o origen_n lucae_n per_fw-la singulas_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la etc._n etc._n there_o be_v two_o bishop_n in_o every_o church_n one_o visible_a the_o man_n bishop_n the_o other_o invisible_a the_o angel_n bishop_n i_o think_v there_o may_v be_v find_v both_o a_o angel_n and_o a_o man_n good_a bishop_n of_o the_o church_n and_o as_o it_o be_v partner_n in_o the_o work_n last_o optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la ed._n stiles_n bishop_n angel_n and_o plain_o allude_v unto_o the_o apocalyptical_a angel_n nor_o have_v i_o meet_v with_o that_o conceit_n about_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o synagogue_n the_o charan_n or_o bishop_n in_o the_o primitive_a father_n who_o make_v casaub._n no_o use_n of_o that_o notion_n to_o explain_v the_o order_n of_o bishop_n for_o indeed_o it_o be_v the_o invention_n of_o the_o late_a rabbin_n but_o sometime_o as_o i_o have_v just_o prove_v they_o allude_v unto_o the_o angel_n and_o frequent_o unto_o the_o high_a priest_n in_o the_o temple_n mr._n o._n whereas_o i_o argue_v that_o the_o synagogue-ruler_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o ãâã_d high_a priest_n ch_z say_v he_o so_o be_v presbyter_n to_o jesus_n christ_n our_o high_a priest_n ans._n but_o we_o be_v inquire_v about_o subjection_n unto_o visible_a ruler_n and_o if_o mr._n o._n will_v needs_o have_v the_o synagogue_n a_o pattern_n of_o the_o christian_a congregation_n than_o the_o presbyter_n must_v be_v subject_a unto_o some_o visible_a superior_a as_o be_v the_o ruler_n of_o the_o synagogue_n which_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o name_n till_o than_o my_o observation_n be_v of_o moment_n but_o his_o reply_n mere_o delusory_a and_o evasive_a mr._n o._n let_v the_o bishop_n produce_v as_o clear_v a_o charter_n for_o their_o order_n as_o the_o high-priest_n do_v for_o they_o and_o we_o will_v submit_v ans._n first_o it_o be_v sufficient_a i_o suppose_v that_o the_o bishop_n charter_n be_v a_o clear_a one_o as_o to_o the_o power_n they_o claim_v and_o exercise_n though_o not_o as_o to_o the_o title_n of_o bishop_n it_o make_v no_o great_a matter_n what_o become_v of_o that_o second_o let_v mr._n o._n bring_v as_o clear_v a_o proof_n of_o presbyterian_a parity_n or_o independency_n or_o of_o presbyter_n exercise_v the_o supreme_a act_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n as_o be_v to_o be_v produce_v from_o the_o epistle_n to_o tim._n and_o tit._n in_o behalf_n of_o prelacy_n that_o be_v for_o a_o single_a person_n preside_v over_o church_n and_o govern_v they_o and_o there_o be_v a_o end_n of_o the_o present_a controversy_n three_o i_o ask_v mr._n ãâã_d between_o he_o and_o i_o whether_o he_o do_v not_o submit_v to_o some_o religious_a usage_n for_o which_o there_o be_v not_o so_o clear_a a_o charter_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n as_o there_o be_v in_o the_o old_a for_o some_o of_o the_o jewish_a rite_n whether_o he_o have_v as_o clear_v and_o express_v commandment_n for_o infant_n baptism_n for_o the_o observation_n and_o divine_a institution_n of_o the_o lord's-day_n for_o day_n of_o public_a and_o general_a fast_n or_o humiliation_n for_o sing_v david_n psalm_n in_o metre_n as_o the_o jew_n have_v for_o circumcision_n for_o saturday-sabbath_n for_o their_o fasting-day_n and_o for_o their_o sing_v the_o book_n of_o psalm_n in_o their_o way_n it_o be_v not_o then_o for_o want_v of_o a_o clear_a charter_n as_o i_o fear_v that_o he_o refuse_v to_o submit_v to_o bishop_n but_o for_o want_v of_o a_o clear_a understanding_n and_o a_o peaceable_a and_o humble_a mind_n he_o that_o can_v sit_v down_o with_o reasonable_a deduction_n and_o be_v prevail_v with_o to_o make_v no_o scruple_n of_o do_v what_o be_v thereby_o recommend_v unto_o he_o if_o he_o be_v steady_a to_o his_o own_o principle_n aught_o to_o be_v satisfy_v with_o the_o like_a reasonable_a conclusion_n in_o all_o other_o matter_n of_o religion_n i_o say_v in_o the_o t._n n._n that_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o the_o temple-worship_n be_v moral_a religion_n it_o be_v as_o much_o the_o pattern_n of_o the_o christian_a as_o the_o synagogue_n worship_n be_v and_o on_o that_o account_n the_o jewish_a priesthood_n may_v be_v the_o pattern_n of_o the_o christian_a hierarchy_n mr._n o._n say_v no_o because_o the_o jewish_a priesthood_n be_v appropriate_v to_o the_o ceremonial_a worship_n of_o the_o temple_n though_o they_o perform_v the_o moral_a part_n there_o also_o ans._n though_o the_o jewish_a priesthood_n and_o the_o temple_n worship_n be_v encumber_v with_o ceremony_n yet_o they_o may_v be_v the_o pattern_n of_o the_o christian_a priesthood_n and_o worship_n a_o embroider_a garment_n may_v be_v the_o pattern_n of_o a_o plain_a one_o they_o may_v both_o be_v like_a in_o shape_n and_o in_o substance_n though_o not_o in_o ornament_n and_o their_o trim_n beside_o though_o the_o levitical_a ceremony_n be_v abolish_v yet_o some_o other_o be_v substitute_v by_o jesus_n christ_n in_o their_o room_n as_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord's-supper_n but_o how_o can_v the_o synagogue_n which_o have_v no_o ceremony_n at_o all_o only_o the_o moral_a part_n of_o religion_n perform_v in_o it_o according_a to_o mr._n oh_o reason_n be_v a_o pattern_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n which_o have_v ceremony_n there_o be_v as_o much_o disagreement_n between_o a_o synagogue_n which_o have_v no_o ceremony_n only_o natural_a religion_n exercise_v in_o it_o and_o a_o christian_a church_n which_o have_v ceremony_n beside_o the_o natural_a religion_n as_o there_o be_v between_o the_o temple_n which_o have_v levitical_a ceremony_n and_o the_o christian_n which_o have_v not_o mr._n o._n argue_v that_o the_o legal_a priest_n and_o altar_n and_o priesthood_n be_v change_v ans._n true_a as_o to_o the_o levitical_a ceremony_n but_o not_o as_o to_o any_o thing_n which_o be_v moral_a and_o government_n i_o conceive_v be_v a_o part_n of_o moral_a religion_n though_o therefore_o a_o levitical_a ceremonial_a highpriest_n be_v not_o ordain_v for_o the_o christian_a church_n yet_o in_o imitation_n of_o the_o jewish_a ecclesiastical_a government_n a_o christian_a high_a priest_n may_v be_v appoint_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n be_v lay_v aside_o mr._n o._n the_o moral_a worship_n in_o the_o synagogue_n may_v be_v perform_v by_o such_o as_o be_v no_o priest_n ans._n and_o will_v mr._n o._n therefore_o assert_v that_o any_o man_n may_v in_o a_o christian_a public_a congregation_n perform_v the_o moral_a part_n of_o worship_n this_o very_a observation_n of_o mr._n oh_o show_v that_o the_o synagogue_n be_v not_o the_o pattern_n of_o christian_a church_n or_o congregation_n because_o i_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o none_o among_o we_o can_v perform_v even_o moral_a worship_n in_o public_a except_o deacon_n presbyter_n and_o bishop_n it_o rather_o therefore_o import_v that_o the_o temple_n worship_n be_v the_o pattern_n of_o the_o christian_a because_o as_o none_o but_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n can_v perform_v the_o moral_a worship_n in_o the_o temple_n 2_o chron._n 30._o 27._o nehem._n 9_o 5._o joel_n 2._o 17._o even_o so_o among_o we_o none_o can_v except_z bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n i_o shall_v ãâã_d my_o answer_n to_o mr._n oh_o discourse_n about_o ãâã_d '_o epistle_n to_o the_o reply_n which_o i_o intend_v unto_o his_o plea_n judge_v that_o the_o most_o
proper_a place_n we_o be_v then_o now_o to_o treat_v of_o titus_n and_o inquire_v whether_o he_o be_v the_o supreme_a ruler_n of_o the_o church_n in_o crete_n by_o the_o appointment_n of_o paul_n i_o have_v affirm_v in_o t._n n._n and_o i_o think_v prove_v it_o but_o mr._n o._n tell_v we_o ãâã_d no_o where_o say_v that_o paul_n make_v titus_n bishop_n of_o crete_n ans._n it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o i_o that_o paul_n commit_v to_o he_o the_o supreme_a govern_v power_n over_o that_o church_n i_o ãâã_d not_o about_o the_o word_n bishop_n on_o the_o other_o side_n i_o retort_v that_o it_o be_v no_o where_o say_v that_o paul_n ordain_v or_o constitute_v any_o one_o presbyter_n in_o crete_n will_v it_o follow_v that_o he_o make_v none_o at_o all_o mr._n o._n titus_n be_v leave_v in_o crete_n but_o for_o a_o season_n perhaps_o not_o above_o half_a a_o year_n paul_n charge_v he_o to_o come_v to_o he_o unto_o nicopolis_n etc._n etc._n tit._n 3._o 12._o ans._n according_a to_o my_o hypothesis_n it_o may_v be_v some_o year_n after_o paul_n leave_v crete_n that_o he_o send_v for_o he_o unto_o nicopolis_n the_o apostle_n as_o i_o suppose_v leave_v he_o at_o crete_n as_o he_o sail_v from_o italy_n to_o judaea_n after_o his_o release_n from_o his_o first_o imprisonment_n at_o rome_n and_o long_o after_o as_o he_o be_v return_v to_o italy_n he_o send_v for_o he_o to_o nicopolis_n if_o this_o be_v once_o prove_v as_o i_o promise_v than_o titus_n be_v not_o leave_v in_o crete_n for_o a_o season_n but_o according_a to_o mr._n oh_o hypothesis_n i_o can_v imagine_v that_o titus_n can_v have_v be_v leave_v in_o crete_n half_a a_o month_n far_o enough_o short_a of_o half_a a_o year_n and_o too_o short_a a_o time_n to_o set_v in_o order_n the_o 10._o thing_n that_o be_v lack_v to_o ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o false_a teacher_n to_o rebuke_v they_o and_o that_o with_o all_o authority_n in_o a_o word_n to_o reject_v ãâã_d after_o a_o second_o admonition_n this_o sure_o be_v above_o a_o month_n work_n or_o indeed_o half_a a_o year_n it_o imply_v a_o permanent_a and_o continue_a employment_n i_o say_v according_a to_o mr._n oh_o hypothesis_n titus_n have_v not_o sufficient_a time_n for_o the_o work_n whereunto_o he_o be_v appoint_v for_o he_o attend_v paul_n from_o achaia_n unto_o macedonia_n and_o so_o into_o asia_n till_o they_o arrive_v at_o jerusalem_n of_o all_o which_o i_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o treat_v more_o punctual_o in_o the_o four_o chapter_n however_o it_o can_v i_o own_v be_v deny_v that_o paul_n call_v titus_n from_o crete_n and_o by_o consequence_n it_o will_v be_v say_v he_o be_v not_o the_o fix_a ruler_n or_o bishop_n there_o ans._n the_o resident_a governor_n of_o church_n in_o the_o apostle_n day_n be_v not_o so_o tie_v to_o their_o post_n that_o they_o may_v not_o on_o any_o account_n whatever_o stir_v thence_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o they_o remove_v for_o a_o while_n at_o the_o apostle_n call_v and_o for_o the_o furtherance_n of_o the_o gospel_n unto_o other_o place_n and_o afterward_o return_v to_o their_o residence_n again_o i_o do_v suppose_v titus_n go_v to_o st._n paul_n at_o nicopolis_n and_o thence_o with_o he_o unto_o rome_n that_o as_o he_o return_v back_o unto_o crete_n by_o the_o apostle_n direction_n he_o take_v dalmatia_n in_o his_o way_n 10._o to_o plant_v the_o gospel_n there_o or_o to_o confirm_v the_o church_n what_o become_v of_o he_o afterward_o can_v be_v know_v from_o scripture_n the_o divine_a history_n of_o the_o church_n of_o crete_n reach_v no_o further_a but_o if_o we_o will_v hearken_v as_o in_o reason_n we_o ought_v unto_o what_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o church-history_n we_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o titus_n return_v into_o crete_n for_o there_o he_o die_v and_o be_v bury_v and_o i_o hope_v mr._n o._n who_o seem_v to_o have_v a_o due_a 169._o regard_n unto_o the_o father_n and_o so_o frequent_o quote_v they_o for_o the_o support_n of_o his_o own_o opinion_n will_v take_v notice_n of_o this_o evidence_n eccles._n mr._n o._n here_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o elder_n in_o crete_n be_v choose_v by_o the_o ãâã_d before_o they_o be_v ordain_v by_o titus_n ground_v himself_o upon_o act._n 14._o 23._o where_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v the_o word_n use_v and_o be_v render_v ordain_v but_o imply_v choose_v ans._n although_o this_o be_v not_o to_o the_o point_n here_o debate_v yet_o lest_o i_o shall_v be_v think_v to_o overslip_a a_o difficulty_n i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v not_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n the_o least_o intimation_n of_o the_o multitude_n choose_v the_o elder_n but_o the_o contrary_a rather_o the_o qualification_n and_o fitness_n of_o the_o candidate_n unto_o that_o good_a office_n be_v leave_v unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o titus_n nor_o do_v it_o appear_v in_o act_n 14._o 23._o that_o the_o multitude_n choose_v those_o elder_n there_o speak_v of_o ãâã_d if_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o this_o place_n signify_v ordain_v then_o here_o be_v not_o one_o word_n of_o choose_v they_o but_o if_o it_o signify_v choose_v then_o be_v the_o two_o apostle_n paul_n and_o barnabas_n the_o elector_n as_o well_o as_o the_o ordainer_n why_o not_o so_o god_n first_o without_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o people_n choose_v the_o twelve_o apostle_n act._n 10._o 41._o where_o the_o same_o word_n be_v use_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o then_o ordain_v they_o act._n 2._o by_o anoint_v they_o with_o the_o spirit_n nor_o be_v mr._n o._n mistake_v when_o he_o imagine_v i_o dream_v that_o after_o ordination_n titus_n assign_v those_o elder_n some_o new_a power_n which_o i_o think_v be_v intimate_v in_o the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o do_v not_o proper_o signify_v to_o ordain_v but_o presupposes_a ordination_n and_o import_v the_o place_n of_o those_o elder_n in_o their_o particular_a station_n and_o this_o i_o believe_v be_v distinct_a from_o their_o ordination_n mr._n o._n after_o a_o tedious_a discourse_n about_o evangelist_n of_o which_o number_n he_o reckon_v ãâã_d and_o titus_n have_v contend_v 121._o that_o be_v unfixt_v officer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o which_o more_o hereafter_o believe_v it_o a_o degrade_n they_o who_o have_v a_o general_a power_n over_o all_o the_o church_n to_o tie_v they_o to_o residence_n in_o one_o particular_a church_n make_v ordinary_a officer_n of_o '_o they_o ans._n i_o do_v not_o apprehend_v this_o to_o be_v a_o degrade_n they_o for_o whilst_o they_o continue_v the_o companion_n and_o fellow_n labourer_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o unfixt_v officer_n of_o the_o church_n they_o can_v proper_o be_v say_v to_o have_v have_v a_o general_a power_n over_o all_o church_n but_o be_v continual_o at_o the_o beck_n and_o command_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o dispatch_v such_o order_n as_o be_v from_o time_n to_o time_n give_v they_o as_o they_o have_v no_o certain_a place_n of_o residence_n so_o neither_o have_v they_o any_o certain_a work_n but_o be_v like_o reformades_n in_o a_o army_n who_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v but_o what_o the_o general_n by_o a_o special_a order_n employ_v they_o in_o upon_o sudden_a occasion_n if_o it_o be_v allowable_a magnis_fw-la componere_fw-la parva_fw-la to_o explain_v the_o condition_n of_o the_o unfixt_v evangelist_n by_o a_o instance_n well_o know_v in_o this_o county_n palatine_n of_o lancaster_n they_o be_v like_a to_o our_o itinerant_a preacher_n found_v by_o q._n elizabeth_n of_o famous_a memory_n these_o have_v a_o power_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o diocese_n to_o preach_v etc._n etc._n in_o any_o church_n or_o chapel_n within_o the_o say_a county_n as_o his_o lordship_n shall_v direct_v they_o or_o they_o know_v be_v necessary_a and_o convenient_a to_o the_o service_n of_o the_o reformation_n they_o have_v a_o general_a power_n to_o preach_v in_o the_o church_n in_o lancashire_n now_o if_o the_o bishop_n fix_v they_o in_o some_o rectory_n or_o vicarage_n no_o man_n will_v say_v they_o be_v degrade_v though_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o ministry_n be_v bring_v into_o a_o narrow_a compass_n than_o before_o but_o i_o have_v spend_v more_o word_n on_o this_o slight_a objection_n than_o it_o deserve_v appendix_n mr_n o._n whereas_o i_o affirm_v that_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ought_v proper_o 5._o to_o have_v be_v render_v appoint_v or_o constitute_v and_o settle_v or_o place_v they_o pre-supposing_a at_o the_o same_o time_n their_o 64._o ordination_n he_o hence_o conclude_v i_o give_v up_o one_o of_o titus_n '_o be_v main_a power_n add_v if_o this_o text_n prove_v not_o titus_n his_o ordain_v power_n no_o one_o in_o that_o epistle_n do_v ans._n but_o mr._n o._n forget_v that_o himself_o as_o well_o as_o the_o
rector_n have_v all_o along_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o whatever_o power_n be_v commit_v to_o ãâã_d be_v also_o give_v unto_o titus_n and_o reciprocal_o what_o to_o titus_n be_v commit_v to_o timothy_n beside_o i_o take_v it_o to_o be_v out_o of_o controversy_n that_o he_o to_o who_o any_o one_o part_n of_o supreme_a power_n be_v give_v be_v to_o be_v understand_v as_o invest_v with_o all_o consequent_o if_o titus_n be_v to_o appoint_v where_o every_o presbyter_n be_v to_o officiate_v he_o then_o have_v the_o power_n of_o ordination_n also_o as_o in_o like_a manner_n though_o timothy_n have_v no_o express_a commission_n to_o reject_v heretic_n after_o the_o second_o admonition_n yet_o because_o titus_n have_v that_o power_n so_o have_v ãâã_d likewise_o in_o short_a titus_n have_v authority_n to_o receive_v accusation_n and_o to_o rebuke_v open_o as_o well_o as_o timothy_n have_v 1_o epist._n to_o tim._n 5._o and_o timothy_n to_o excommunicate_v the_o contumacious_a as_o well_o as_o titus_n have_v ch._n 3._o 10._o and_o both_o have_v power_n to_o ordain_v because_o one_o have_v chap._n iu._n be_v a_o answer_n to_o mr._n oh_o 4_o the_o chap._n the_o question_n here_o be_v whereas_o st._n paul_n give_v timothy_n those_o ample_a commission_n and_o instruction_n that_o we_o read_v of_o in_o his_o first_o epistle_n concern_v the_o government_n of_o the_o ephesian_a church_n some_o time_n after_o he_o have_v beseech_v he_o to_o abide_v still_o at_o ephesus_n when_o he_o go_v into_o macedonia_n 1_o epist._n 1._o 3_o what_o be_v that_o precise_a time_n of_o paul_n go_v into_o macedonia_n and_o beseech_v timothy_n to_o abide_v at_o ephesus_n in_o the_o tent._n nou._n follow_v bishop_n pearson_n i_o resolve_v this_o question_n thus_o that_o paul_n journey_n here_o speak_v of_o can_v not_o be_v mean_v of_o any_o of_o those_o mention_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v some_o other_o after_o his_o bid_n the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n farewell_o that_o come_v to_o jerusalem_n he_o be_v there_o make_v prisoner_n and_o thence_o carry_v to_o rome_n where_o he_o continue_v about_o 2_o year_n in_o bond_n that_o be_v at_o length_n release_v he_o return_v into_o the_o eastern_a part_n again_o visit_v the_o church_n and_o then_o as_o he_o pass_v out_o of_o asia_n into_o macedonia_n beseech_v timothy_n to_o abide_v at_o ephesus_n as_o the_o fix_a ruler_n or_o bishop_n of_o that_o church_n and_o short_o after_o dispatch_v the_o one_a epistle_n to_o he_o that_o paul_n himself_o some_o while_n after_o go_v back_o into_o italy_n and_o unto_o the_o utmost_a part_n of_o the_o west_n preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o be_v at_o length_n once_o more_o get_v unto_o rome_n be_v there_o imprison_v a_o second_o time_n when_o he_o write_v the_o second_o epistle_n to_o tim._n a_o little_a before_o he_o be_v behead_v we_o be_v now_o to_o consider_v mr._n oh_o objection_n against_o all_o this_o mr._n o._n to_o abide_v still_o do_v not_o imply_v a_o continue_a residence_n 122._o but_o may_v signify_v a_o short_a stay_n act._n 17._o 14_o 15._o by_o consequence_n he_o be_v not_o the_o fix_a bishop_n ruler_n of_o ephesus_n ans._n there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d here_o and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d act._n 17._o 14_o 15._o the_o former_a imply_v a_o continue_a stay_n at_o ephesus_n the_o latter_a only_o signify_v silas_n and_o timothy_n halt_n that_o be_v tarry_v behind_o paul_n at_o beraea_n beside_o we_o have_v no_o account_n of_o timothy_n sudden_a remove_n from_o ephesus_n but_o we_o have_v of_o timothy_n leave_v beraea_n soon_o after_o act._n 18._o 5._o 1_o thes._n 3._o 2._o last_o the_o order_n give_v unto_o timothy_n at_o ephesus_n be_v many_o and_o important_a which_o also_o require_v time_n to_o be_v execute_v which_o do_v not_o appear_v to_o have_v be_v the_o case_n of_o timothy_n at_o beraea_n mr._n o._n timothy_n stay_n there_o at_z ephesus_z be_v but_o short_a that_o be_v until_o the_o apostle_n come_v to_o he_o 1_o tim._n 3._o 14._o ch_n 4._o 13._o ans._n there_o be_v no_o colour_n of_o argument_n in_o this_o it_o be_v not_o say_v he_o must_v tarry_v no_o long_o there_o than_o till_o paul_n come_v to_o he_o nor_o can_v that_o be_v the_o meaning_n for_o than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o timothy_n be_v to_o give_v attendance_n to_o read_n to_o exhortation_n and_o to_o doctrine_n but_o till_o the_o apostle_n come_v to_o he_o which_o i_o hope_v mr._n o._n will_v not_o affirm_v beside_o paul_n be_v not_o certain_a of_o his_o go_v to_o ephesus_n short_o therefore_o he_o add_v 1_o tim._n 3._o 15_o if_o i_o tarry_v long_o etc._n etc._n from_o which_o passage_n i_o gather_v that_o paul_n at_o his_o first_o beseech_v of_o timothy_n to_o abide_v at_o ephesus_n think_v his_o instruction_n not_o full_a enough_o and_o therefore_o intend_v to_o see_v timothy_n short_o at_o ephesus_n and_o to_o furnish_v he_o with_o further_a order_n how_o he_o ought_v to_o behave_v himself_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n commit_v to_o he_o but_o because_o he_o suspect_v he_o may_v tarry_v long_o he_o therefore_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o send_v he_o this_o epistle_n all_o which_o show_v that_o timothy_n be_v design_v for_o the_o fix_a ruler_n of_o ephesus_n although_o the_o apostle_n resolve_v to_o visit_v he_o there_o short_o not_o to_o remove_v he_o thence_o but_o to_o give_v he_o full_a direction_n about_o the_o management_n of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n mr._n o._n he_o be_v not_o fix_v as_o resident_n at_o ephesus_n because_o the_o apostle_n afterward_o call_v he_o to_o rome_n 2_o tim._n 4._o 9_o 21._o ans._n i_o will_v take_v a_o opportunity_n by_o and_o by_o to_o discourse_n about_o residence_n where_o the_o weakness_n of_o this_o objection_n will_v full_o appear_v in_o the_o interim_n i_o will_v only_o acquaint_v the_o reader_n that_o according_a to_o mr._n oh_o own_o hypothesis_n it_o can_v not_o be_v less_o than_o between_o three_o and_o four_o year_n after_o the_o write_n of_o the_o first_o epistle_n that_o paul_n send_v for_o ãâã_d unto_o rome_n and_o according_a unto_o i_o about_o six_o year_n which_o be_v a_o considerable_a stay_n or_o residence_n in_o one_o place_n i_o say_v further_o that_o paul_n send_v for_o timothy_n to_o rome_n be_v no_o argument_n that_o timothy_n for_o ever_o quit_v that_o post_n that_o he_o return_v back_o to_o ephesus_n must_v be_v make_v appear_v from_o ecclefiastical_a history_n the_o scripture_n go_v no_o further_o in_o the_o account_n of_o paul_n and_o timothy_n than_o that_o in_o the_o second_o epistle_n sophronlus_fw-la or_o jerom_n scr_n witness_v that_o he_o be_v martyr_a at_o ephesus_n and_o photius_n 254._o acquaint_v we_o with_o the_o time_n and_o occasion_n viz._n at_o the_o detestable_a festival_n call_v 1041._o the_o catagogium_fw-la which_o timothy_n will_v have_v have_v abrogate_a bur._n last_o suppose_v timothy_n never_o return_v back_o to_o ephesus_n it_o be_v no_o consequence_n that_o he_o be_v not_o by_o paul_n constitute_v resident_a bishop_n ruler_n of_o ephesus_n as_o will_v afterward_o in_o these_o paper_n appear_v mr._n o._n object_n against_o the_o time_n assign_v in_o t._n n._n of_o paul_n 124._o go_v into_o ãâã_d after_o his_o release_n from_o his_o first_o imprisonment_n at_o rome_n that_o be_v after_o the_o history_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n wherein_o no_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o this_o voyage_n as_o i_o assert_v against_o this_o i_o say_v mr._n o._n object_n that_o nothing_o can_v be_v conclude_v from_o luke_n silence_n in_o this_o point_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o do_v not_o mention_v all_o the_o journey_n of_o paul_n and_o timothy_n ans._n i_o ready_o grant_v that_o bare_a silence_n be_v no_o good_a proof_n without_o some_o other_o consideration_n to_o support_v it_o and_o i_o also_o grant_v that_o luke_n mention_n not_o all_o paul_n and_o timothy_n journey_n but_o i_o contend_v that_o he_o omit_v none_o of_o paul_n from_o the_o 13_o the_o chapter_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o any_o impartial_a man_n will_v believe_v if_o he_o careful_o read_v that_o part_n of_o the_o history_n and_o for_o proof_n of_o this_o i_o shall_v at_o present_a content_n myself_o with_o the_o acknowledgement_n and._n testimony_n of_o beza_n himself_o who_o thus_o write_v particular_o as_o to_o paul_n journey_n into_o macedonia_n ter_n omnino_fw-la vidit_fw-la macedoniam_fw-la paulus_n ut_fw-la ex_fw-la historiae_fw-la filo_fw-la apparet_fw-la quamvis_fw-la enim_fw-la non_fw-la omne_fw-la perscripserit_fw-la lucas_n ita_fw-la tamen_fw-la contextam_fw-la historiam_fw-la esse_fw-la apparet_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la plures_fw-la profectiones_fw-la in_o macedoniam_fw-la possint_fw-la 75._o constitui_fw-la paul_n see_v macedonia_n but_o thrice_o as_o
at_o rome_n visit_v ephesus_n ans._n the_o rector_n ãâã_d as_o lay_v in_o t._n n._n do_v not_o require_v that_o paul_n visit_v ephesus_n i_o take_v notice_n of_o mr._n bain_n mistake_n in_o say_v or_o suppose_v that_o paul_n leave_v timothy_n at_o ephesus_n as_o if_o paul_n have_v then_o be_v there_o but_o no_o such_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o 1_o tim._n 1._o 3_o beside_o i_o express_v my_o thought_n thus_o that_o paul_n be_v at_o ãâã_d go_v unto_o macedonia_n as_o he_o have_v signify_v philipp_n 1._o 25_o 26._o then_o beseech_v timothy_n to_o abide_v at_o ephesus_n not_o that_o paul_n be_v at_o the_o time_n ãâã_d his_o beseech_v timothy_n at_o ephesus_n but_o at_o troas_n neither_o be_v it_o necessary_a to_o suppose_v that_o timothy_n be_v then_o at_o ephesus_n for_o st._n paul_n may_v by_o letter_n beseech_v timothy_n to_o abide_v at_o ephesus_n though_o he_o have_v at_o that_o present_a be_v at_o troas_n with_o paul_n or_o timothy_n in_o some_o other_o place_n these_o be_v unnecessary_a repetition_n mr._n o._n whereas_o in_o proof_n of_o paul_n return_n into_o the_o east_n after_o his_o enlargement_n from_o prison_n i_o allege_v two_o tim._n 4._o 20._o trophimus_n be_v leave_v at_o ãâã_d sick_a etc._n etc._n the_o minister_n reply_v it_o be_v most_o likely_a that_o 129._o paul_n touch_v at_o ãâã_d when_o he_o return_v from_o jerusalem_n in_o bond_n to_o rome_n it_o be_v evident_a he_o intend_v to_o sail_v by_o the_o coast_n of_o asia_n act._n 27._o 2._o ans._n ãâã_d to_o sail_n sure_o mr._n o._n forget_v himself_o paul_n be_v now_o a_o prisoner_n in_o bond_n how_o then_o can_v the_o apostle_n intend_v or_o determine_v which_o way_n the_o ship_n must_v sail_v our_o translation_n haply_o which_o be_v not_o very_o exact_a here_o betray_v ãâã_d ãâã_d foul_a mistake_n mean_v to_o sail_n etc._n etc._n but_o in_o the_o original_a it_o be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v about_o to_o sail_n by_o the_o coast_n of_o asia_n we_o all_o in_o the_o ship_n launch_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d paul_n and_o his_o ãâã_d that_o mean_v or_o design_v which_o way_n they_o will_v sail_v but_o the_o centurion_n and_o master_n of_o the_o ship_n who_o determine_v that_o point_n but_o for_o the_o ship_n sail_v by_o the_o coast_n of_o asia_n the_o reason_n be_v plain_a for_o thither_o the_o ship_n be_v bind_v no_o further_o in_o the_o way_n to_o rome_n and_o therefore_o they_o change_v their_o ship_n at_o myra_n v_o 5._o a_o city_n of_o lycia_n part_n of_o the_o southern_a coast_n of_o asia_n and_o take_v another_o belong_v to_o alexandria_n so_o sail_v direct_o into_o italy_n v_o 6._o it_o be_v then_o neither_o paul_n ãâã_d no_o nor_o the_o centurion_n command_n which_o bring_v the_o ship_n by_o the_o coast_n of_o asia_n ãâã_d myra_n but_o the_o merchant_n business_n which_o indeed_o lie_v so_o far_o in_o the_o direct_a road_n unto_o italy_n for_o every_o one_o know_v the_o ancient_a way_n of_o sail_v before_o the_o compass_n and_o loadstone_n be_v ãâã_d they_o choose_v ãâã_d legere_fw-la littus_fw-la to_o sail_n by_o the_o coast_n as_o much_o as_o they_o safe_o can_v and_o they_o be_v general_o all_o what_o we_o now_o call_v coaster_n for_o they_o have_v no_o certain_a way_n to_o steer_v direct_o from_o place_n to_o place_n in_o the_o open_a broad_a sea_n except_o by_o the_o sun_n or_o star_n which_o do_v not_o always_o appear_v so_o that_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o keep_v within_o sight_n of_o land_n if_o possible_a but_o i_o pass_v this_o and_o further_o say_v to_o mr._n o._n that_o it_o be_v a_o very_a absurd_a conjecture_n to_o think_v that_o paul_n in_o his_o voyage_n touch_v at_o ãâã_d as_o if_o miletus_n lie_v in_o the_o way_n from_o myra_n to_o italy_n or_o as_o if_o the_o ãâã_d nturion_n or_o the_o master_n of_o the_o ship_n will_v go_v out_o of_o their_o way_n i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o day_n sail_v to_o accompany_v paul_n in_o visit_v the_o church_n at_o and_o near_o miletus_n when_o as_o paul_n be_v a_o prisoner_n send_v to_o rome_n the_o centurion_n can_v never_o have_v answer_v it_o to_o his_o superior_n as_o for_o the_o other_o two_o supposition_n that_o miletus_n may_v be_v a_o town_n in_o crete_n of_o that_o name_n or_o the_o island_n malta_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o then_o paul_n may_v in_o his_o voyage_n from_o judea_n to_o italy_n have_v leave_v trophimus_n in_o one_o or_o in_o either_o of_o those_o two_o place_n but_o what_o then_o will_v become_v of_o paul_n have_v be_v at_o troas_n 2_o tim._n 4._o 13._o and_o at_o corinth_n v_o 20_o if_o then_o he_o touch_v not_o at_o troas_n and_o at_o corinth_n in_o his_o passage_n from_o jerusalem_n to_o rome_n as_o for_o the_o foresay_a reason_n be_v clear_a there_o be_v good_a ground_n to_o believe_v he_o visit_v miletus_n in_o asia_n philippi_n and_o other_o church_n at_o the_o time_n by_o i_o assign_v this_o will_v further_o be_v dispute_v by_o and_o by_o after_o all_o this_o mr._n o._n undertake_v direct_o to_o vindicate_v the_o ancient_n 130._o chronology_n and_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v before_o paul_n meeting_n and_o take_v leave_n of_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n act._n 20._o ans._n if_o this_o be_v substantial_o prove_v yet_o still_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o timothy_n be_v not_o the_o supreme_a ruler_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n for_o first_o nothing_o in_o paul_n farewell-sermon_n prove_v the_o elder_n to_o be_v the_o supreme_a governor_n of_o that_o church_n as_o have_v already_o be_v make_v out_o and_o as_o for_o paul_n take_v no_o notice_n of_o ãâã_d in_o that_o farewell_n sermon_n i_o must_v retort_v that_o neither_o do_v paul_n mention_v the_o elder_n in_o the_o commission_n give_v to_o timothy_n in_o the_o first_o epistle_n which_o mr._n o._n suppose_v write_v before_o that_o farewell_n sermon_n there_o be_v several_a epistle_n to_o the_o church_n wherein_o the_o presbyter_n be_v not_o mention_v but_o it_o will_v not_o thence_o be_v conclude_v that_o they_o have_v no_o presbyter_n atall_a much_o less_o ought_v it_o to_o be_v gather_v that_o timothy_n be_v not_o the_o supreme_a ruler_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n because_o he_o be_v not_o speak_v of_o in_o so_o short_a a_o ãâã_d speech_n but_o these_o thing_n have_v be_v oft_o enough_o speak_v of_o let_v we_o then_o hear_v mr._n oh_o argument_n prove_v the_o first_o of_o timothy_n be_v write_v before_o the_o farewell-sermon_n mr._n o._n argue_v from_o paul_n excommunicate_v alexander_n the_o 131._o coppersmith_n 1_o ãâã_d 1._o 20._o who_o be_v the_o person_n mention_v act._n 19_o 33._o he_o add_v that_o this_o excommunication_n be_v not_o long_o after_o his_o apostasy_n and_o so_o be_v mention_v as_o a_o late_a thing_n ans._n i_o will_v not_o create_v mr._n o._n any_o unnecessary_a trouble_n but_o grant_v that_o the_o same_o person_n be_v mention_v in_o both_o place_n but_o i_o must_v say_v it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o this_o alexander_n be_v a_o christian_a at_o the_o uproar_n in_o ephesus_n mention_v act_n 19_o the_o contrary_n be_v most_o probable_a he_o be_v call_v a_o jew_n not_o a_o christian_a believer_n v._n 34._o if_o so_o than_o he_o who_o never_o yet_o believe_v can_v not_o yet_o be_v a_o apostate_n and_o consequently_n can_v not_o be_v excommunicate_v but_o say_v he_o be_v a_o christian-jew_n it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o he_o have_v any_o hand_n in_o raise_v the_o tumult_n against_o paul_n or_o that_o he_o apostatise_v from_o the_o faith_n at_o that_o time_n that_o his_o excommunication_n be_v not_o long_o after_o his_o apostasy_n i_o easy_o admit_v but_o when_o he_o apostatise_v i_o do_v desire_n to_o be_v inform_v as_o also_o where_o or_o to_o what_o church_n he_o belong_v when_o he_o apostatise_v and_o be_v excommunicate_v the_o most_o likely_a be_v the_o ephesian_a let_v that_o be_v suppose_v the_o question_n than_o be_v still_o when_o he_o ãâã_d and_o be_v excommunicate_v but_o the_o truth_n be_v we_o be_v in_o the_o dark_a both_o where_o and_o when_o he_o apostatise_v and_o by_o consequence_n know_v not_o when_o paul_n excommunicate_v he_o and_o therefore_o nothing_o can_v be_v draw_v hence_o in_o proof_n of_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n write_v the_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n mr._n o._n put_v the_o objection_n against_o himself_o how_o come_v timothy_n 131._o to_o leave_v ephesus_z and_o ãâã_d with_o paul_n in_o macedonia_n act._n 20._o 4._o see_v the_o apostle_n desire_v he_o to_o stay_v till_o he_o come_v 1_o tim._n 4._o 13._o his_o resolution_n of_o this_o difficulty_n be_v out_o of_o dr._n lightfoot_n as_o follow_v paul_n design_v to_o have_v sail_v for_o syria_n act_v 20._o 3._o come_v near_o to_o timothy_n and_o there_o discover_v the_o danger_n lay_v
old_a hypothesis_n as_o if_o episcopacy_n be_v not_o defensible_a on_o that_o supposition_n but_o rather_o to_o bring_v the_o controversy_n into_o as_o narrow_a a_o compass_n as_o may_v be_v i_o do_v therefore_o in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o three_o chapter_n in_o t._n n._n show_v that_o though_o paul_n have_v before_o the_o congress_n at_o miletus_n constitute_v timothy_n the_o ruler_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n yet_o be_v he_o not_o oblige_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o timothy_n in_o that_o his_o farewel-sermon_n because_o paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o galatian_n and_o that_o other_o to_o the_o ephesian_n and_o that_o first_o and_o second_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n take_v no_o notice_n of_o the_o elder_n neither_o do_v john_n peter_n or_o judas_n in_o their_o epistle_n nor_o last_o do_v ignatius_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n make_v mention_n of_o either_o bishop_n presbyter_n or_o deacon_n but_o shall_v we_o thence_o conclude_v that_o those_o church_n have_v none_o of_o those_o officer_n in_o they_o be_v it_o not_o as_o reasonable_a to_o believe_v that_o timothy_n the_o then_o suppose_a ruler_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n may_v be_v omit_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o his_o farewel-sermon_n as_o the_o presbyter_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n wherein_o he_o profess_o treat_v of_o church-government_n and_o one_o will_v think_v can_v not_o have_v forgot'em_n when_o he_o be_v discourse_v on_o such_o a_o argument_n particular_o let_v it_o be_v remember_v that_o ignatius_n himself_o who_o other_o epistle_n so_o often_o and_o so_o full_o remember_v bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n in_o that_o to_o the_o roman_n have_v not_o onesyllable_n of_o any_o of_o they_o and_o yet_o he_o know_v very_o well_o that_o bishop_n as_o well_o as_o presbyter_n be_v then_o establish_v throughout_o the_o world_n as_o he_o witness_n in_o that_o to_o the_o ephesian_n it_o be_v then_o no_o proof_n that_o timothy_n be_v not_o even_o at_o that_o time_n the_o establish_a ruler_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n because_o the_o apostle_n think_v not_o fit_a to_o mention_v he_o in_o his_o farewell_n sermon_n these_o thing_n mr._n o._n be_v please_v to_o pass_v by_o unanswered_a and_o why_o let_v any_o one_o judge_n i_o be_o sure_a they_o overthrow_v the_o best_a argument_n the_o dissenter_n have_v against_o bishop_n timothy_n now_o whether_o as_o mr._n o._n plead_v paul_n act_v 20._o commit_v 139._o the_o government_n of_o ephesus_n to_o the_o presbyter_n only_o not_o by_o a_o prudential_n or_o temporary_a constitution_n but_o divine_a by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n v_o 28._o enough_o have_v be_v say_v of_o this_o already_o nevertheless_o it_o may_v be_v proper_a to_o repeat_v a_o little_a for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o those_o who_o haply_o have_v not_o read_v the_o t._n n._n i_o do_v then_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o ephesian_a elder_n be_v make_v overseer_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v power_n to_o feed_v the_o flock_n commit_v to_o their_o charge_n but_o this_o be_v no_o argument_n against_o timothy_n bishopric_n there_o or_o his_o prelatical_a power_n over_o they_o for_o it_o be_v not_o inconsistent_a to_o say_v that_o timothy_n be_v appoint_v their_o ruler_n bishop_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o the_o presbyter_n be_v make_v overseer_n of_o the_o flock_n under_o timothy_n we_o presbyter_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v believe_v our_o ourself_n to_o be_v overseer_n of_o the_o flock_n and_o that_o by_o divine_a authority_n too_o and_o yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n we_o acknowledge_v our_o diocesan_n to_o preside_v over_o we_o by_o the_o same_o divine_a authority_n our_o bishop_n themselves_o declare_v as_o much_o in_o their_o atlmonition_n at_o the_o order_v of_o priest_n viz._n that_o we_o be_v messenger_n watchman_n and_o steward_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o teach_v premonish_v feed_v and_o provide_v for_o the_o lord_n family_n and_o to_o seek_v for_o christ_n sheep_n that_o be_v disperse_v abroad_o and_o at_o our_o ordination_n the_o first_o question_n be_v do_v you_o think_v in_o your_o heart_n that_o you_o be_v true_o call_v according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n what_o be_v all_o this_o less_o than_o that_o speak_v to_o the_o ephesian_a elder_n over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v you_o overseer_n to_o feed_v the_o church_n of_o god_n it_o follow_v not_o then_o from_o these_o word_n that_o st._n paul_n put_v into_o the_o presbyter_n hand_n the_o sole_a entire_a and_o supreme_a government_n of_o that_o church_n they_o may_v even_o then_o be_v and_o be_v leave_v subject_n unto_o bishop_n timothy_n for_o any_o thing_n that_o can_v be_v right_o infer_v from_o thence_o as_o we_o be_v to_o our_o diocesan_n bishop_n if_o our_o provincial_a archbishop_n shall_v at_o his_o metropolitical_a visitation_n at_o the_o same_o rate_n exhort_v as_o ordinary_a presbyter_n to_o take_v heed_n to_o ourselves_o and_o to_o the_o flock_n over_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v make_v we_o overseer_n to_o feed_v the_o church_n of_o god_n not_o mention_v our_o diocesan_n bishop_n at_o all_o shall_v it_o thence_o be_v conclude_v that_o dr._n stratford_n our_o reverend_a diocesan_n be_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o chester_n these_o thing_n i_o think_v ought_v not_o to_o have_v be_v shuffle_v off_o by_o mr._n o._n as_o unworthy_a but_o perhaps_o it_o may_v be_v say_v more_o true_o above_o his_o answer_v before_o i_o conlude_v this_o chapter_n there_o be_v two_o argument_n which_o the_o unreasonable_a opposition_n mr._n o._n have_v make_v unto_o my_o hypothesis_n have_v suggest_v to_o i_o prove_v i_o be_o bold_a to_o say_v demonstrate_v that_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v write_v in_o st._n paul_n second_o imprisonment_n at_o rome_n i_o will_v lay_v they_o as_o brief_o and_o as_o plain_o as_o i_o can_v before_o the_o reader_n and_o so_o make_v a_o end_n 1._o if_o the_o second_o ãâã_d to_o timothy_n be_v write_v in_o st._n paul_n first_o imprisonment_n as_o mr._n o._n affirm_v it_o must_v then_o have_v be_v write_v either_o before_o or_o at_o the_o same_o time_n or_o after_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o colossian_n and_o ãâã_d 1._o not_o before_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o colossian_n and_o philemon_n be_v write_v as_o mr._n owen_n himself_o acknowledge_v def._n page_n 133._o for_o paul_n at_o the_o write_n of_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n have_v send_v tychicus_n to_o ephesus_n chap._n 4._o 12_o how_o then_o can_v tychicus_n be_v the_o bearer_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o colossian_n if_o he_o be_v already_o go_v to_o ephesus_n before_o the_o write_n of_o that_o epistle_n to_o the_o colossian_n the_o second_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n therefore_o can_v not_o be_v write_v before_o that_o unto_o the_o colossian_n 2._o not_o at_o the_o same_o time_n as_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o colossian_n and_o philemon_n be_v write_v for_o timothy_n who_o in_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o ãâã_d be_v send_v for_o by_o paul_n to_o rome_n chap._n 4._o 9_o be_v even_o then_o with_o paul_n at_o rome_n and_o join_v with_o he_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o colossian_n and_o philemon_n chap._n 1._o 1._o therefore_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n can_v not_o ãâã_d write_v at_o the_o same_o time_n as_o that_o to_o the_o colossian_n be_v 3._o not_o after_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o colossian_n be_v write_v for_o then_o timothy_n who_o join_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ãâã_d must_v have_v be_v go_v back_o into_o asia_n before_o st_n paul_n which_o it_o be_v certain_a he_o do_v not_o heb._n 13._o 23._o or_o else_o he_o must_v have_v return_v again_o to_o paul_n at_o rome_n and_o once_o more_o go_v back_o into_o asia_n with_o he_o in_o like_a manner_n ãâã_d who_o carry_v the_o epistle_n to_o the_o colossian_n from_o paul_n and_o timothy_n must_v have_v return_v unto_o the_o apostle_n at_o rome_n and_o thence_o be_v send_v back_o unto_o ephesus_n 2_o tim._n 4._o 12._o and_o all_o this_o during_o the_o apostle_n first_o imprisonment_n which_o be_v not_o in_o the_o least_o probable_a it_o be_v such_o a_o wild-goose-chase_n as_o no_o rational_a man_n can_v admit_v therefore_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n be_v not_o write_v after_o that_o to_o the_o colossian_n if_o then_o it_o be_v write_v neither_o before_o nor_o at_o the_o same_o time_n nor_o after_o those_o to_o the_o colossian_n and_o philemon_n it_o be_v not_o write_v at_o all_o during_o the_o apostle_n first_o imprisonment_n therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o have_v be_v write_v in_o his_o second_o 2._o the_o other_o argument_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o story_n of_o demas_n as_o it_o be_v relate_v in_o the_o second_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o colossian_n and_o that_o other_o to_o philemon_n i_o shall_v
unto_o some_o certain_a place_n to_o preach_v the_o word_n but_o philip_n have_v no_o extraordinary_a call_n unto_o the_o office_n of_o a_o evangelist_n that_o i_o can_v meet_v with_o though_o he_o have_v extraordinary_a gift_n in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n for_o any_o thing_n i_o read_v philip_n be_v yet_o but_o a_o deacon_n it_o be_v then_o reasonable_a to_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v afterward_o appoint_v the_o resident_n ãâã_d of_o caesarea_n mr._n o._n observe_v very_o true_o and_o i_o free_o acknowledge_v 144._o that_o i_o have_v no_o testimony_n at_o hand_n out_o of_o the_o father_n prove_v philip_n to_o have_v be_v the_o fix_a evangelist_n of_o caesarea_n but_o whereas_o the_o minister_n pretend_v that_o this_o philip_n die_v at_o hierapolis_n and_o by_o consequence_n be_v not_o the_o fix_a evangelist_n of_o caesarea_n cite_v for_o this_o eusebius_n e._n h._n l._n 3._o i_o be_o force_v again_o to_o expose_v his_o unfaithful_a represent_v author_n make_v they_o write_v what_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o they_o the_o historian_n in_o l._n 3._o c._n 31._o first_o speak_v of_o philip_n the_o apostle_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 39_o one_o of_o the_o twelve_o who_o die_v at_o hierapolis_n but_o he_o affirm_v it_o not_o of_o philip_n the_o deacon_n or_o evangelist_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n ãâã_d philippus_n apostolus_fw-la script_n in_o phrygia_n praedicat_fw-la evangelium_fw-la domini_fw-la jesus_n sepelitur_fw-la hierapoli_n cum_fw-la ãâã_d bonorifice_n it_o be_v true_a euseb._n at_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o that_o chapter_n speak_v also_o of_o philip_n the_o evangelist_n and_o his_o daughter_n say_v he_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d who_o live_v with_o their_o father_n philip_n in_o caesarea_n but_o not_o a_o syllable_n of_o hierapolis_n nay_o here_o be_v a_o tolerable_a proof_n that_o eusebius_n think_v philip_n live_v and_o reside_v in_o ãâã_d here_o than_o we_o have_v another_o instance_n of_o mr._n oh_o false_a deal_n with_o author_n mr._n o._n still_o contend_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v not_o resident_a bishop_n evangelist_n the_o apostle_n call_v they_o both_o 144._o away_o tit._n 3._o 12._o to_o the_o apostle_n titus_n come_v at_o nicopolis_n and_o after_o be_v send_v by_o paul_n to_o ãâã_d 2_o tim_n 4._o 20._o and_o we_o hear_v no_o further_o of_o he_o it_o can_v be_v make_v appear_v that_o ever_o he_o return_v more_o to_o crete_n ans._n from_o scripture_n it_o can_v because_o the_o holy_a history_n script_n there_o end_v sc_n at_o titus_n go_v into_o dalmatia_n but_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n which_o mr._n o._n right_o appeal_v to_o in_o the_o like_a case_n tell_v we_o that_o titus_n die_v in_o crete_n what_o will_v any_o man_n expect_v more_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o eusebius_n assert_v the_o ãâã_d to_o have_v be_v resident_n or_o unfixt_v minister_n in_o l._n 3._o c._n 37_o 38_o 39_o mr._n o._n maintain_v this_o latter_a opinion_n ãâã_d testify_v that_o they_o 145._o preach_v christ_n to_o infidel_n ordain_v pastor_n and_o pass_v into_o other_o country_n and_o nation_n that_o they_o go_v far_o ãâã_d their_o own_o house_n do_v the_o work_n of_o evangelist_n and_o diligent_o preach_v christ_n to_o such_o as_o have_v not_o yet_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o faith_n deliver_v to_o they_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o holy_a gospel_n ordain_v other_o pastor_n and_o go_v into_o other_o country_n and_o nation_n ans._n true_a all_o this_o eusebius_n witness_v but_o it_o prove_v not_o mr._n oh_o point_n this_o many_o evangelist_n do_v for_o some_o time_n but_o be_v afterward_o fix_v in_o some_o certain_a place_n to_o govern_v particular_a church_n as_o appear_v from_o the_o example_n eusebius_n produce_v sc_n ãâã_d clemens_n romanus_n polycarp_n and_o papias_n all_o which_o he_o assure_v we_o be_v the_o constant_a reside_a bishop_n of_o particular_a church_n euseb._n l._n 3._o c._n 39_o though_o they_o have_v be_v sometime_o before_o unfixt_v evangelist_n attend_v the_o apostle_n uncertain_a order_n as_o the_o necessity_n of_o religion_n occasional_o require_v and_o this_o be_v what_o i_o insist_v on_o in_o t._n n._n that_o evangelist_n be_v both_o fix_v and_o unfixt_v according_a as_o the_o apostle_n order_v they_o that_o therefore_o fixedness_n or_o unfixedness_n be_v not_o a_o proper_a note_n nor_o distinguish_a character_n of_o a_o evangelist_n he_o may_v be_v one_o or_o the_o other_o or_o both_o at_o different_a time_n as_o be_v manifest_a from_o eusebius_n though_o i_o deliver_v myself_o in_o t._n n._n to_o this_o effect_n mr._n o._n take_v no_o notice_n of_o it_o but_o urge_v again_o the_o old_a argument_n avoid_v what_o i_o observe_v out_o of_o eusebius_n in_o proof_n that_o his_o unfixt_v evangelist_n become_v afterward_o the_o fix_a bishop_n of_o church_n it_o remain_v then_o that_o evangelist_n many_o of_o they_o be_v according_a to_o eusebius_n fix_v minister_n which_o be_v all_o i_o be_o concern_v for_o and_o by_o consequence_n so_o may_v timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v another_o controversy_n be_v move_v about_o st._n mark_n whether_o 146._o he_o be_v a_o evangelist_n be_v the_o settle_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n ans._n i_o do_v ready_o grant_v that_o mark_n be_v a_o great_a while_n a_o unsettled_a minister_n wait_v on_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o by_o he_o dispatch_v up_o and_o down_o upon_o the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n though_o afterward_o he_o go_v or_o be_v send_v unto_o alexandria_n where_o he_o plant_v a_o church_n and_o govern_v it_o 24._o after_o who_o annianus_n undertake_v the_o administration_n and_o be_v by_o eusebius_n call_v the_o first_o bishop_n thereof_o which_o imply_v that_o 14._o mark_n be_v the_o evangelist_n of_o it_o the_o administrator_n of_o that_o church_n have_v not_o as_o yet_o perhaps_o receive_v the_o title_n of_o bishop_n as_o particular_o belong_v to_o he_o but_o mr._n o._n shake_v i_o off_o by_o object_v i_o may_v as_o well_o make_v peter_n a_o resident_n apostle_n because_o eusebius_n say_v that_o linus_n succeed_v he_o in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ans._n suppose_v peter_n be_v there_o so_o long_o as_o it_o be_v report_v of_o he_o i_o must_v profess_v i_o think_v he_o be_v the_o resident_n apostle_n of_o rome_n for_o there_o be_v man_n of_o learning_n and_o observation_n who_o will_v tell_v mr._n o._n that_o peter_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o apostle_n be_v wont_a to_o have_v the_o special_a care_n and_o oversight_n over_o some_o particular_a church_n or_o church_n beside_o their_o general_a power_n which_o extend_v unto_o all_o place_n of_o peter_n jerom_n testify_v ibique_fw-la romae_fw-la viginti_fw-la quinque_fw-la annos_fw-la cathedram_fw-la sacerdotalem_fw-la tenuit_fw-la petrus_n and_o i_o hope_v this_o father_n be_v of_o some_o credit_n and_o in_o esteem_n with_o the_o minister_n they_o will_v tell_v he_o that_o the_o remove_n from_o place_n to_o place_n and_o from_o one_o city_n or_o country_n to_o another_o be_v not_o of_o the_o essence_n of_o a_o apostle_n that_o they_o may_v if_o they_o think_v fit_a remove_v or_o else_o continue_v and_o fix_v that_o if_o a_o apostle_n upon_o some_o emergent_a occasion_n ãâã_d to_o another_o place_n this_o prove_v not_o that_o he_o be_v not_o before_o his_o removal_n the_o settle_a minister_n of_o the_o former_a church_n no_o more_o than_o when_o a_o non-con_a minister_n leave_v his_o former_a congregation_n and_o run_v into_o a_o remote_a country_n adhere_v to_o a_o new_a one_o will_n mr._n o._n in_o this_o case_n deny_v that_o he_o be_v ever_o the_o settle_a minister_n of_o the_o former_a they_o will_v tell_v he_o that_o a_o apostle_n when_o he_o remove_v do_v still_o hold_v even_o in_o his_o absence_n the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o leave_v until_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o fix_v his_o successor_n or_o be_v by_o death_n prevent_v take_v any_o further_a care_n of_o it_o there_o want_v not_o example_n of_o this_o kind_n thus_o it_o be_v believe_v euodius_n succeed_v peter_n at_o antioch_n in_o the_o apostle_n life_n time_n and_o linus_n at_o rome_n after_o his_o death_n and_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n it_o be_v probable_a that_o annianus_n succeed_v mark_n though_o not_o with_o the_o same_o title_n and_o character_n but_o mr._n o._n have_v st._n chrysostom_n on_o his_o side_n 148._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d etc._n etc._n who_o go_v not_o about_o every_o where_o but_o only_o preach_v the_o gospel_n as_o priscilla_n and_o aquila_n etc._n etc._n he_o grant_v that_o the_o evangelist_n do_v not_o go_v about_o preach_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d every_o where_o as_o the_o apostle_n do_v but_o yet_o they_o travel_v up_o and_o down_o into_o divers_a place_n as_o the_o apostle_n appoint_v they_o distinguish_v forsooth_o between_o every_o where_o which_o belong_v to_o apostle_n and_o divers_a place_n which_o
be_v proper_a to_o evangelist_n ans._n i_o do_v find_v that_o chrysostom_n speak_v one_o word_n here_o of_o evangelist_n as_o if_o they_o travel_v into_o divers_a place_n though_o not_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d every_o where_o as_o mr._n o._n gloss_n upon_o the_o passage_n the_o instance_n of_o priscilla_n and_o aquila_n will_v not_o evince_v this_o for_o though_o we_o read_v of_o some_o removal_n of_o these_o two_o person_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o in_o order_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n but_o on_o some_o other_o account_n their_o first_o movement_n be_v from_o rome_n to_o corinth_n ãâã_d be_v by_o the_o emperor_n edict_n banish_v thence_o this_o than_o be_v not_o move_v up_o and_o down_o into_o divers_a place_n by_o the_o apostle_n direction_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n but_o in_o obedience_n to_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n and_o for_o their_o own_o security_n the_o other_o motion_n be_v in_o company_n with_o paul_n from_o corinth_n to_o ephesus_n where_o paul_n proceed_v in_o his_o journey_n towards_o jerusalem_n leave_v aquila_n and_o priscilla_n act._n 18._o 19_o 21._o whereas_o then_o mr._n o._n say_v that_o aquila_n and_o priscilla_n remove_v from_o corinth_n to_o ephesus_n doubtless_o by_o paul_n '_o s_o appointment_n as_o other_o evangelist_n do_v i_o see_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o the_o text._n i_o rather_o think_v it_o be_v because_o they_o be_v all_o of_o the_o same_o craft_n or_o trade_n tent-makers_n v_o 3._o and_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v anon_o not_o such_o evangelist_n as_o mr._n o._n and_o i_o be_o now_o dispute_v about_o mr._n o._n the_o apostle_n go_v up_o and_o down_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d every_o where_o whither_o the_o spirit_n guide_v they_o and_o at_o their_o own_o pleasure_n but_o evangelist_n not_o every_o where_o at_o their_o own_o pleasure_n but_o up_o and_o down_o as_o the_o apostle_n appoint_v and_o this_o forsooth_o must_v be_v chrysostom_n mean_v that_o evangelist_n do_v not_o go_v up_o and_o down_o every_o where_o as_o they_o please_v but_o that_o it_o be_v imply_v they_o travel_v whithersoever_o the_o apostle_n be_v please_v to_o direct_v they_o ans._n there_o be_v no_o substance_n at_o all_o in_o this_o slight_a gloss._n for_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o strict_o speak_v do_v not_o go_v up_o and_o down_o at_o their_o own_o pleasure_n every_o where_o but_o be_v under_o as_o great_a restraint_n and_o determination_n as_o the_o evangelist_n be_v as_o the_o evangelist_n be_v under_o the_o conduct_n and_o command_v of_o the_o apostle_n so_o be_v the_o apostle_n under_o the_o conduct_n and_o determination_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o mr._n o._n confess_v the_o apostle_n than_o travel_v not_o up_o and_o down_o at_o their_o own_o pleasure_n no_o more_o than_o the_o evangelist_n do_v and_o the_o evangelist_n go_v up_o and_o down_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o into_o as_o many_o city_n and_o nation_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v and_o perhaps_o more_o but_o to_o pass_v over_o abundance_n of_o trivial_a observation_n make_v by_o the_o minister_n i_o will_v here_o endeavour_v to_o explain_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o dark_a passage_n of_o st._n chrysostom_n which_o i_o suspect_v mr._n o._n either_o do_v not_o or_o will_v not_o understand_v or_o have_v not_o due_o consider_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o which_o word_n his_o meaning_n be_v as_o i_o conceive_v that_o there_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o evangelist_n who_o go_v not_o up_o and_o down_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n public_o but_o only_o teach_v and_o instruct_v some_o people_n that_o come_v to_o they_o private_o at_o home_n and_o such_o be_v priscilla_n and_o aquila_n so_o we_o read_v of_o they_o act_v 18._o 26._o aquila_n and_o priscilla_n take_v apollo_n unto_o they_o and_o expound_v unto_o he_o the_o way_n of_o god_n more_o perfect_o unto_o this_o passage_n i_o be_o apt_a to_o believe_v chrysostom_n allude_v for_o that_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d import_v their_o not_o go_v up_o and_o down_o to_o preach_v public_o will_v be_v easy_o grant_v i_o i_o hope_v and_o that_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d signify_v private_a instruct_n may_v be_v infer_v from_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o which_o sense_n it_o be_v take_v mat._n 18._o 15._o tell_v he_o his_o fault_n between_o he_o and_o thou_o alone_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d chapter_n 14._o 23._o when_o he_o have_v send_v the_o multitude_n away_o he_o go_v up_o into_o the_o mountain_n apart_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d private_o to_o pray_v and_o when_o the_o evening_n be_v come_v he_o be_v there_o alone_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d or_o private_a by_o himself_o see_v luke_n 9_o 18._o he_o be_v pray_v alone_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d thus_o aquila_n and_o priscilla_n instruct_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d private_o and_o alone_o not_o in_o public_a assembly_n or_o in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o church_n not_o every_o where_o but_o in_o private_a and_o at_o home_n if_o this_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o st._n chrysostom_n the_o place_n nothing_o belong_v to_o the_o controversy_n between_o mr._n o._n and_o i_o st._n chrysostom_n go_v on_o and_o have_v in_o the_o four_o and_o last_o place_v name_v pastor_n and_o teacher_n he_o put_v the_o question_n to_o himself_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v pastor_n and_o teacher_n less_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d yes_o he_o answer_v they_o be_v less_o than_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d less_o than_o those_o who_o travel_n abroad_o and_o preach_v public_o as_o be_v invest_v with_o the_o evangelical_n office_n but_o not_o less_o than_o aquila_n and_o priscilla_n who_o be_v only_o private_a evangelist_n thus_o far_o st._n chrysostom_n have_v inform_v we_o of_o two_o sort_n of_o evangelist_n 1._o the_o private_a who_o go_v not_o up_o and_o down_o to_o propagate_v the_o gospel_n in_o public_a but_o at_o home_o only_o and_o private_o 2._o such_o as_o do_v travel_v up_o and_o down_o and_o be_v public_a evangelist_n here_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o full_a point_n then_o he_o proceed_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o meaning_n whereof_o be_v more_o full_o there_o be_v evangelist_n who_o reside_v and_o continue_v in_o one_o place_n as_o timothy_n and_o titus_n he_o have_v speak_v before_o of_o private_a evangelist_n viz._n such_o as_o aquila_n and_o priscilla_n and_o of_o public_a evangelist_n who_o travel_v abroad_o and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o now_o three_o he_o mention_n another_o sort_n of_o evangelist_n who_o be_v fix_v and_o reside_v in_o a_o certain_a place_n as_o timothy_n and_o titus_n which_o how_o far_o it_o favour_n mr._n oh_o opinion_n i_o leave_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o reader_n if_o any_o one_o else_o offer_v i_o a_o better_a explication_n of_o this_o obscure_a passage_n in_o chrysostom_n i_o shall_v thankful_o embrace_v it_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o believe_v it_o make_v nothing_o for_o my_o adversary_n nor_o do_v it_o in_o the_o least_o distress_n i_o yea_o it_o agree_v with_o my_o notion_n and_o eusebius_n as_o i_o have_v expound_v he_o and_o i_o presume_v agreeable_o to_o his_o meaning_n st._n chrysostom_n last_o mention_n a_o four_o sort_n of_o evangelist_n sc_n who_o write_v the_o gospel_n but_o they_o come_v not_o under_o the_o present_a subject_n last_o mr._n o._n plead_v that_o chrysostom_n do_v not_o ãâã_d 149._o timothy_n and_o titus_n among_o evangelist_n but_o among_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n ans._n how_o then_o be_v chrysostom_n of_o mr._n oh_o side_n as_o he_o boast_v before_o how_o will_v he_o thence_o prove_v that_o evangelist_n travel_v up_o and_o down_o as_o timothy_n and_o titus_n do_v and_o what_o become_v of_o mr._n oh_o constant_a affirm_v they_o be_v evangelist_n and_o extraordinary_a officer_n but_o if_o my_o exposition_n hold_v good_a as_o i_o hope_v it_o will_v than_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v reckon_v among_o fix_a evangelist_n and_o not_o among_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n beside_o i_o be_o not_o concern_v among_o who_o chrysostom_n reckon_v they_o they_o be_v fix_v according_a to_o chrysostom_n and_o the_o sole_a and_o the_o supreme_a power_n be_v commit_v to_o they_o by_o paul_n as_o be_v plain_a in_o the_o epistle_n whatever_o then_o their_o title_n be_v they_o be_v the_o settle_a ruler_n of_o those_o church_n final_o mr._n o._n cite_v eusebius_n for_o say_v it_o be_v only_o report_v that_o timothy_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n but_o that_o there_o be_v no_o certainty_n who_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n for_o which_o he_o ãâã_d euseb._n h._n e._n l._n 3._o c._n 4._o ans._n if_o eusebius_n have_v write_v to_o this_o purpose_n the_o word_n however_o imply_v that_o some_o single_a person_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n though_o it_o be_v not_o know_v of_o a_o certainty_n
who_o they_o be_v nor_o what_o their_o name_n be_v but_o set_v aside_o this_o the_o principal_a thing_n here_o to_o be_v remark_v be_v that_o mr._n o._n according_a to_o his_o usual_a custom_n have_v misrepresent_v eusebius_n the_o historian_n word_n be_v as_o follow_v how_o many_o and_o who_o of_o the_o true_a follower_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v reckon_v sufficient_a to_o feed_v the_o church_n found_v by_o b._n they_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o say_v those_o only_o except_v which_o any_o one_o may_v gather_v out_o of_o paul_n '_o s_z epistle_n for_o this_o paul_n have_v innumerable_a fellow_n labourer_n and_o as_o he_o call_v they_o fellow-soldier_n very_o many_o of_o who_o be_v by_o he_o think_v worthy_a of_o immortal_a fame_n he_o have_v in_o his_o epistle_n give_v a_o everlasting_a testimony_n of_o they_o and_o luke_n also_o in_o the_o act_n reckon_v they_o by_o their_o name_n among_o these_o timothy_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v report_v to_o have_v receive_v the_o episcopacy_n of_o the_o ephesian_a diocese_n even_o as_o titus_n also_o of_o the_o church_n in_o crete_n but_o mr._n o._n crafty_o transpose_v the_o historian_n word_n he_o begin_v at_o the_o latter_a end_n it_o be_v say_v he_o only_o report_v that_o timothy_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n then_o he_o add_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o long_a period_n that_o there_o be_v no_o certainty_n who_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n etc._n etc._n as_o if_o it_o be_v but_o a_o report_n and_o not_o a_o certainty_n that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v bishop_n of_o their_o respective_a church_n whereas_o eusebius_n first_o say_v it_o be_v uncertain_a how_o many_o and_o who_o govern_v the_o church_n that_o vast_a number_n of_o ãâã_d plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n only_o he_o except_v those_o mention_v by_o name_n in_o the_o act_n and_o paul_n epistle_n who_o certain_o rule_v the_o church_n plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o among_o they_o say_v he_o it_o be_v report_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d where_o be_v this_o report_v why_o in_o st._n paul_n epistle_n it_o be_v witness_v that_o timothy_n receive_v the_o bishopric_n of_o ephesn_n and_o titus_n of_o crete_n and_o i_o hope_v the_o testimony_n draw_v from_o the_o historical_a part_n of_o the_o apostle_n epistle_n be_v not_o a_o uncertain_a report_n with_o the_o help_n of_o that_o common_a distinction_n between_o ordinary_a and_o extraordinary_a church-officer_n the_o dissenter_n ãâã_d off_o whatever_o be_v bring_v against_o they_o out_o of_o scripture_n they_o will_v tell_v you_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o evangelist_n be_v extraordinary_a officer_n and_o can_v be_v draw_v into_o consequence_n nor_o make_v a_o precedent_n for_o bishop_n these_o be_v but_o ordinary_a church-officer_n mr._n o._n i_o do_v believe_v serve_v himself_o of_o this_o subterfuge_n near_o a_o hundred_o time_n in_o this_o defence_n of_o he_o and_o the_o plea_n my_o design_n then_o here_o be_v to_o examine_v this_o distinction_n that_o this_o short_a chapter_n may_v rise_v to_o some_o degree_n of_o proportion_n with_o the_o rest_n the_o question_n than_o be_v what_o be_v a_o extraordinary-officer_n and_o my_o answer_n be_v it_o be_v of_o two_o kind_n 1._o a_o extraordinary_a officer_n proper_o speak_v be_v one_o who_o very_a office_n be_v extraordinary_a and_o temporary_a such_o be_v the_o dictator_n among_o the_o roman_n so_o long_o as_o that_o people_n preserve_v their_o liberty_n these_o dictator_n be_v create_v upon_o some_o occasion_n of_o extreme_a danger_n threaten_v the_o commonwealth_n which_o be_v over_o there_o be_v a_o end_n of_o the_o officer_n and_o office_n both_o the_o dictator_n return_v back_o to_o the_o plough_n and_o the_o consul_n again_o reassume_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o public_a affair_n of_o this_o kind_n be_v the_o high-steward_n in_o england_n who_o be_v constitute_v the_o chief_a manager_n at_o the_o coronation_n of_o the_o king_n or_o trial_n of_o a_o peer_n but_o so_o soon_o as_o these_o solemnity_n be_v over_o there_o be_v a_o end_n of_o the_o high-steward_n he_o break_v his_o staff_n the_o ensign_n of_o his_o honour_n and_o office_n and_o become_v a_o private_a man_n as_o he_o be_v before_o such_o i_o reckon_v prophet_n in_o the_o church_n to_o have_v be_v god_n raise_v they_o up_o by_o a_o extraordinary_a commission_n for_o the_o necessary_a service_n of_o religion_n but_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o a_o prophet_n shall_v have_v a_o successor_n or_o that_o the_o office_n of_o a_o prophet_n shall_v be_v continue_v for_o in_o the_o jewish_a church_n prophet_n cease_v as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o christian_a which_o every_o one_o know_v and_o acknowledge_v 2._o a_o extraordinary_a officer_n be_v one_o who_o office_n general_o speak_v at_o least_o several_a part_n of_o his_o office_n be_v ordinary_a necessary_a and_o of_o perpetual_a use_n but_o who_o be_v endue_v with_o many_o singular_a personal_n and_o extraordinary_a qualification_n and_o advantage_n for_o the_o discharge_v of_o his_o office_n such_o be_v aaron_n the_o highpriest_n of_o the_o jew_n such_o be_v the_o seventy_o take_v in_o by_o moses_n to_o bear_v with_o he_o part_v of_o the_o burden_n of_o the_o government_n such_o be_v the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n the_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n many_o of_o they_o in_o the_o apostle_n day_n as_o i_o make_v account_n and_o be_o now_o about_o to_o explain_v the_o ordinary_a necessary_a and_o permanent_a part_n of_o the_o apostolical_a and_o evangelistical_a office_n be_v preach_v the_o word_n administer_a the_o sacrament_n ordain_v elder_n and_o manage_v the_o government_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n with_o respect_n hereunto_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n be_v ordinary_a church_n officer_n though_o have_v receive_v from_o god_n many_o extraordinary_a personal_a gift_n enable_v they_o to_o discharge_v their_o office_n more_o effectual_o on_o which_o account_n they_o may_v be_v call_v extraordinary_a officer_n also_o for_o so_o we_o be_v wont_n to_o call_v even_o person_n of_o very_a eminent_a natural_a part_n and_o mighty_a improvement_n in_o knowledge_n extraordinary_a man_n much_o more_o than_o those_o who_o receive_v their_o divine_a ability_n immediate_o from_o god_n but_o still_o for_o all_o that_o their_o office_n be_v but_o ordinary_a and_o it_o be_v necessary_a and_o god_n appoint_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o succession_n unto_o the_o ordinary_a apostolical_a and_o evangelistical_a office_n though_o he_o do_v not_o continue_v the_o extraordinary_a gift_n so_o it_o appear_v from_o those_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o lo_o i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n matt._n 28._o 20._o this_o promise_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v think_v to_o belong_v to_o the_o apostle_n personal_o for_o they_o be_v mortal_a how_o then_o can_v jesus_n christ_n be_v with_o they_o always_o and_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n nor_o be_v the_o promise_n to_o be_v understand_v of_o extraordinary_a gift_n and_o assistance_n such_o as_o be_v give_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n for_o we_o know_v that_o those_o cease_v in_o the_o church_n in_o a_o age_n or_o two_o it_o remain_v therefore_o that_o in_o the_o forementioned_a passage_n christ_n promise_v to_o be_v with_o his_o church_n always_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n in_o the_o ordinary_a work_n of_o the_o ministry_n preach_v the_o word_n discipling_a nation_n administer_a the_o sacrament_n exercise_v discipline_n and_o govern_v the_o church_n and_o from_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o in_o who_o hand_n be_v lodge_v the_o power_n of_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n of_o ordain_v and_o govern_v the_o church_n at_o this_o day_n be_v successor_n unto_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n and_o invest_v with_o the_o same_o power_n that_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n be_v though_o not_o with_o such_o extraordinary_a gift_n and_o by_o consequence_n be_v the_o same_o species_n of_o church-officer_n ex_fw-la gr_n be_v not_o caiaphas_n as_o true_o the_o highpriest_n as_o aaron_n and_o the_o sanhedrim_n in_o the_o apostle_n day_n the_o same_o that_o it_o be_v in_o moses_n only_o except_v the_o eminent_a gift_n which_o be_v bestow_v on_o the_o one_o and_o not_o on_o the_o other_o i_o conclude_v then_o that_o the_o apostolical_a and_o evangelistical_a office_n be_v if_o we_o will_v speak_v exact_o ordinary_a though_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n ability_n be_v extraordinary_a and_o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n have_v and_o to_o this_o day_n have_v and_o will_v and_o aught_o to_o have_v unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n successor_n in_o all_o the_o ordinary_a part_n of_o their_o office_n but_o it_o will_v be_v object_v if_o the_o apostolical_a or_o evangelistical_a 1._o office_n be_v succeed_v to_o why_o be_v the_o name_n of_o the_o office_n alter_v the_o discontinuance_n
of_o the_o title_n seem_v to_o argue_v the_o discontinuance_n of_o the_o office_n ans._n 1._o it_o be_v hold_v not_o without_o reason_n that_o the_o name_n apostle_n descend_v at_o least_o upon_o their_o next_o and_o immediate_a successor_n which_o some_o call_v secondary_a apostle_n the_o inseriour_a minister_n be_v indifferent_o call_v bishop_n or_o presbyter_n but_o in_o a_o little_a time_n the_o apostle_n successor_n lay_v aside_o that_o title_n of_o apostle_n out_o of_o modesty_n content_v themselves_o with_o that_o of_o bishop_n and_o the_o inferior_a minister_n with_o that_o of_o presbyter_n to_o this_o purpose_n theodoret_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 92._o there_o be_v evidence_n sufficient_a in_o the_o scripture_n of_o these_o secondary_a apostle_n such_o perhaps_o be_v james_n the_o just_a and_o ãâã_d the_o apostle_n of_o the_o philippian_n titus_n and_o other_o be_v call_v apostle_n 2_o cor._n 8._o 23._o therefore_o it_o may_v be_v further_o observe_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n ãâã_d they_o indifferent_o both_o apostle_n and_o bishop_n ãâã_d as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o jerom_n ãâã_d and_o salvian_n as_o mr._n b._n inform_v i_o it_o may_v not_o here_o be_v pass_v over_o that_o in_o after_o age_n the_o learned_a writer_n often_o call_v the_o apostle_n themselves_o by_o the_o name_n of_o bishop_n ephes._n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o in_o cyprian_n and_o hilary_n and_o in_o eusebius_n peter_n be_v reckon_v 6._o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o conformity_n to_o the_o language_n of_o their_o aug._n own_o time_n when_o bishop_n signify_v the_o supreme_a officer_n of_o a_o church_n this_o observation_n show_v clear_o that_o the_o apostolical_a and_o the_o episcopal_a office_n be_v the_o same_o in_o reality_n but_o i_o answer_v 11._o 2._o that_o the_o change_n of_o the_o title_n of_o the_o office_n can_v import_v the_o cease_n of_o the_o office_n caesar_n be_v emperor_n by_o the_o title_n of_o perpetual_a dictator_n augustus_n his_o successor_n by_o that_o of_o caesar_n and_o the_o follow_a emperor_n by_o those_o of_o caesar_n and_o augustus_n though_o caesar_n at_o length_n be_v appropriate_v to_o one_o 1._o as_o yet_o only_o design_v and_o name_v the_o emperor_n successor_n whatever_o be_v their_o title_n they_o be_v all_o emperor_n but_o to_o come_v near_a home_n and_o to_o instance_n in_o a_o matter_n more_o direct_o to_o our_o purpose_n at_o the_o reformation_n in_o scoltand_n the_o prelatical_a ruler_n of_o the_o church_n be_v style_v superintendent_o yet_o the_o office_n of_o bishop_n be_v not_o therefore_o change_v because_o the_o title_n be_v the_o superintendent_o have_v the_o same_o power_n to_o inspect_v the_o church_n in_o their_o own_o district_n as_o the_o bishop_n have_v to_o conclude_v the_o change_n of_o the_o name_n apostle_n into_o bishop_n be_v no_o prejudice_n against_o the_o episcopal_a power_n be_v the_o same_o as_o the_o apostolical_a be_v and_o succeed_v into_o its_o place_n it_o will_v again_o be_v object_v that_o since_o ordinary_a presbyter_n be_v 2._o confess_v on_o all_o hand_n to_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n why_o not_o then_o in_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o apostolical_a office_n sc_n the_o ordain_v and_o govern_v power_n ans._n the_o solution_n of_o this_o difficulty_n such_o as_o it_o be_v depend_v upon_o matter_n of_o fact_n sc_n how_o god_n be_v please_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o determine_v this_o point_n this_o be_v not_o the_o place_n to_o dispute_v the_o question_n whether_o the_o apostle_n convey_v their_o whole_a power_n and_o office_n unto_o every_o or_o to_o all_o presbyter_n it_o have_v i_o be_o in_o hope_n be_v clear_v in_o the_o negative_a both_o in_o these_o and_o my_o former_a paper_n but_o to_o the_o objection_n i_o reply_v that_o when_o a_o office_n be_v attend_v with_o variety_n of_o work_n it_o do_v not_o follow_v of_o necessity_n that_o he_o who_o succeed_v in_o one_o part_n of_o the_o office_n must_v be_v reckon_v to_o succeed_v in_o all_o it_o can_v be_v doubt_v but_o the_o apostle_n have_v it_o in_o their_o power_n to_o divide_v and_o put_v the_o several_a part_n of_o their_o office_n into_o several_a hand_n and_o we_o have_v a_o instance_n that_o they_o do_v so_o they_o make_v seven_o deacon_n unto_o who_o they_o commit_v the_o care_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o distribution_n of_o the_o public_a alm_n which_o be_v before_o in_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o but_o then_o no_o one_o will_v say_v that_o because_o the_o apostle_n confer_v upon_o these_o seven_o one_o part_n of_o their_o office_n that_o therefore_o they_o must_v be_v understand_v to_o have_v commit_v to_o they_o all_o the_o rest_n sc_n the_o power_n of_o ordination_n of_o government_n and_o of_o discipline_n by_o parity_n of_o reason_n though_o presbyter_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n and_o be_v by_o they_o ordain_v unto_o that_o part_n of_o the_o apostolical_a office_n viz._n minister_a in_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o they_o also_o receive_v the_o whole_a apostolical_a power_n that_o of_o ordination_n government_n and_o discipline_n it_o be_v further_o object_v that_o the_o apostolical_a power_n extend_v it_o 3._o self_n every_o where_o the_o evangelistical_a reach_v to_o divers_a place_n and_o country_n but_o it_o can_v be_v pretend_v that_o the_o episcopal_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v so_o large_a and_o as_o it_o be_v unlimited_a it_o be_v rather_o confine_v unto_o a_o certain_a compass_n or_o district_n as_o we_o plain_o see_v for_o which_o reason_n the_o bishop_n be_v not_o the_o apostle_n nor_o the_o evangelist_n successor_n ans._n it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o get_v over_o this_o small_a rub._n this_o unlimited_a power_n of_o the_o apostle_n may_v be_v reckon_v among_o their_o extraordinary_a and_o personal_a privilege_n and_o so_o do_v we_o no_o prejudice_n the_o office_n may_v be_v the_o same_o though_o the_o extent_n of_o power_n may_v be_v more_o in_o one_o than_o in_o another_o the_o bishop_n of_o eugubium_n be_v as_o true_o a_o bishop_n as_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o ptolemy_n be_v as_o real_o and_o to_o all_o intent_n and_o purpose_n king_n of_o egypt_n as_o alexander_n have_v be_v of_o that_o and_o many_o other_o vast_a kingdom_n and_o province_n and_o as_o he_o be_v real_o a_o king_n so_o he_o be_v real_o alexander_n successor_n also_o for_o who_o will_v say_v that_o william_n ãâã_d be_v not_o will._n the_o conqueror_n successor_n because_o he_o succeed_v he_o not_o in_o the_o dukedom_n of_o normandy_n as_o well_o as_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n we_o see_v by_o these_o example_n that_o one_o may_v have_v several_a successor_n into_o several_a part_n of_o their_o jurisdiction_n how_o large_a soever_o the_o diocese_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o evangelist_n be_v yet_o the_o bishop_n may_v be_v their_o successor_n unto_o some_o part_n of_o their_o jurisdiction_n among_o the_o roman_n they_o who_o inherit_v any_o part_n of_o the_o decedent_n estate_n be_v they_o few_o or_o be_v they_o many_o be_v all_o call_v haeredes_fw-la and_o distinguish_v according_a to_o the_o proportion_n allot_v they_o hence_o we_o read_v of_o haeredes_fw-la ex_fw-la deunce_n ex_fw-la quadrante_fw-la ex_fw-la semuncia_fw-la ex_fw-la semisse_fw-la as_o well_o as_o haeres_fw-la ex_fw-la ass_n who_o inherit_v all_o but_o what_o if_o after_o all_o this_o every_o bishop_n power_n extend_v itself_o through_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v not_o in_o its_o own_o nature_n limit_v and_o fix_v to_o any_o one_o single_a district_n some_o have_v think_v so_o and_o upon_o good_a ground_n too_o after_o many_o other_o reason_n and_o evidence_n of_o the_o universal_a power_n of_o bishop_n give_v by_o mr._n b._n p._n 56._o it_o seem_v to_o ãâã_d a_o strong_a argument_n for_o it_o that_o bishop_n in_o synod_n have_v ever_o exercise_v their_o power_n in_o other_o diocese_n as_o well_o as_o in_o their_o own_o i_o do_v not_o see_v by_o what_o authority_n bishop_n in_o council_n can_v take_v upon_o they_o to_o correct_v the_o miscarriage_n of_o particular_a bishop_n within_o their_o own_o diocese_n to_o remove_v the_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a to_o restore_v the_o unjust_o deprive_v to_o confirm_v the_o custom_n and_o polity_n of_o single_a church_n except_o on_o this_o one_o principle_n that_o every_o bishop_n be_v a_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a and_o have_v a_o inherent_a power_n over_o all_o the_o world_n and_o every_o where_o it_o be_v true_a it_o must_v at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v ãâã_d that_o for_o peace_n and_o order_n sake_n and_o to_o the_o end_n the_o church_n may_v be_v certain_o take_v care_n of_o bishop_n be_v limit_v to_o some_o particular_a diocese_n as_o to_o the_o constant_a and_o ordinary_a administration_n of_o church_n affair_n and_o one_o bishop_n be_v not_o suffer_v to_o interlope_v in_o another_o district_n
without_o necessity_n nevertheless_o on_o extraordinary_a occasion_n such_o as_o apostasy_n heresy_n and_o schism_n the_o other_o bishop_n make_v use_v of_o their_o general_a power_n to_o rectify_v disorder_n even_o in_o those_o church_n where_o ordinary_o they_o have_v no_o jurisdiction_n every_o bishop_n than_o be_v a_o bishop_n every_o where_o beside_o the_o constant_a care_n of_o some_o particular_a church_n commit_v unto_o he_o but_o it_o will_v last_o be_v object_v that_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n 4._o be_v not_o ãâã_d but_o itinerant_a officer_n shift_v from_o place_n to_o place_n as_o the_o exigence_n of_o the_o church_n and_o interest_n of_o the_o gospel_n require_v this_o the_o bishop_n do_v not_o pretend_v to_o neither_o can_v ans._n 1._o some_o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v fix_v or_o at_o least_o fix_v themselves_o thus_o james_n the_o apostle_n or_o at_o least_o a_o apostle_n be_v the_o constant_a reside_a perfect_a or_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n so_o be_v simeon_n after_o he_o so_o be_v peter_n at_o rome_n for_o 25_o year_n according_a to_o jerom._n so_o be_v john_n in_o asia_n for_o a_o long_a time_n so_o be_v timothy_n at_o ephesus_n and_o titus_n in_o crete_n but_o 2._o bishop_n be_v no_o otherwise_o fix_v than_o be_v the_o apostle_n i_o have_v show_v before_o that_o upon_o necessary_a occasion_n they_o interpose_v any_o where_o beside_o a_o bishop_n may_v in_o unconvert_v nation_n pass_v from_o one_o city_n and_o country_n to_o another_o and_o plant_v church_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v thus_o frumentius_n 19_o play_v the_o apostle_n in_o india_n be_v ordain_v bishop_n at_o 23._o alexandria_n in_o egypt_n by_o athanasius_n so_o do_v aidan_n in_o northumberland_n among_o the_o angles_n and_o mercian_n 6._o 3._o it_o be_v so_o difficult_a a_o matter_n to_o define_v exact_o what_o residence_n be_v and_o when_o a_o man_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v fix_v how_o oft_o how_o long_o and_o on_o what_o occasion_n he_o may_v be_v allow_v to_o be_v absent_a and_o yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v the_o settle_a minister_n of_o a_o church_n that_o i_o think_v no_o man_n alive_a can_v with_o any_o tolerable_a certainty_n prononuce_v a_o person_n not_o to_o have_v be_v the_o resident_n ruler_n or_o bishop_n of_o a_o church_n because_o he_o find_v he_o employ_v in_o some_o other_o place_n upon_o some_o extraordinary_a service_n of_o the_o church_n i_o make_v no_o difficulty_n to_o affirm_v that_o when_o and_o as_o oft_o as_o any_o emergent_a necessity_n require_v it_o and_o his_o superior_a command_n he_o a_o fix_a resident_n officer_n may_v leave_v his_o flock_n for_o some_o time_n and_o attend_v the_o business_n which_o he_o be_v thus_o '_o special_o call_v to_o and_o yet_o still_o he_o be_v their_o fix_a and_o settle_a minister_n if_o paul_n call_v timothy_n to_o he_o at_o rome_n from_o ephesus_n and_o titus_n from_o crete_n it_o will_v not_o follow_v they_o be_v not_o the_o fix_a and_o resident_n ruler_n bishop_n of_o those_o church_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v before_o commit_v to_o they_o no_o more_o than_o that_o the_o british_a bishop_n who_o by_o order_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n be_v not_o the_o fix_a resident_n bishop_n of_o the_o british_a church_n or_o that_o the_o member_n of_o the_o assembly_n of_o divine_n be_v not_o the_o settle_a rector_n vicar_n or_o lecturer_n of_o their_o respective_a congregation_n though_o they_o be_v a_o good_a while_n absent_a from_o they_o and_o sit_v at_o westminster_n 4._o one_o may_v be_v the_o fix_a minister_n of_o a_o church_n and_o yet_o afterward_o remove_v to_o another_o place_n and_o settle_v there_o i_o suppose_v my_o neighbour_n mr._n b._n have_v be_v the_o fix_a minister_n of_o some_o congregation_n in_o the_o west_n of_o england_n before_o he_o settle_v here_o among_o we_o so_o that_o if_o for_o some_o important_a reason_n paul_n have_v quite_o remove_v timothy_n from_o ephesus_n and_o titus_n from_o crete_n appoint_v tichycus_n in_o the_o room_n of_o the_o former_a 2_o tim._n 4._o 12._o and_o artemas_n to_o succeed_v the_o latter_a tit._n 3._o 12._o this_o will_v not_o evince_v that_o timothy_n be_v never_o the_o fix_a ruler_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n or_o titus_n of_o crete_n to_o draw_v towards_o a_o conclusion_n all_o alterable_a circumstance_n such_o as_o extraordinary_a divine_a gift_n different_a title_n largeness_n or_o extent_n of_o power_n over_o all_o or_o very_o many_o city_n and_o country_n and_o unfixedness_n as_o to_o any_o one_o city_n or_o province_n or_o whatever_o else_o of_o this_o kind_n may_v be_v allege_v make_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o apostolical_a or_o evangelistical_a and_o the_o episcopal_a power_n it_o be_v the_o ordination_n which_o conferr_v the_o office_n and_o the_o power_n not_o the_o fixedness_n or_o unfixedness_n of_o the_o ordainer_n it_o be_v the_o power_n of_o ordination_n give_v unto_o apostle_n evangelist_n and_o bishop_n which_o enable_v they_o to_o ordain_v other_o not_o any_o alterable_a circumstance_n which_o be_v observe_v in_o any_o of_o '_o they_o in_o a_o word_n that_o ordinary_a officer_n may_v succeed_v extraordinary_a officer_n understand_v extraordinary_n in_o the_o second_o signification_n before_o lay_v down_o must_v needs_o be_v confess_v by_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o i_o mean_v the_o presbyterian_o they_o affirm_v and_o believe_v that_o they_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n in_o the_o office_n of_o minister_a in_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n of_o ordain_v govern_v and_o exercise_v the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n with_o what_o front_n then_o can_v any_o of_o they_o deny_v that_o ordinary_a officer_n and_o such_o at_o this_o day_n be_v they_o at_o the_o best_a may_v succeed_v extraordinary_a one_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o a_o ordinary_a office_n or_o with_o what_o colour_n can_v they_o pretend_v that_o fix_v officer_n such_o be_v they_o themselves_o now_o as_o they_o believe_v can_v succeed_v those_o who_o be_v unfixt_v that_o be_v the_o apostle_n so_o that_o these_o quirk_n of_o extraordinary_a and_o unsettled_a officer_n be_v devise_v mere_o to_o disguise_v the_o truth_n and_o gull_v the_o simple_a part_n of_o mankind_n into_o schism_n and_o error_n the_o appendix_n mr._n o._n think_v he_o press_v very_o hard_a upon_o i_o when_o upon_o 142._o my_o suppose_v evangelist_n to_o be_v a_o species_n of_o church-officer_n distinct_a from_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n in_o eph._n 4._o 11._o i_o must_v be_v force_v to_o deny_v the_o diocesan_n bishop_n to_o be_v the_o pastor_n of_o their_o ãâã_d church_n contrary_a to_o the_o prayer_n in_o the_o ember-week_n ans._n the_o good_a man_n have_v i_o fear_v wilful_o forget_v what_o i_o discourse_v about_o pastor_n in_o t._n n._n to_o this_o effect_n that_o in_o scripture_n pastor_n be_v a_o common_a name_n give_v to_o superior_a and_o to_o inferior_a officer_n in_o the_o church_n as_o minister_v also_o be_v here_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n it_o can_v mean_v none_o but_o the_o ordinary_a teacher_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n by_o the_o figure_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d import_v the_o ordinary_a pres-byters_a for_o which_o reason_n pastor_n be_v twice_o together_o leave_v out_o 1_o cor._n 12._o 28_o 29._o in_o after_o age_n it_o by_o degree_n come_v to_o signify_v bishop_n at_o least_o principal_o they_o and_o so_o as_o i_o reckon_v it_o be_v take_v in_o this_o sense_n in_o the_o ember-week_n prayer_n bishop_n and_o pastor_n there_o signify_v the_o same_o church-officer_n i_o say_v perhaps_o for_o though_o i_o will_v not_o assure_o affirm_v that_o by_o pastor_n in_o that_o collect_n be_v mean_v the_o presbyter_n who_o assist_v at_o ordination_n and_o examine_v the_o candidate_n for_o order_n and_o lay_v on_o hand_n with_o the_o bishop_n yet_o the_o prayer_n be_v capable_a of_o that_o sense_n the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n that_o be_v the_o bishop_n and_o the_o assist_v presbyter_n but_o mr._n o._n add_v if_o the_o rector_n say_v they_o be_v both_o pastor_n and_o evangelist_n he_o confound_v those_o officer_n which_o the_o apostle_n distinguish_v ans._n if_o what_o i_o say_v just_a now_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a reply_n hereunto_o i_o add_v that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n may_v have_v distinct_a office_n and_o the_o distinct_a title_n belong_v to_o those_o office_n john_n be_v a_o apostle_n and_o a_o evangelist_n every_o apostle_n be_v a_o prophet_n be_v a_o evangelist_n be_v a_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o apostle_n have_v all_o the_o ministerial_a 11._o power_n and_o so_o have_v evangelist_n all_o the_o power_n which_o their_o inferior_a officer_n have_v they_o be_v pastor_n and_o teacher_n nor_o be_v this_o a_o confound_a the_o officer_n because_o the_o proposition_n be_v not_o convertible_a though_o every_o bishop_n or_o evangelist_n be_v a_o pastor_n also_o and_o teacher_n
law_n of_o the_o church_n be_v make_v by_o they_o with_o their_o knowledge_n and_o consent_n in_o convocation_n mr._n o._n the_o act_n of_o convocation_n be_v no_o law_n till_o they_o be_v confirm_v 151._o in_o parliameut_n ans._n they_o be_v though_o not_o civil_a yet_o ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o former_o at_o east_n oblige_v in_o conscience_n as_o the_o late_a bishop_n of_o worcester_n inform_v i_o ecclesiastical_a case_n p._n 336._o 372_o 373._o it_o be_v nothing_o to_o i_o whether_o in_o convocation_n they_o be_v make_v law_n of_o the_o land_n i_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n beside_o mr._n oh_o charge_n against_o we_o be_v that_o all_o the_o power_n in_o the_o church_n be_v in_o the_o bishop_n hand_n but_o this_o argument_n of_o he_o exclude_v not_o only_o the_o presbyter_n but_o the_o bishop_n also_o from_o have_v any_o power_n in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a legislative_a for_o it_o be_v likewise_o true_a that_o the_o decree_n of_o convocation_n though_o they_o be_v make_v by_o the_o bishop_n only_o as_o mr._n o._n will_v insinuate_v yet_o will_v not_o be_v law_n of_o the_o land_n till_o confirm_v by_o parliament_n thus_o the_o minister_n by_o deny_v or_o question_v too_o much_o have_v destroy_v the_o subject_a of_o the_o question_n the_o bishop_n also_o be_v hereby_o stripe_v of_o their_o power_n as_o well_o as_o the_o presbyter_n it_o be_v then_o to_o no_o purpose_n for_o we_o to_o dispute_v whether_o the_o bishop_n have_v all_o the_o ecclesiastical_a power_n in_o their_o hand_n or_o whether_o the_o presbyter_n have_v some_o since_o according_a to_o mr._n o._n neither_o of_o they_o have_v any_o mr._n o._n have_v every_o parish_n priest_n a_o power_n of_o make_v church_n law_n 152._o if_o not_o etc._n etc._n he_o think_v they_o have_v not_o and_o argue_v that_o if_o the_o parish_n priest_n make_v law_n by_o their_o representative_n and_o shall_v therefore_o be_v think_v to_o have_v power_n of_o discipline_n it_o will_v follow_v that_o freeholders_n have_v power_n of_o government_n their_o representative_n in_o parliament_n be_v concern_v in_o the_o make_n law_n ans._n the_o rector_n assert_v not_o that_o every_o parish_n priest_n have_v a_o power_n of_o make_v church_n law_n it_o be_v a_o unreasonable_a thing_n but_o every_o parish_n priest_n have_v a_o share_n in_o the_o power_n of_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n which_o he_o execute_v by_o his_o representative_a in_o convocation_n and_o i_o add_v every_o freeholder_n have_v a_o share_n of_o power_n in_o make_v the_o political-law_n but_o all_o this_o be_v trifle_a nothing_o be_v more_o evident_a than_o this_o what_o be_v do_v by_o a_o representative_a be_v the_o act_n and_o deed_n of_o the_o person_n represent_v and_o nothing_o be_v more_o ordinary_a than_o to_o tell_v discontent_a people_n when_o the_o law_n be_v execute_v upon_o they_o that_o they_o be_v of_o their_o own_o make_n that_o be_v make_v by_o their_o representative_n mr._n o._n the_o convocation_n be_v not_o a_o just_a representative_a of_o the_o clergy_n ans._n there_o be_v two_o thing_n only_a that_o i_o know_v of_o necessary_a to_o make_v a_o just_a representative_a 1._o that_o the_o representer_n be_v sufficient_a as_o to_o number_v 2._o that_o they_o be_v free_o choose_v by_o the_o represent_v on_o both_o account_n i_o will_v prove_v that_o the_o convocation_n be_v a_o just_a representative_a of_o the_o clergy_n 1._o one_o can_v from_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o thing_n gather_v with_o any_o certainty_n what_o number_n of_o representer_n be_v necessary_a to_o make_v a_o just_a representative_a and_o it_o will_v be_v in_o vain_a to_o all_o edge_n the_o private_a sentiment_n of_o man_n among_o who_o it_o will_v haply_o be_v find_v quot_fw-la homines_fw-la tot_fw-la sententiae_fw-la so_o many_o man_n so_o many_o mind_n the_o sure_a way_n then_o to_o determine_v this_o point_n be_v i_o think_v to_o compare_v the_o convocation_n with_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o which_o be_v the_o representative_a of_o people_n my_o argument_n lie_v thus_o if_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o be_v a_o just_a representative_a of_o the_o people_n as_o to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o representer_n which_o no_o body_n i_o presume_v will_v dare_v to_o deny_v than_o the_o convocation_n be_v a_o just_a representative_a of_o the_o clergy_n let_v we_o then_o compare_v the_o number_n of_o the_o representer_n and_o the_o represent_v in_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o with_o the_o number_n of_o the_o representer_n and_o represent_v in_o the_o house_n of_o convocation_n the_o people_n of_o england_n represent_v in_o parliament_n be_v according_a to_o dr._n chamberlain_n computation_n in_o ãâã_d angliae_fw-la between_o five_o and_o six_o million_o their_o representer_n in_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o about_o five_o hundred_o the_o clergy_n of_o england_n be_v i_o reckon_v about_o fifteen_o thousand_o allow_v ten_o thousand_o for_o the_o parson_n rector_n and_o vicar_n of_o so_o many_o parish_n and_o add_v to_o these_o the_o master_n and_o fellow_n of_o the_o college_n in_o both_o university_n chaplain_n lecturer_n and_o curate_n which_o will_v in_o all_o amount_v to_o five_o thousand_o more_o as_o i_o will_v grant_v because_o i_o will_v not_o favour_v a_o side_n though_o it_o may_v be_v they_o will_v not_o reach_v above_o one_o three_o part_n of_o that_o number_n the_o representer_n of_o these_o fifteen_o thousand_o in_o convocation_n be_v a_o hundred_o sixty_o and_o six_o which_o make_v up_o the_o two_o low_a house_n of_o convocation_n in_o both_o ãâã_d any_o man_n may_v hence_o discern_v at_o first_o sight_n the_o disproportion_n between_o five_o hundred_o member_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o represent_v above_o five_o million_o of_o people_n and_o one_o hundred_o sixty_o and_o six_o member_n of_o convocation_n represent_v only_o fifteen_o thousand_o clergy_n every_o parliament_n man_n let_v we_o now_o consider_v they_o ãâã_d represent_v about_o ten_o thousand_o person_n but_o every_o member_n of_o convocation_n represent_v not_o much_o above_o ninety_o the_o difference_n than_o be_v as_o ninety_o to_o ten_o thousand_o if_o then_o the_o member_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o number_n a_o just_a representative_a of_o the_o people_n as_o we_o all_o believe_v much_o more_o be_v the_o member_n of_o convocation_n a_o just_a representative_a of_o the_o clergy_n now_o because_o the_o wisdom_n and_o integrity_n of_o representer_n be_v to_o be_v regard_v also_o as_o well_o as_o their_o number_n and_o because_o their_o wisdom_n and_o integrity_n can_v be_v better_a judge_v of_o than_o by_o consider_v the_o freedom_n of_o their_o choice_n we_o be_v in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o inquire_v whether_o the_o member_n of_o convocation_n be_v not_o as_o free_o choose_v by_o the_o clergy_n as_o the_o member_n of_o parliament_n be_v by_o the_o people_n let_v it_o then_o be_v remember_v that_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o nation_n have_v not_o any_o voice_n at_o all_o in_o the_o election_n of_o member_n of_o parliament_n for_o we_o know_v a_o vast_a number_n of_o servant_n labourer_n mechanic_n shopkeeper_n merchant_n artist_n of_o all_o sort_n scholar_n attorney_n lawyer_n physician_n divine_v not_o have_v freehold_a estate_n copy-holders_n minor_n also_o and_o single_a woman_n have_v no_o voice_n in_o the_o election_n of_o any_o parliament_n man_n that_o be_v as_o i_o reckon_v four_o part_n of_o five_o of_o the_o people_n be_v not_o at_o all_o admit_v to_o choose_v parliament_n men._n but_o all_o the_o parson_n rector_n and_o vicar_n have_v suffrage_n in_o the_o election_n of_o member_n of_o convocation_n and_o these_o elector_n be_v two_o three_o of_o the_o clergy_n viz._n parson_n rector_n and_o vicar_n be_v ten_o thousand_o by_o my_o former_a calculation_n it_o appear_v hence_o that_o if_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o be_v a_o just_a representative_a of_o the_o people_n with_o respect_n to_o their_o election_n much_o more_o be_v the_o convocation_n a_o just_a representative_a of_o the_o clergy_n four_o fifth_n of_o the_o people_n as_o i_o reckon_v be_v entire_o exclude_v from_o choose_v member_n of_o parliament_n and_o but_o one_o three_o part_n of_o the_o clergy_n from_o choose_v member_n of_o convocation_n but_o to_o evince_v this_o and_o make_v it_o yet_o more_o plain_a we_o must_v go_v another_o way_n to_o work_v because_o of_o the_o various_a method_n whereby_o person_n by_o ancient_a custom_n or_o constitution_n become_v member_n of_o parliament_n and_o of_o convocation_n without_o any_o due_a election_n of_o the_o five_o hundred_o member_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o one_o hundred_o be_v knight_n choose_v only_o by_o freeholders_n who_o be_v not_o haply_o a_o eight_o part_n of_o the_o people_n of_o england_n and_o the_o other_o four_o hundred_o be_v citizen_n burgess_n and_o baron_n of_o the_o cinque_fw-fr port_n elect_v by_o a_o handful_n of_o
that_o timothy_n do_v not_o ordain_v alone_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o my_o purpose_n that_o he_o be_v constitue_v the_o principal_a judge_n and_o director_n in_o ordination_n as_o in_o all_o other_o act_n of_o jurisdiction_n mr._n o._n the_o rector_n have_v argue_v from_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o timothy_n 162._o be_v intend_v the_o resident_n governor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ãâã_d the_o minister_n deny_v it_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o mat._n 15._o 32._o mark_n 8._o 2._o ans._n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o these_o place_n produce_v against_o i_o be_v limit_v by_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o make_v a_o great_a difference_n a_o man_n may_v be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d to_o reside_v or_o abide_v in_o a_o place_n one_o two_o or_o three_o day_n or_o month_n or_o year_n and_o yet_o we_o know_v what_o it_o be_v to_o reside_v when_o it_o be_v speak_v undeterminate_o as_o for_o those_o word_n till_o i_o come_v 1_o tim._n 4._o 13._o it_o be_v no_o limitation_n of_o timothy_n residence_n at_o ãâã_d nor_o do_v it_o imply_v that_o his_o authority_n there_o must_v then_o cease_v if_o it_o be_v so_o then_o after_o paul_n be_v come_v to_o ãâã_d ãâã_d must_v have_v leave_v off_o giving_z attendance_n unto_o read_v to_o exhortation_n to_o ãâã_d which_o yet_o i_o suppose_v be_v duty_n perpetual_o incumbent_a upon_o he_o let_v the_o apostle_n be_v at_o ãâã_d or_o not_o in_o a_o word_n st._n paul_n go_v short_o to_o timothy_n at_o ephesus_n be_v not_o with_o intent_n to_o remove_v he_o thence_o but_o to_o instruct_v he_o thorough_o how_o to_o behave_v himself_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n the_o church_n commit_v to_o his_o charge_n as_o be_v before_o observe_v and_o prove_v nevertheless_o lest_o the_o apostle_n shall_v be_v prevent_v of_o his_o intend_a visit_n and_o shall_v tarry_v long_o as_o he_o suspect_v may_v happen_v he_o send_v he_o for_o the_o present_a this_o epistle_n contain_v the_o sum_n of_o what_o afterward_o when_o he_o come_v to_o ephesus_n he_o will_v more_v at_o large_a communicate_v unto_o he_o but_o these_o be_v repetition_n mr._n o._n to_o prove_v that_o ãâã_d have_v be_v furnish_v with_o the_o 163._o same_o power_n at_o corinth_n philippi_n and_o thessalonica_n as_o he_o be_v afterward_o at_o ephesus_n allege_v the_o rector_n grant_v that_o unfixt_v evangelist_n govern_v the_o church_n and_o ordain_v elder_n under_o the_o apostle_n ans._n this_o concession_n prove_v not_o that_o timothy_n be_v furnish_v with_o the_o same_o power_n in_o greece_n and_o macedonia_n as_o at_o ephesus_n for_o 1._o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o timothy_n be_v a_o evangelist_n when_o send_v to_o corinth_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v no_o where_o to_o be_v find_v in_o scripture_n but_o in_o st._n paul_n second_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n which_o be_v a_o great_a while_n after_o he_o have_v be_v send_v to_o ãâã_d philippi_n and_o thessalonica_n then_o indeed_o it_o be_v intimate_v he_o be_v a_o evangelist_n and_o not_o before_o 2._o it_o seem_v evident_a unto_o i_o that_o timothy_n be_v send_v unto_o greece_n and_o macedonia_n for_o quite_o other_o purpose_n than_o to_o govern_v those_o church_n and_o ordain_v they_o elder_n his_o business_n at_o ãâã_d be_v to_o establish_v and_o comfort_v the_o christian_n there_o concern_v their_o faith_n 1_o thes._n 3._o 2._o and_o afterward_o he_o go_v thither_o again_o to_o hasten_v their_o contribution_n as_o i_o conceive_v his_o business_n to_o ãâã_d be_v to_o carry_v the_o apostle_n letter_n concern_v the_o ãâã_d schism_n and_o contention_n we_o read_v of_o no_o commission_n give_v he_o to_o receive_v accusation_n to_o reprove_v offender_n open_o to_o examine_v the_o qualification_n of_o the_o candidate_n for_o holy_a order_n or_o to_o ordain_v elder_n either_o at_o corinth_n ãâã_d or_o thessalonica_n as_o he_o have_v at_o ephesus_n 3._o eusebius_n on_o who_o authority_n the_o hypothesis_n of_o unfixt_v 37._o evangelist_n depend_v describe_v they_o thus_o they_o go_v from_o place_n to_o place_n among_o those_o who_o have_v not_o yet_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o faith_n or_o where_o no_o church_n be_v as_o yet_o establish_v but_o paul_n have_v already_o plant_v church_n at_o corinth_n philippi_n and_o thessalonica_n these_o than_o be_v not_o place_n proper_a for_o a_o unfixed_a evangelist_n to_o be_v employ_v in_o and_o therefore_o timothy_n do_v not_o the_o work_n of_o a_o evangelist_n in_o those_o city_n that_o be_v he_o have_v not_o the_o same_o power_n there_o as_o at_z ephesus_z so_o that_o i_o still_o call_v upon_o mr._n o._n to_o prove_v timothy_n be_v furnish_v with_o the_o same_o power_n in_o greece_n and_o macedonia_n as_o he_o be_v after_o at_o ephesus_n 4._o if_o timothy_n have_v be_v furnish_v with_o the_o same_o power_n at_o his_o go_v to_o greece_n and_o macedonia_n as_o at_o ephesus_n why_o shall_v paul_n resolve_v for_o ãâã_d ãâã_d there_o to_o instruct_v ãâã_d in_o his_o office_n and_o because_o he_o foresee_v that_o journey_n may_v possible_o be_v put_v off_o for_o a_o long_a time_n why_o do_v he_o dispatch_v a_o letter_n to_o ãâã_d wherein_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n he_o give_v he_o the_o necessary_a order_n for_o the_o better_a rule_v of_o the_o church_n ãâã_d i_o suppose_v be_v not_o so_o forgetful_a as_o to_o need_v these_o instruction_n if_o he_o have_v before_o be_v furnish_v with_o they_o when_o he_o be_v send_v to_o ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o ãâã_d mr._n o._n a_o great_a part_n of_o t._n n._n be_v to_o prove_v that_o presbyter_n 165._o be_v not_o supreme_a governor_n because_o the_o apostle_n be_v above'em_v and_o yet_o that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v supreme_a governor_n though_o the_o apostle_n be_v above_o they_o also_o either_o the_o elder_n be_v supreme_a governor_n or_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v not_o ans._n i_o show_v by_o induction_n of_o particular_n that_o the_o presbyter_n be_v subject_a unto_o the_o apostle_n in_o every_o single_a act_n of_o government_n that_o either_o a_o apostle_n or_o a_o prophet_n be_v constant_o at_o the_o helm_n to_o guide_v and_o direct_v '_o they_o the_o elder_n have_v not_o a_o discretionary_a power_n in_o any_o case_n that_o we_o read_v of_o but_o timothy_n and_o titus_n though_o they_o also_o be_v subject_n to_o st._n paul_n whenever_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o interpose_v yet_o general_o speak_v be_v leave_v unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o their_o own_o private_a discretion_n as_o appear_v from_o the_o rule_n of_o government_n prescribe_v they_o by_o the_o apostle_n there_o be_v a_o manifest_a difference_n between_o timothy_n and_o titus_n their_o subjection_n to_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o of_o the_o ordinary_a elder_n see_v the_o preface_n mr._n o._n whereas_o in_o proof_n of_o many_o congregation_n in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n i_o cite_v act_n 19_o 10._o all_o they_o which_o dwell_v in_o asia_n hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o back_v this_o with_o ignatius_n calling_n himself_o the_o bishop_n of_o syria_n not_o of_o antioch_n only_o but_o of_o some_o considerable_a part_n of_o the_o adjacent_a country_n the_o minister_n reply_v this_o be_v little_a to_o the_o purpose_n and_o that_o man_n will_v talk_v any_o thing_n but_o ans._n do_v not_o these_o observation_n render_v it_o high_o probable_a that_o the_o ephesian_a church_n be_v also_o compose_v of_o several_a assemble_v in_o city_n and_o country_n and_o be_v not_o this_o a_o good_a account_n why_o a_o bishop_n and_o many_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n be_v employ_v in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n not_o serve_v one_o congregation_n alone_o in_o the_o city_n but_o other_o also_o in_o the_o country_n round_o about_o call_v asia_n if_o there_o have_v be_v but_o one_o congregation_n at_o ephesus_n one_o bishop_n or_o presbyter_n may_v have_v suffice_v the_o christian_n at_o that_o time_n of_o day_n be_v not_o so_o wealthy_a as_o to_o multiply_v church-officer_n more_o than_o need_v this_o be_v not_o i_o confess_v to_o mr._n oh_o purpose_n but_o i_o hope_v it_o will_v be_v think_v to_o i_o mr._n o._n further_o plead_v that_o the_o rector_n understand_v in_o order_n to_o prove_v there_o be_v many_o congregation_n in_o that_o church_n may_v as_o well_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n take_v in_o the_o parthian_n and_o dweller_n in_o mesopotamia_n cappadocia_n etc._n etc._n for_o all_o these_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n act_n 2._o 9_o 11._o as_o well_o as_o those_o of_o asia_n do_v ans._n that_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o i_o do_v affirm_v the_o parthian_n and_o dweller_n in_o mesopotamia_n here_o mention_v belong_v unto_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n so_o many_o of_o they_o as_o be_v convert_v for_o the_o dweller_n in_o mesopotamia_n v_o 9_o be_v say_v to_o be_v dweller_n at_o jerusalem_n v_o 5._o ãâã_d ãâã_d
viz._n consist_v of_o three_o distinct_a order_n of_o minister_n the_o title_n only_o of_o the_o supreme_a governor_n haply_o except_v and_o so_o continue_v after_o he_o as_o i_o say_v unto_o the_o time_n of_o ignatius_n and_o last_o have_v answer_v all_o the_o objection_n raise_v against_o our_o episcopal_a government_n by_o mr._n o._n in_o his_o book_n entitle_v a_o plea_n etc._n etc._n so_o many_o of_o they_o i_o mean_v as_o seem_v to_o carry_v any_o weight_n in_o they_o and_o concern_v the_o time_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o which_o i_o have_v confine_v myself_o hitherto_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o apostolical_a age._n after_o all_o this_o it_o remain_v that_o i_o consider_v the_o argument_n which_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n he_o be_v draw_v from_o ecclesiastical_a history_n begin_v where_o the_o scripture_n end_v and_o so_o descend_v unto_o these_o last_o age_n before_o which_o time_n episcopacy_n be_v never_o bring_v into_o question_n for_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n save_v by_o one_o arch-heretick_n aërius_n of_o who_o more_o hereafter_o my_o adversary_n indeed_o think_v he_o have_v find_v in_o old_a author_n many_o instance_n favour_v the_o presbyterian_a identity_n and_o parity_n and_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n this_o be_v now_o to_o be_v examine_v if_o my_o answer_n shall_v be_v think_v old_a i_o have_v this_o excuse_n for_o myself_o that_o the_o objection_n be_v old_a also_o and_o in_o such_o a_o case_n it_o be_v pardonable_a if_o not_o necessary_a especial_o when_o a_o adversary_n demand_v and_o even_o dun_v yea_o and_o reproach_n one_o for_o not_o have_v already_o undertake_v it_o i_o pretend_v not_o then_o to_o make_v new_a discovery_n never_o hear_v of_o before_o in_o the_o controversy_n now_o before_o we_o though_o haply_o some_o few_o thing_n not_o observe_v before_o may_v be_v here_o offer_v to_o the_o reader_n but_o to_o apply_v the_o proper_a answer_n unto_o the_o old_a objection_n wherewith_o mr._n o._n have_v endeavour_v to_o embroil_n and_o perplex_v the_o truth_n i_o will_v not_o tie_v myself_o unto_o his_o method_n which_o be_v not_o so_o well_o fit_v to_o my_o design_n it_o be_v my_o purpose_n to_o manage_v the_o dispute_n only_o ãâã_d matter_n of_o fact_n which_o be_v once_o clear_v from_o countenance_v the_o presbyterian_a or_o congregational_a polity_n mr._n oh_o syllogism_n will_v and_o must_v fall_v to_o the_o ground_n i_o will_v then_o digest_v and_o dispose_v all_o his_o authority_n and_o my_o reply_v to_o they_o though_o not_o exact_o for_o the_o controversy_n ãâã_d not_o on_o the_o nicety_n of_o chronology_n yet_o pretty_a near_o to_o the_o order_n of_o time_n to_o which_o they_o belong_v i_o begin_v with_o the_o epistle_n of_o clemens_n romanus_n unto_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n which_o be_v the_o best_a colourable_a argument_n the_o dissenter_n do_v or_o can_v bring_v for_o themselves_o chap._n i._o of_o the_o testimony_n of_o clemens_n romanus_n the_o substance_n of_o what_o mr._n o._n argue_v from_o this_o epistle_n against_o prelatical_a episcopacy_n and_o in_o favour_n of_o presbyterian_a parity_n be_v whereas_o i_o affirm_v in_o t._n n._n clement_n seem_v to_o make_v the_o jewish_a highpriest_n the_o inferior_a priest_n and_o levite_n a_o precedent_n for_o the_o government_n of_o christian_a church_n by_o a_o bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n that_o clement_n no_o where_o say_v there_o be_v those_o three_o distinct_a 51._o officer_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n or_o that_o the_o jewish_a government_n be_v a_o pattern_n of_o the_o christian_a that_o clement_n mention_n but_o two_o order_n viz._n bishop_n and_o deacon_n that_o he_o call_v these_o bishop_n presbyter_n that_o they_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o corinth_n in_o common_a that_o he_o mention_n no_o chief_a bishop_n there_o that_o he_o exhort_v the_o corinthian_n to_o be_v subject_a unto_o their_o elder_n that_o clement_n aught_o to_o be_v expound_v by_o scripture_n philip._n 1._o 1._o and_o 1_o tim._n 3._o in_o both_o which_o place_n two_o only_a order_n be_v to_o be_v meet_v with_o that_o clement_n do_v not_o intend_v to_o affirm_v there_o be_v three_o kind_n of_o officer_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n as_o in_o the_o moysaicall_a but_o only_o that_o both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o church_n that_o be_v the_o moysaicall_a with_o three_o order_n and_o the_o christian_a with_o two_o be_v both_o establish_v by_o the_o same_o divine_a authority_n unto_o all_o which_o it_o be_v reply_v 1._o i_o ready_o grant_v clement_n no_o where_o express_o affirm_v there_o be_v three_o distinct_a order_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n or_o that_o the_o high-priest_n priest_n and_o levite_n in_o the_o jewish_a church_n be_v the_o pattern_n of_o bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n in_o the_o christian._n thus_o much_o be_v grant_v nevertheless_o what_o i_o cite_v he_o for_o may_v be_v true_a and_o be_v so_o sc_n that_o he_o seem_v to_o make_v the_o jewish_a government_n the_o pattern_n of_o the_o christian_a as_o we_o be_v wont_n to_o argue_v from_o he_o compare_v the_o one_o with_o the_o other_o one_o will_v think_v this_o join_v with_o jerom_n testimony_n cite_v with_o it_o in_o t._n n._n pag._n 1._o be_v sufficient_a to_o warrant_v i_o thus_o modest_o to_o ãâã_d that_o clement_n seem_v to_o ãâã_d the_o jewish_a government_n a_o pattern_n of_o the_o christian_a which_o other_o before_o i_o have_v do_v as_o dr._n h._n in_o his_o dissertation_n and_o dr._n ãâã_d cod._n can._n etc._n etc._n l._n 2._o e._n 11._o but_o mr._n mede_n deserve_v particular_o to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o who_o have_v more_o than_o once_o declare_v his_o judgement_n in_o this_o matter_n let_v we_o hear_v he_o teach_v we_o that_o in_o thing_n for_o which_o we_o find_v no_o rule_n give_v in_o the_o 435._o new_a testament_n there_o we_o be_v refer_v and_o leave_v to_o the_o analogy_n of_o the_o old_a he_o instance_n in_o st._n paul_n argue_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n 1_o cor._n 9_o 13_o 14_o in_o infant_n baptism_n in_o hallow_v the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n in_o the_o three_o order_n bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n assert_v by_o jerom_n to_o be_v derive_v from_o ãâã_d his_o son_n and_o the_o levite_n and_o last_o in_o this_o passage_n of_o st._n clement_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n once_o more_o he_o expound_v those_o word_n in_o clemens_n romanus_n to_o the_o corinthian_n we_o ought_v to_o do_v all_o 413._o thing_n in_o order_n as_o the_o lord_n have_v command_v put_v the_o question_n to_o himself_o thus_o where_o have_v the_o lord_n command_v this_o and_o answer_v himself_o thus_o in_o the_o analogy_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n now_o clement_n in_o the_o next_o follow_v part_n of_o his_o epistle_n treat_v in_o general_a of_o the_o time_n when_o the_o christian_a ministration_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v the_o place_n where_o and_o the_o person_n by_o who_o if_o then_o the_o analogy_n of_o the_o law_n be_v a_o divine_a commission_n unto_o the_o christian_n if_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o jew_n a_o precedent_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n if_o the_o jewish_a sabbath_n of_o the_o christian_a lord's-day_n why_o not_o the_o levitical_a three_o order_n of_o the_o christian_a ãâã_d priest_n and_o deacon_n but_o that_o which_o be_v of_o most_o moment_n be_v that_o many_o other_o father_n follow_v clement_n as_o jerom_n synesius_n cyprian_n and_o firmilianus_n of_o who_o i_o have_v speak_v elsewhere_o do_v not_o forget_v to_o allude_v or_o appeal_v to_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o three_o order_n of_o church-officer_n among_o the_o christian_n st._n cyprian_n say_v he_o have_v a_o divine_a law_n to_o punish_v oxon._n his_o rebellious_a deacon_n quote_v deut._n 17._o 12._o numb_a 16._o 1._o here_o he_o think_v himself_o invest_v with_o the_o same_o authority_n as_o aaron_n be_v and_o through_o aaron_n to_o have_v receive_v it_o from_o god_n the_o like_a we_o meet_v with_o in_o several_a other_o epistle_n and_o indeed_o the_o name_n sacerdos_n 73._o sacerdotium_fw-la altar_n sacrificium_fw-la oblationes_fw-la etc._n etc._n so_o familiar_o use_v by_o the_o ancient_n and_o by_o our_o clement_a himself_n to_o express_v the_o christian_a officer_n and_o office_n imply_v as_o much_o it_o may_v then_o with_o reason_n be_v suppose_v that_o clement_n intend_v the_o same_o 2._o as_o i_o acknowledge_v clement_n do_v not_o totidem_fw-la verbis_fw-la assert_v the_o order_n so_o i_o observe_v that_o though_o he_o express_o mention_n two_o only_o yet_o he_o affirm_v no_o where_o that_o there_o be_v two_o only_a kind_n of_o officer_n in_o the_o church_n of_o ãâã_d and_o no_o more_o or_o thus_o though_o he_o mention_n two_o only_a yet_o he_o deny_v not_o express_o but_o that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o three_o 3._o i_o join_v issue_n with_o mr._n o._n that_o clement_n ought_v to_o be_v
expound_v by_o the_o scripture_n but_o sure_o not_o by_o the_o two_o place_n only_o which_o he_o have_v allege_v all_o the_o rest_n be_v lay_v aside_o the_o epistle_n then_o of_o clement_n must_v be_v expound_v by_o the_o whole_a scripture_n and_o what_o intimation_n of_o three_o order_n be_v any_o where_o therein_o to_o be_v find_v this_o have_v be_v do_v already_o and_o need_v not_o be_v draw_v in_o here_o again_o to_o lengthen_v and_o confound_v the_o argument_n only_o thus_o brief_o to_o the_o two_o passage_n adduce_v by_o mr._n o._n though_o st._n paul_n philip._n 1._o 1._o mention_n bishop_n and_o deacon_n only_o and_o no_o third_n superior_a officer_n in_o that_o church_n yet_o chap._n 2._o 25._o ãâã_d call_v epaphroditus_n by_o who_o he_o send_v this_o epistle_n the_o apostle_n of_o the_o philippian_n and_o though_o 1_o tim._n 3._o ch_n he_o name_v bishop_n and_o deacon_n only_o and_o no_o three_o officer_n yet_o as_o i_o hope_v have_v be_v sufficient_o make_v out_o he_o have_v constitute_v timothy_n ruler_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o particular_o of_o the_o elder_n there_o so_o that_o there_o be_v at_o philippi_n three_o order_n a_o apostle_n bishop_n or_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n likewise_o at_o ephesus_n timothy_n the_o ruler_n of_o that_o church_n and_o bishop_n or_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n and_o the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v of_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n when_o clement_n write_v to_o they_o if_o we_o will_v suffer_v ourselves_o to_o be_v guide_v by_o scripture_n and_o reason_n 4._o that_o clement_n exhort_v the_o corinthian_n to_o be_v subject_a unto_o the_o presbyter_n be_v certain_a but_o so_o do_v ignatius_n require_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v subject_a to_o their_o presbyter_n though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o urge_v the_o christian_n and_o special_o the_o presbyter_n themselves_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n the_o flock_n may_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o presbyter_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n they_o and_o the_o presbyter_n ought_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n again_o that_o the_o presbyter_n govern_v the_o church_n in_o common_a be_v not_o question_v but_o that_o they_o do_v so_o without_o a_o bishop_n be_v no_o where_o express_o say_v last_o that_o clement_n express_o mention_n no_o chief_a bishop_n at_o ãâã_d i_o own_o especial_o not_o by_o the_o name_n bishop_n but_o still_o he_o seem_v to_o speak_v of_o a_o order_n of_o church-officer_n superior_a to_o and_o distinct_a from_o presbyter_n page_z the_o jun._n second_o commend_v the_o peaceable_a behaviour_n of_o the_o corinthian_n in_o time_n ãâã_d he_o write_v that_o they_o have_v be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d subject_a to_o ãâã_d ruler_n and_o give_v convenient_a honour_n unto_o the_o presbyter_n and_o again_o p._n ãâã_d let_v we_o worship_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n let_v we_o reverence_v our_o governor_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d let_v we_o honour_v our_o presbyter_n one_o will_v think_v here_o be_v sufficient_a intimation_n of_o a_o order_n of_o church_n officer_n superior_a unto_o presbyter_n and_o distinct_a from_o they_o 5._o clement_n be_v himself_o bishop_n or_o supreme_a ruler_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n at_o rome_n be_v as_o it_o be_v think_v the_o same_o person_n that_o we_o read_v of_o philip._n 4._o 3._o now_o it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o likely_a that_o clement_n a_o person_n of_o unquestionable_a piety_n and_o integrity_n be_v a_o prelatical_a bishop_n himself_o at_o rome_n shall_v approve_v or_o countenance_v the_o presbyterian_a parity_n at_o ãâã_d and_o that_o those_o two_o apostolical_a church_n shall_v thus_o wide_o differ_v in_o their_o form_n of_o government_n 6._o it_o may_v deserve_v our_o observation_n what_o clement_n write_v towards_o the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o epistle_n p._n 69._o thus_o whoever_o among_o you_o be_v generous_a and_o charitable_n let_v he_o resolve_v thus_o if_o the_o sedition_n contention_n and_o schism_n be_v rise_v on_o my_o account_n i_o will_v be_v go_v wherever_o you_o will_v and_o whatever_o the_o people_n require_v that_o i_o will_v do_v only_o let_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o presbyter_n set_v over_o they_o live_v in_o peace_n methinks_v the_o author_n in_o these_o word_n plain_o enough_o distinguish_n between_o that_o generous_a person_n first_o speak_v of_o and_o a_o considerable_a part_n of_o the_o presbyter_n immediate_o after_o mention_v separately_z from_o he_o this_o generous_a person_n be_v it_o seem_v settle_v in_o some_o post_n or_o office_n by_o one_o party_n of_o the_o ãâã_d or_o atlea_v continue_v in_o it_o against_o the_o mind_n and_o inclination_n of_o the_o rest._n from_o hence_o spring_v the_o quarrel_n and_o schism_n among_o '_o they_o now_o what_o office_n can_v this_o be_v but_o that_o of_o the_o prelatical_a bishop_n he_o can_v not_o be_v a_o mere_a presbyter_n for_o he_o be_v plain_o distinguish_v from_o they_o and_o beside_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v imagine_v that_o one_o common_a presbyter_n equal_a with_o the_o rest_n shall_v have_v be_v the_o occasion_n of_o such_o a_o dangerous_a schism_n or_o that_o his_o absence_n shall_v immediate_o put_v a_o end_n to_o it_o as_o it_o be_v here_o imply_v nor_o will_v any_o one_o i_o believe_v say_v that_o he_o be_v a_o deacon_n much_o less_o a_o ordinary_a believer_n he_o be_v then_o as_o i_o conceive_v the_o prelate_n of_o that_o church_n but_o not_o acceptable_a to_o one_o party_n of_o the_o ãâã_d and_o on_o this_o occasion_n the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n be_v disturb_v clement_n not_o intermeddle_v among_o they_o as_o to_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o cause_n advise_v this_o generous_a person_n out_o of_o charity_n and_o for_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n to_o abdicate_v and_o depart_v from_o his_o office_n to_o the_o end_n some_o other_o succeed_v with_o the_o universal_a consent_n of_o the_o corinthian_n by_o this_o mean_v a_o period_n may_v be_v put_v unto_o their_o division_n in_o further_a proof_n of_o this_o i_o offer_v unto_o consideration_n what_o i_o long_o since_o write_v in_o my_o clement_n upon_o the_o margin_n but_o be_v not_o so_o happy_a as_o to_o refer_v to_o the_o author_n whence_o i_o have_v take_v that_o note_n it_o be_v this_o that_o from_o the_o passage_n of_o clement_n epistle_n just_a before_o set_v down_o at_o length_n ãâã_d and_o other_o after_o he_o conjecture_n that_o clement_n be_v name_v by_o peter_n to_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o apostle_n immediate_a successor_n but_o refuse_v it_o for_o a_o like_a reason_n that_o he_o here_o exhort_v the_o generous_a person_n at_o corinth_n to_o lay_v down_o his_o ephes._n office_n now_o it_o be_v very_o proper_a for_o clement_n to_o urge_v his_o own_o reason_n and_o example_n and_o especial_o since_o his_o modesty_n and_o condescension_n gain_v he_o afterward_o the_o affection_n of_o that_o church_n and_o at_o length_n advance_v he_o unto_o the_o bishopric_n of_o rome_n the_o like_a he_o hint_n unto_o this_o generous_a person_n as_o a_o motive_n to_o he_o to_o resign_v in_o the_o next_o period_n he_o say_v clement_n who_o shall_v do_v thus_o shall_v procure_v to_o himself_o great_a glory_n in_o the_o lord_n and_o every_o place_n every_o church_n will_v receive_v he_o the_o passage_n in_o epiphanius_n whereof_o i_o speak_v be_v in_o english_a as_o advers._fw-la follow_v peter_n and_o paul_n be_v both_o the_o first_o apostle_n and_o bishop_n of_o rome_n than_o linus_n afterward_o cletus_n and_o next_o he_o paris_n clement_n contemporary_a of_o peter_n and_o paul_n nor_o let_v any_o one_o wonder_n that_o other_o before_o clement_n receive_v the_o episcopacy_n from_o the_o apostle_n see_v clement_n be_v their_o contemporary_a whether_o he_o receive_v ordination_n to_o the_o episcopacy_n and_o decline_v it_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d etc._n whilst_o they_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n survive_v for_o he_o say_v in_o one_o of_o his_o epistle_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d i_o depart_v i_o be_o go_v let_v the_o people_n of_o god_n abide_v in_o peace_n design_v this_o for_o other_o good_a and_o advantage_n or_o whither_o etc._n etc._n it_o may_v perhaps_o be_v object_v that_o clement_n ascribe_v not_o the_o corinthian_a schism_n to_o that_o one_o generous_a person_n only_o but_o to_o some_o misunderstanding_n between_o the_o people_n and_o the_o presbyter_n some_o of_o the_o latter_a be_v not_o suffer_v to_o continue_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o ministry_n any_o long_o at_o corinth_n so_o it_o be_v intimate_v pag._n 58._o in_o these_o word_n it_o will_v be_v no_o little_a sin_n in_o we_o to_o cast_v off_o those_o presbyter_n or_o bishop_n who_o have_v discharge_v the_o office_n of_o their_o ministry_n ãâã_d and_o without_o blame_n for_o we_o see_v that_o they_o have_v remove_v some_o presbyter_n who_o conversation_n be_v laudable_a and_o
short_a period_n express_v himself_o both_o way_n as_o well_o in_o the_o bipartite_a as_o in_o the_o tripartite_a form_n therefore_o he_o must_v sure_o be_v understand_v to_o respect_v one_o and_o the_o same_o age_n in_o the_o same_o sentence_n if_o he_o have_v therein_o a_o eye_n unto_o the_o apostolical_a age_n blundel_n distinction_n be_v of_o no_o advantage_n to_o our_o adversary_n still_o upon_o that_o supposition_n there_o be_v three_o order_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n if_o he_o refer_v to_o his_o own_o age_n then_o although_o he_o comprehend_v they_o in_o two_o word_n yet_o be_v there_o three_o order_n of_o minister_n in_o the_o church_n 3._o ignatius_n can_v with_o no_o colour_n of_o reason_n be_v suppose_v to_o look_v to_o any_o other_o than_o the_o apostolical_a age_n wherein_o he_o live_v a_o great_a while_n and_o be_v martyr_a but_o about_o ten_o year_n after_o the_o apostle_n st._n john_n his_o three_o order_n therefore_o bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n be_v not_o strict_o speak_v of_o ecclesiastical_a but_o apostolical_a constitution_n by_o consequence_n blundel_n device_n make_v nothing_o for_o the_o identity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n 4._o it_o no_o manner_n of_o way_n relieve_v our_o adversary_n from_o our_o argument_n ground_v on_o the_o scripture_n which_o use_v the_o dichotomy_n and_o in_o it_o comprehend_v the_o three_o jewish_a order_n the_o high-priest_n the_o second_o priest_n and_o the_o levite_n in_o conformity_n whereunto_o the_o father_n may_v be_v think_v to_o have_v sum_v up_o the_o christian_a minister_n in_o two_o word_n also_o if_o it_o be_v ask_v with_o what_o congruity_n can_v the_o father_n so_o often_o fall_v into_o this_o dichotomy_n and_o yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n believe_v the_o three_o order_n to_o be_v by_o apostolical_a constitution_n the_o answer_n be_v easy_a except_o the_o rule_v part_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o church_n government_n and_o discipline_n otherwise_o the_o presbyter_n be_v and_o still_o be_v among_o we_o as_o it_o be_v equal_a to_o bishop_n sc_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n wherein_o they_o officiate_v as_o effectual_o as_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o for_o which_o reason_n they_o may_v be_v account_v the_o bishop_n peer_n and_o both_o not_o unfit_o call_v by_o one_o common_a name_n even_o as_o i_o before_o observe_v from_o st._n chrysoftom_n presbyter_n be_v comprehend_v in_o deacon_n as_o agree_v in_o some_o thing_n common_a to_o both_o 8._o and_o in_o the_o last_o place_n that_o which_o i_o insist_v and_o chief_o rely_v upon_o as_o a_o just_a answer_n unto_o the_o argument_n ground_v on_o st._n clement_n epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n be_v this_o that_o it_o be_v draw_v only_o from_o a_o negative_a clement_n not_o express_o mention_v the_o three_o distinct_a order_n which_o i_o contend_v be_v unconcluding_a i_o have_v oft_o enough_o produce_v instance_n out_o of_o scripture_n of_o the_o apostle_n not_o constant_o remember_v all_o the_o church-officer_n in_o their_o epistle_n and_o frequent_o mention_v none_o at_o all_o to_o keep_v myself_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o my_o present_a province_n the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n ignatius_n who_o great_a design_n in_o all_o his_o other_o epistle_n be_v to_o assert_v and_o vindicate_v the_o three_o order_n of_o bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n pass_v they_o all_o over_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n but_o it_o be_v no_o good_a consequence_n that_o therefore_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o in_o it_o so_o much_o as_o a_o presbyter_n or_o a_o deacon_n it_o may_v far_o be_v consider_v that_o much_o more_o a_o argument_n deduce_v from_o a_o author_n silence_n can_v be_v of_o no_o force_n when_o there_o be_v other_o positive_a and_o express_v witness_n attest_v the_o truth_n bring_v into_o question_n if_o a_o witness_n depose_v that_o john_n and_o richard_n be_v engage_v in_o the_o murder_n of_o robert_n this_o shall_v not_o quit_v thomas_n if_o another_o witness_n swear_v he_o also_o have_v a_o hand_n in_o the_o assassination_n clement_n mention_n bishop_n or_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n not_o so_o much_o as_o intimate_v that_o there_o be_v a_o prelate_n at_o corinth_n let_v that_o now_o be_v suppose_v but_o his_o contemporary_a ignatius_n have_v again_o and_o again_o testify_v that_o there_o be_v bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n in_o several_a church_n to_o which_o he_o write_v and_o particular_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n that_o there_o be_v these_o three_o distinct-officer_n throughout_o the_o world_n as_o far_o as_o he_o know_v and_o by_o consequence_n at_o corinth_n though_o clement_n for_o reason_n best_o know_v unto_o himself_o think_v not_o fit_a to_o mention_v the_o prelate_n nor_o can_v it_o with_o reason_n be_v plead_v that_o ignatius_n be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o government_n of_o this_o apostolical_a church_n of_o corinth_n as_o i_o suppose_v it_o will_v be_v grant_v from_o the_o whole_a than_o i_o gather_v that_o clement_n silence_n be_v no_o good_a proof_n that_o there_o be_v no_o prelatical_a bishop_n at_o corinth_n because_o his_o contemporary_a be_v positive_a there_o be_v which_o now_o bring_v i_o to_o the_o testimony_n of_o ignatim_o in_o this_o controversy_n chap._n ii_o ignatius_n his_o testimony_n ignatius_n clement_n contemporary_a the_o disciple_n and_o friend_n of_o st._n john_n the_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n of_o jesus_n christ_n have_v so_o plain_o so_o full_o and_o so_o often_o in_o his_o epistle_n give_v in_o his_o testimony_n unto_o the_o three_o distinct_a order_n of_o church-officer_n bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n and_o i_o have_v so_o exact_o and_o at_o length_n cite_v his_o word_n in_o t._n n._n p._n 59_o 60_o 67_o 68_o 69_o 70_o 71_o 72_o and_o 73._o that_o one_o may_v just_o wonder_v this_o truth_n shall_v any_o long_o be_v call_v into_o question_n after_o so_o clear_a evidence_n produce_v mr._n o._n have_v sundry_a thing_n to_o throw_v in_o our_o way_n which_o i_o must_v consider_v in_o their_o order_n and_o remove_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a 1._o mr._n o._n will_v bring_v the_o credit_n of_o these_o epistle_n into_o 110._o suspicion_n as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o agree_v among_o the_o learned_a whether_o they_o be_v genuine_a that_o daille_n endeavour_v to_o prove_v they_o spurious_a and_o la_fw-fr roque_n with_o great_a judgement_n reply_v unto_o the_o learned_a bp._n of_o chester_n dr._n pearson_n who_o have_v endeavour_v to_o confute_v mounseur_fw-fr daille_n in_o his_o vindiciae_fw-la epist_n s._n ignatii_n ans._n the_o genuineness_n of_o these_o epistle_n be_v never_o question_v by_o any_o learned_a man_n that_o i_o know_v of_o since_o dr._n pearson_n publish_v his_o vindication_n of_o they_o save_v by_o mounseur_fw-fr la_fw-fr roque_n who_o attempt_v to_o support_v mounseur_fw-fr daille_n but_o without_o success_n i_o never_o hear_v he_o gain_v any_o one_o proselyte_n it_o be_v confess_v i_o have_v not_o read_v that_o french_a gentleman_n book_n the_o reason_n whereof_o be_v that_o when_o dr._n pearson_n be_v by_o his_o friend_n deal_v with_o to_o make_v a_o reply_n to_o la_fw-fr roque_n the_o wise_a man_n answer_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o it_o that_o la_fw-fr roque_n have_v advance_v nothing_o of_o moment_n against_o his_o vindiciae_fw-la and_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o st._n ignatius_n epistle_n remain_v still_o unquestionable_a this_o i_o remember_v very_o well_o be_v the_o common_a discourse_n among_o we_o many_o year_n ago_o in_o the_o university_n of_o cambridge_n and_o the_o event_n confirm_v it_o no_o body_n now_o dare_v to_o deny_v they_o not_o the_o dissenter_n themselves_o though_o sometime_o in_o general_n they_o will_v have_v they_o pass_v for_o uncertain_a it_o be_v not_o intend_v hereby_o to_o disparage_v mounseur_fw-fr la_fw-fr roque_n in_o the_o least_o his_o misfortune_n be_v that_o he_o undertake_v the_o defence_n of_o a_o ill_a cause_n against_o a_o potent_a adversary_n in_o such_o a_o case_n the_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o world_n must_v be_v force_v to_o retire_v with_o dishonour_n and_o disappointment_n but_o for_o mr._n o._n to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o agree_v among_o the_o learned_a etc._n etc._n when_o one_o only_o learned_a man_n be_v to_o be_v find_v that_o stand_v out_o be_v too_o much_o i_o think_v to_o offer_v unto_o the_o world_n as_o if_o the_o balance_n be_v even_o and_o the_o learned_a equal_o divide_v about_o the_o genuineness_n of_o ignatius_n epistle_n i_o be_o persuade_v mr._n o._n himself_o believe_v what_o bishop_n pearson_n have_v prove_v they_o to_o be_v though_o he_o will_v ãâã_d that_o they_o be_v yet_o doubtful_a but_o enough_o of_o this_o 2._o mr._n o._n further_o contend_v there_o be_v strong_a presumption_n 29._o that_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n consist_v of_o no_o more_o member_n than_o can_v ordinary_o meet_v in_o one_o place_n and_o have_v but_o one_o altar_n
at_o which_o the_o congregation_n ordinary_o receive_v the_o lord's-supper_n ãâã_d and_o again_o that_o ignatius_n bishop_n be_v but_o the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o a_o church_n which_o ordinary_o assemble_v together_o for_o personal_a communion_n that_o the_o bishop_n diocese_n in_o ignatius_n time_n and_o long_o after_o exceed_v not_o the_o bound_n of_o a_o modern_a parish_n final_o up_o and_o down_o in_o the_o defence_n that_o as_o the_o presbyter_n can_v do_v nothing_o without_o the_o bishop_n so_o neither_o can_v the_o bishop_n without_o their_o presbytery_n which_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o their_o parity_n and_o that_o as_o elsewhere_o he_o and_o general_o all_o other_o dissenter_n make_v ignatius_n bishop_n they_o be_v but_o the_o moderator_n in_o the_o presbytery_n and_o those_o not_o for_o life_n neither_o but_o temporary_a only_o as_o many_o of_o they_o have_v affirm_v ans._n the_o presumption_n mr._n o._n mean_n be_v those_o he_o speak_v of_o in_o his_o plea_n and_o defence_n as_o i_o suppose_v ground_v upon_o some_o slight_a passage_n in_o the_o epistle_n as_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o such_o like_a of_o which_o enough_o have_v already_o be_v say_v unless_o their_o sense_n can_v be_v more_o certain_o determine_v for_o he_o and_o i_o may_v talk_v and_o dispute_v till_o dooms-day_n that_o thus_o or_o thus_o those_o phrase_n may_v or_o aught_o to_o signify_v and_o at_o last_o leave_v the_o matter_n as_o we_o find_v it_o undecided_a and_o every_o man_n to_o choose_v what_o sense_n he_o please_v as_o his_o interest_n sway_v he_o or_o as_o his_o affection_n and_o adherence_n to_o a_o cause_n shall_v bias_n he_o let_v then_o these_o thing_n pass_v the_o answer_n which_o i_o make_v shall_v be_v to_o lay_v before_o the_o reader_n some_o reason_n as_o will_v i_o hope_v evince_v the_o truth_n and_o prevail_v with_o he_o to_o embrace_v the_o sense_n of_o this_o father_n which_o we_o have_v already_o give_v and_o to_o believe_v that_o ignatius_n his_o bishop_n be_v true_o prelatical_a and_o diocesan_n and_o 1._o be_v it_o as_o mr._n o._n affirm_v yet_o the_o dissenter_n be_v universal_o depart_v even_o from_o this_o form_n of_o church_n government_n what_o one_o congregation_n among_o they_o have_v its_o bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n and_o the_o bishop_n the_o supreme_a manager_n without_o who_o nothing_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v but_o 2._o whereas_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o ignatius_n his_o bishop_n be_v but_o the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o a_o church_n that_o be_v the_o moderator_n of_o the_o presbytery_n this_o can_v be_v if_o we_o will_v allow_v ignatius_n to_o have_v be_v a_o man_n of_o common_a sense_n and_o understanding_n for_o what_o more_o absurd_a and_o impertinent_a can_v have_v be_v write_v than_o all_o along_o in_o these_o seven_o epistle_n to_o distinguish_v so_o careful_o between_o the_o bishop_n and_o his_o presbyter_n and_o yet_o all_o the_o while_n the_o bishop_n be_v but_o one_o of_o the_o presbyter_n set_v up_o only_o to_o moderate_a in_o their_o presbytery_n and_o debate_n for_o order_n sake_n or_o how_o can_v ignatius_n direct_v as_o mr._n o._n plead_v that_o the_o presbyter_n shall_v do_v nothing_o without_o the_o bishop_n nor_o the_o bishop_n without_o the_o presbyter_n except_o he_o think_v the_o bishop_n a_o distinct_a species_n of_o officer_n from_o the_o presbyter_n and_o the_o presbyter_n from_o the_o bishop_n the_o bishop_n then_o and_o the_o presbyter_n must_v needs_o be_v two_o different_a order_n in_o ignatius_n opinion_n it_o be_v object_v that_o since_o the_o obligation_n be_v reciprocal_a i._n e._n the_o bishop_n can_v do_v nothing_o without_o the_o presbyter_n as_o the_o presbyter_n can_v not_o act_n without_o the_o bishop_n the_o bishop_n therefore_o have_v no_o pre-eminence_n above_o the_o presbyter_n i_o answer_v 1._o that_o however_o the_o bishop_n must_v be_v allow_v to_o have_v be_v more_o than_o a_o ordinary_a presbyter_n yea_o at_o least_o equal_a to_o the_o whole_a presbytery_n and_o to_o have_v himself_o make_v a_o distinct_a order_n from_o it_o the_o very_a reciprocal_a obligation_n here_o object_v of_o necessity_n imply_v as_o much_o 2._o not_o only_o so_o but_o as_o the_o king_n be_v the_o supreme_a monarch_n of_o this_o nation_n and_o more_o than_o the_o lord_n or_o commons_o though_o he_o can_v enact_v no_o law_n without_o the_o parliament_n as_o the_o parliament_n can_v without_o he_o as_o the_o king_n i_o say_v make_v a_o distinct_a state_n of_o the_o realm_n this_o i_o think_v mr._n o._n will_v grant_v so_o be_v ignatius_n his_o bishop_n an_z officer_z different_z from_o the_o presbyter_n if_o the_o father_n speak_v sense_n in_o his_o epistle_n and_o superior_a to_o they_o if_o it_o be_v inquire_v wherein_o can_v his_o supremacy_n consist_v i_o reply_v that_o after_o any_o law_n and_o constitution_n be_v resolve_v on_o between_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o presbytery_n or_o whatever_o be_v know_v to_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n he_o have_v the_o care_n and_o oversight_n to_o see_v they_o execute_v and_o in_o matter_n of_o great_a moment_n he_o general_o be_v the_o executor_n of_o they_o himself_o in_o person_n as_o the_o king_n be_v in_o the_o secular_a affair_n of_o this_o nation_n for_o as_o the_o king_n do_v nothing_o that_o be_v make_v no_o new_a law_n without_o the_o parliament_n yet_o he_o see_v to_o the_o execution_n of_o they_o after_o they_o be_v once_o make_v and_o of_o all_o other_o the_o ancient_a law_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o that_o without_o the_o parliament_n so_o the_o bishop_n though_o he_o do_v nothing_o that_o be_v make_v no_o new_a constitution_n without_o the_o presbytery_n yet_o it_o be_v he_o who_o have_v the_o care_n of_o their_o execution_n and_o of_o the_o more_o ancient_a and_o apostolical_a decree_n and_o tradition_n it_o must_v necessary_o have_v be_v so_o if_o ignatius_n his_o epistle_n carry_v any_o sense_n in_o they_o but_o perhaps_o a_o positive_a proof_n of_o all_o this_o will_v be_v demand_v from_o i_o out_o of_o the_o epistle_n to_o this_o purpose_n then_o observe_v 1._o what_o ignatius_n write_v to_o the_o ephesian_n who_o the_o master_n jesus_n christ_n send_v unto_o the_o administration_n of_o his_o own_o household_n the_o church_n we_o ought_v so_o to_o receive_v he_o as_o we_o will_v receive_v the_o master_n that_o send_v he_o it_o be_v then_o manifest_a we_o ought_v to_o look_v upon_o the_o bishop_n as_o we_o ought_v to_o look_v upon_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n here_o it_o appear_v that_o ignatius_n account_v the_o bishop_n to_o be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o administrator_n of_o the_o church_n or_o household_n 2._o that_o though_o ignatius_n exhort_v the_o church_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o and_o obey_v the_o bishop_n and_o the_o presbyter_n also_o and_o so_o he_o do_v to_o the_o deacon_n too_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o trallian_n philadelphian_o and_o smyrnean_n yet_o he_o never_o thus_o prescribe_v obedience_n to_o the_o presbyter_n or_o the_o presbytery_n only_o or_o without_o mention_v the_o bishop_n with_o and_o before_o '_o they_o but_o he_o frequent_o admonish_v the_o church_n to_o obey_v the_o bishop_n without_o express_a mention_n of_o the_o presbyter_n 3._o that_o though_o he_o advise_v the_o church_n to_o be_v subject_a unto_o the_o bishop_n and_o presbytery_n and_o to_o the_o deacon_n also_o yet_o he_o never_o advise_v they_o express_o to_o do_v nothing_o without_o the_o presbyter_n or_o presbytery_n beside_o mr._n oh_o saying_n that_o the_o bishop_n can_v do_v nothing_o without_o the_o presbyter_n be_v without_o ground_n in_o these_o epistle_n it_o be_v never_o say_v do_v nothing_o without_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o presbytery_n much_o less_o simple_o do_v nothing_o without_o the_o presbyter_n 4._o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v forget_v what_o ignatius_n take_v special_a notice_n of_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o magnesian_o you_o must_v not_o abuse_v or_o despise_v 31._o the_o youth_n of_o our_o bishop_n demas_n but_o pay_v he_o all_o reverence_n as_o i_o know_v the_o holy_a presbyter_n do_v who_o look_v on_o the_o ordinance_n the_o bishop_n as_o i_o take_v it_o or_o the_o episcopacy_n not_o as_o a_o new_a device_n but_o as_o wise_a man_n they_o submit_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o lord_n or_o as_o the_o institution_n of_o jesus_n christ._n so_o then_o the_o presbyter_n be_v subject_a and_o obedient_a to_o the_o bishop_n but_o where_o will_v it_o be_v find_v that_o the_o bishop_n be_v admonish_v or_o advise_v to_o obey_v the_o presbyter_n 5._o when_o ignatius_n be_v in_o bond_n ravish_v from_o his_o people_n or_o church_n h_n thus_o write_v to_o the_o roman_n which_o the_o church_n in_o syria_n in_o my_o stead_n now_o ãâã_d the_o lord_n only_o for_o its_o shepherd_n but_o though_o the_o church_n of_o syria_n have_v lose_v its_o bishop_n and_o be_v then_o at_o
present_a without_o one_o yet_o sure_o they_o have_v not_o lose_v all_o their_o presbyter_n and_o if_o the_o church_n of_o syria_n retain_v yet_o her_o presbyter_n as_o by_o the_o quiet_a that_o church_n even_o then_o have_v must_v be_v think_v they_o 45._o may_v easy_o have_v make_v to_o themselves_o a_o chief_a pastor_n or_o moderator_n out_o of_o their_o remain_a number_n and_o not_o be_v destitute_a of_o a_o shepherd_n as_o ignatius_n bewail_v whole_a loss_n or_o absence_n at_o present_a can_v only_o be_v supply_v by_o the_o chief_a shepherd_n and_o bishop_n of_o their_o soul_n here_o by_o the_o way_n the_o conceit_n of_o a_o temporary_a moderator_n must_v be_v throw_v out_o of_o door_n ignatius_n be_v bishop_n of_o syria_n for_o life_n nor_o can_v they_o have_v another_o whilst_o he_o be_v live_v though_o absent_a in_o bond_n this_o be_v the_o reason_n he_o so_o passionate_o resent_v the_o unhappiness_n of_o that_o church_n of_o syria_n that_o they_o be_v force_v to_o be_v without_o a_o bishop_n which_o they_o need_v not_o to_o have_v be_v if_o another_o ãâã_d pastor_n and_o moderator_n may_v have_v be_v constitute_v in_o his_o absence_n and_o life-time_n which_o by_o the_o presbyterian_a principle_n may_v easy_o have_v be_v do_v 6._o ignatius_n over_o and_o over_o prescribe_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v do_v nothing_o without_o the_o bishop_n and_o not_o only_o so_o in_o these_o general_n term_n which_o haply_o will_v be_v understand_v of_o his_o preside_v in_o presbytery_n and_o moderate_v in_o their_o debate_n for_o order_n sake_n but_o also_o in_o particular_a that_o marriage_n shall_v not_o be_v celebrate_v the_o lord's-supper_n shall_v not_o be_v administer_v nor_o baptism_n give_v unto_o believer_n without_o he_o without_o his_o appointment_n and_o approbation_n this_o show_v that_o ignatius_n his_o bishop_n be_v not_o only_o the_o precedent_n in_o their_o synod_n and_o deliberation_n but_o the_o supreme_a director_n of_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o law_n and_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n without_o who_o leave_n the_o ãâã_d can_v not_o marry_v nor_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n it_o be_v all_o we_o desire_v of_o the_o dissenter_n if_o we_o may_v prevail_v with_o they_o that_o they_o will_v not_o presume_v to_o do_v any_o thing_n without_o the_o bishop_n and_o particular_o not_o to_o ordain_v presbyter_n last_o although_o he_o often_o call_v the_o presbytery_n the_o council_n of_o god_n and_o college_n of_o the_o apostle_n yet_o to_o keep_v alibi_fw-la up_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n he_o then_o at_o the_o same_o time_n resemble_v he_o unto_o god_n himself_o or_o to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n if_o then_o god_n the_o father_n be_v superior_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o if_o jesus_n christ_n must_v be_v confess_v great_a than_o the_o council_n of_o the_o apostle_n so_o be_v the_o bishop_n than_o the_o presbyter_n or_o presbytery_n in_o the_o opinion_n of_o this_o father_n and_o according_a to_o the_o analogy_n and_o resemblance_n in_o this_o author_n from_o the_o whole_a it_o be_v i_o hope_v clear_a to_o a_o demonstration_n that_o ignatius_n his_o bishop_n be_v more_o than_o what_o mr._n o._n mean_n by_o chief_a pastor_n or_o moderator_n in_o their_o assemble_v pro_fw-la tempore_fw-la they_o be_v prelatical_a and_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o their_o office_n superior_a to_o presbyter_n it_o remain_v that_o we_o show_v they_o be_v diocesan_n bishop_n that_o be_v have_v the_o oversight_n of_o more_o than_o one_o congregation_n for_o this_o be_v another_o objection_n mr._n o._n have_v raise_v against_o our_o establish_a diocesan_n episcopacy_n for_o proof_n hereof_o let_v it_o be_v remember_v 1._o that_o if_o there_o be_v not_o in_o ignatius_n his_o time_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la diocesan_n bishop_n they_o be_v at_o least_o form_v and_o design_v for_o such_o when_o ever_o the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n shall_v be_v increase_v it_o have_v already_o be_v observe_v that_o titus_n leave_v by_o st._n paul_n in_o crete_n to_o govern_v that_o church_n be_v particular_o direct_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o ordain_v elder_n in_o every_o city_n in_o all_o or_o as_o many_o city_n as_o shall_v afterward_o receive_v the_o faith_n or_o in_o order_n to_o convert_v more_o of_o '_o they_o i_o gather_v hence_o that_o titus_n be_v intend_v to_o be_v the_o ruler_n of_o all_o these_o congregation_n let_v mr._n o._n make_v he_o a_o bishop_n or_o a_o archbishop_n it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o i_o he_o be_v constitute_v to_o be_v ruler_n over_o many_o city_n and_o congregation_n thus_o at_o least_o it_o be_v i_o conceive_v in_o these_o asiatic_a church_n to_o who_o ignatius_n write_v as_o will_v hence_o appear_v viz._n that_o every_o of_o these_o church_n be_v furnish_v with_o a_o prelatical_a bishop_n with_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n under_o he_o to_o what_o purpose_n else_o so_o many_o presbyter_n and_o such_o distinct_a kind_n of_o order_n one_o or_o two_o at_o most_o may_v have_v suffice_v they_o at_o present_a especial_o if_o it_o be_v consider_v that_o the_o christian_n at_o that_o time_n be_v not_o in_o so_o flourish_v a_o condition_n as_o to_o be_v able_a to_o maintain_v so_o many_o church-officer_n for_o one_o congregation_n nor_o be_v there_o business_n enough_o to_o employ_v they_o all_o in_o the_o service_n of_o that_o one_o congregation_n it_o be_v then_o most_o rational_a to_o believe_v that_o so_o many_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n be_v provide_v at_o least_o for_o carry_v on_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o infidel_n and_o multiply_v they_o into_o several_a congregation_n but_o if_o every_o congregation_n must_v have_v have_v or_o be_v intend_v to_o have_v a_o bishop_n we_o shall_v doubtléss_v have_v read_v of_o bishop_n ex_fw-la gr_n at_o ephesus_n as_o well_o as_o presbyter_n in_o the_o plural_a let_v we_o then_o suppose_v what_o be_v most_o reasonable_a to_o admit_v that_o some_o at_o least_o of_o these_o church_n have_v be_v in_o ignatius_n time_n multiply_v into_o several_a congregation_n yet_o still_o there_o be_v but_o one_o bishop_n i_o do_v not_o remember_v that_o ever_o we_o read_v of_o two_o bishop_n of_o any_o one_o city_n in_o all_o antiquity_n except_v when_o the_o christian_n of_o that_o city_n be_v harrass_v and_o disturb_v with_o schism_n and_o division_n now_o who_o can_v imagine_v that_o no_o one_o city_n in_o the_o world_n even_o in_o ignatius_n time_n 97._o ever_o have_v more_o believer_n in_o and_o near_o it_o than_o do_v assemble_v for_o divine_a worship_n in_o one_o place_n especial_o in_o those_o time_n of_o persecution_n when_o the_o christian_n skulk_v and_o can_v not_o with_o safety_n meet_v in_o great_a number_n nor_o have_v room_n capacious_a enough_o and_o therefore_o canton_v themselves_o into_o several_a meeting_n let_v any_o one_o put_v all_o these_o thing_n together_o and_o impartial_o weigh_v they_o and_o he_o will_v not_o easy_o grant_v that_o paradox_n that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o than_o one_o single_a congregation_n in_o any_o city_n nor_o will_v he_o make_v any_o scruple_n to_o believe_v that_o ignatius_n bishop_n be_v at_o least_o design_v to_o preside_v over_o several_a presbyter_n and_o congregation_n last_o the_o negative_a that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o congregation_n in_o any_o of_o they_o have_v not_o be_v prove_v neither_o can_v by_o any_o express_a testimony_n i_o conÄeive_v it_o behoove_v our_o dissenter_n to_o make_v this_o out_o before_o they_o can_v thorough_o justify_v their_o congregational_a church_n but_o let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o particular_n and_o therefore_o 2._o note_v that_o ignatius_n style_v himself_o bishop_n of_o syria_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n now_o how_o large_a a_o tract_n syria_n contain_v i_o need_v not_o say_v neither_o will_v i_o affirm_v he_o be_v bishop_n of_o all_o syria_n take_v in_o its_o utmost_a latitude_n but_o see_v he_o call_v himself_o and_o be_v bishop_n of_o syria_n it_o be_v more_o than_o of_o the_o bare_a city_n antioch_n as_o any_o one_o will_v confess_v his_o episcopal_a power_n must_v have_v extend_v unto_o some_o considerable_a compass_n of_o ground_n in_o the_o adjacent_a part_n of_o the_o country_n else_o it_o have_v be_v foolish_a to_o have_v pretend_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o syria_n when_o he_o be_v only_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n and_o of_o one_o congregation_n there_o will_v any_o one_o then_o suffer_v himself_o to_o believe_v ãâã_d be_v bishop_n but_o of_o one_o congregation_n only_o it_o can_v enter_v into_o my_o head_n so_o much_o as_o to_o think_v it_o possible_a because_o it_o must_v be_v suppose_v there_o be_v congregation_n in_o syria_n as_o well_o as_o at_o antioch_n in_o country_n as_o ãâã_d as_o city_n 3._o i_o reckon_v also_o that_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n consist_v of_o more_o than_o one_o congregation_n and_o my_o reason_n be_v 1._o as_o i_o argue_v in_o t._n n._n p._n 145._o
from_o act._n 19_o 10._o that_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n take_v in_o all_o asia_n all_z they_o of_o asia_n hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n from_o the_o mouth_n of_o paul_n who_o then_o reside_v at_o ephesus_n and_o there_o preach_v the_o gospel_n first_o in_o the_o synagogue_n v._n 8._o then_o in_o the_o school_n of_o tyrannus_n v._n 9_o asia_n i_o expound_v asia_n the_o proper_a but_o i_o will_v crave_v leave_v a_o little_a to_o mend_v that_o gloss_n understand_v it_o only_o of_o some_o of_o the_o near_a part_n of_o it_o adjoin_v unto_o ephesus_n which_o belong_v ùnto_o asia_n the_o proper_a and_o whereas_o the_o historian_n express_v himself_o thus_o large_o all_o asia_n and_o yet_o intend_v as_o i_o suppose_v only_o the_o neigbhour_a part_n of_o it_o we_o need_v not_o much_o admire_v at_o this_o since_o it_o be_v so_o say_v to_o aggrandise_n and_o magnify_v the_o success_n and_o increase_v of_o the_o gospel_n we_o have_v a_o instance_n of_o this_o kind_n of_o expression_n in_o the_o chapter_n before_o we_o act._n 19_o 27._o where_o the_o mad_a and_o superstitious_a people_n of_o ephesus_n glory_n of_o their_o goddess_n diana_n that_o all_o asia_n and_o the_o world_n worship_v she_o and_o yet_o v_o 34._o she_o be_v call_v diana_n of_o the_o ephesian_n at_o least_o she_o be_v not_o worship_v all_o the_o world_n over_o strict_o speak_v so_o i_o read_v jo._n 12._o 19_o behold_v the_o world_n be_v go_v after_o he_o and_o yet_o only_a some_o number_n of_o the_o jew_n follow_v christ._n in_o short_a by_o all_o asia_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v the_o ephesian_a asia_n or_o that_o part_n which_o adjoin_v pretty_a close_o unto_o ephesus_n whither_o their_o secular_a business_n oft_o draw_v the_o country_n people_n their_o curiosity_n first_o lead_v they_o unto_o the_o synagogue_n and_o school_n of_o tyrannus_n and_o so_o they_o become_v acquaint_v with_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o embrace_v it_o of_o these_o country_n convert_v we_o read_v in_o this_o chapter_n v_o 31._o and_o certain_a of_o the_o chief_a of_o asia_n which_o be_v his_o friend_n send_v unto_o he_o etc._n etc._n nor_o be_v it_o a_o unusual_a thing_n to_o call_v the_o part_n of_o a_o country_n near_o unto_o the_o principal_a city_n by_o the_o general_a name_n of_o the_o province_n whereof_o it_o be_v but_o a_o little_a member_n thus_o as_o be_v before_o observe_v ignatius_n style_v himself_o bishop_n of_o syria_n not_o of_o all_o syria_n proper_o so_o call_v as_o will_v i_o hope_v be_v grant_v i_o but_o of_o the_o country_n round_o about_o antioch_n which_o be_v within_o the_o limit_n of_o syria_n so_o than_o if_o all_o they_o which_o dwell_v in_o asia_n in_o the_o adjacent_a part_n of_o ephesus_n as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o city_n its_o self_n hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n both_o jew_n and_o greek_n v_o 10._o and_o this_o within_o the_o space_n of_o those_o two_o year_n the_o apostle_n remain_v at_o ephesus_n it_o must_v be_v allow_v that_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v too_o numerous_a to_o be_v contain_v within_o one_o single_a congregation_n and_o it_o be_v reasonable_a to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v some_o congregation_n in_o the_o ãâã_d especial_o in_o ignatius_n time_n which_o the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n in_o ordinary_a attend_v under_o the_o bishop_n if_o it_o be_v doubt_v whether_o these_o country_n proselyte_n or_o these_o country_n congregation_n be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n some_o reason_n or_o evidence_n to_o the_o contrary_n must_v be_v assign_v we_o read_v no_o where_o of_o any_o prelatical_a church_n which_o must_v be_v confess_v the_o form_n of_o church_n government_n thereabouts_o in_o ignatius_n time_n near_o ephesus_n than_o that_o at_o magnesia_n distant_a from_o ephesus_n about_o fourscore_o mile_n but_o that_o the_o country_n presbyter_n and_o congregation_n within_o the_o foresay_a tract_n do_v belong_v unto_o ephesus_n be_v most_o probable_a hence_o that_o the_o scripture_n all_o along_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o of_o asia_n as_o one_o and_o the_o same_o church_n act_v 20._o 18._o you_o know_v say_v he_o to_o the_o ephesian_a elder_n after_o what_o manner_n i_o have_v be_v with_o you_o from_o the_o first_o day_n that_o i_o come_v into_o asia_n act_n 19_o 31._o certain_a of_o the_o chief_a of_o asia_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 8._o we_o will_v not_o brethren_n have_v you_o ignorant_a of_o our_o trouble_n which_o come_v to_o we_o in_o asia_n act_n 20._o 16._o paul_n determine_v to_o sail_v by_o ephesus_n because_o he_o will_v not_o spend_v the_o time_n in_o asia_n these_o expression_n can_v never_o have_v drop_v from_o the_o holy_a penman_n except_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n have_v extend_v its_o self_n round_o about_o in_o the_o country_n of_o asia_n we_o read_v ãâã_d time_n that_o when_o st._n paul_n speak_v of_o the_o affair_n of_o corinth_n he_o use_v the_o word_n achaia_n whereof_o corinth_n be_v the_o principal_a city_n rom._n 15._o 26_o 16._o 6._o ãâã_d cor._n 16._o 15._o 2_o cor._n 9_o 2._o 1_o thes._n 1._o 7._o which_o be_v a_o evidence_n that_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n comprehend_v a_o good_a part_n of_o achaia_n from_o the_o whole_a i_o gather_v there_o must_v needs_o have_v be_v several_a congregation_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n even_o in_o st._n paul_n day_n much_o more_o in_o the_o day_n of_o ignatius_n and_o if_o so_o then_o onesimus_n be_v a_o diocesan_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n but_o second_o i_o also_o pretend_v to_o evince_v by_o a_o heap_n of_o argument_n 141._o collect_v from_o the_o form_n of_o church_n government_n draw_v up_o by_o the_o assembly_n of_o divine_n and_o vindicated_n by_o the_o london_n minister_n after_o in_o their_o jus_fw-la divinum_fw-la ministerii_fw-la anglicani_n that_o in_o st._n paul_n time_n there_o be_v several_a congregation_n in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n mr._n o._n who_o tell_v his_o reader_n somewhere_o in_o his_o defence_n that_o he_o have_v follow_v and_o answer_v i_o paragraph_v by_o paragraph_n have_v make_v a_o shift_n to_o skip_v over_o these_o proof_n they_o come_v too_o near_o the_o quick_a i_o shall_v be_v force_v therefore_o for_o that_o reason_n and_o the_o more_o strong_o to_o establish_v my_o position_n to_o repeat_v they_o once_o more_o and_o so_o dismiss_v the_o epistle_n of_o ignatius_n the_o assembly_n and_o the_o london_n divine_v undertake_v to_o evince_v by_o scripture_n that_o even_o in_o the_o day_n of_o st._n paul_n there_o be_v several_a congregation_n in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o argue_v as_o follow_v the_o number_n of_o prophet_n and_o teacher_n at_o ephesus_n be_v many_o paul_n continue_v there_o two_o year_n and_o three_o month_n settle_v thereabouts_o twelve_o disciple_n who_o prophesy_v act._n 19_o 1._o 6_o 7._o how_o shall_v these_o thirteen_o minister_n be_v employ_v if_o there_o be_v not_o many_o congregation_n compare_v also_o act._n 20._o 17_o 18_o 36_o 37._o where_n it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o bishop_n or_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n that_o paul_n ãâã_d down_o and_o pray_v with_o they_o all_o and_o they_o all_o weep_v sore_o here_o be_v a_o good_a number_n imply_v the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n also_o be_v give_v unto_o all_o these_o twelve_o prophet_n act._n 19_o 6_o 7._o to_o what_o end_n if_o they_o have_v not_o several_a congregation_n to_o speak_v unto_o in_o these_o several_a tongue_n the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n must_v needs_o be_v great_a at_o ephesus_n for_o first_o why_o shall_v paul_n who_o have_v universal_a commission_n to_o plant_v church_n in_o all_o the_o world_n stay_v about_o two_o year_n at_o ephesus_n if_o no_o more_o have_v be_v convert_v there_o than_o to_o make_v up_o one_o single_a congregation_n act._n 19_o 8_o 10._o during_o this_o space_n second_o all_o that_o dwell_v in_o asia_n usual_o meet_v at_o ephesus_n for_o worship_n hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n both_o jew_n and_o greek_n act._n 19_o 10._o at_o the_o knowledge_n of_o paul_n miracle_n three_o fear_n fall_v upon_o all_o the_o jew_n and_o greek_n dwell_v at_o ephesus_n and_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v magnify_v act._n 19_o 17._o many_o of_o the_o believe_v four_a come_v and_o confess_v and_o show_v their_o deed_n v_o 18._o whereby_o be_v intimate_v that_o more_o do_v believe_v than_o do_v thus_o five_o many_o also_o of_o they_o that_o use_v curious_a art_n bring_v their_o book_n together_o and_o burn_v they_o before_o all_o man_n and_o they_o count_v the_o price_n of_o they_o and_o find_v it_o fifty_o thousand_o piece_n of_o silver_n this_o they_o will_v never_o have_v do_v public_o if_o the_o major_a part_n or_o atlea_v a_o very_a great_a and_o considerable_a part_n of_o the_o city_n have_v not_o embrace_v the_o
faith_n that_o city_n be_v so_o furious_o zealous_a in_o their_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n so_o mighty_o grow_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o prevail_v act._n 19_o 19_o 20._o paul_n testify_v sixthly_a that_o at_o ephesus_n a_o great_a door_n and_o effectual_a be_v open_v unto_o he_o viz._n a_o most_o advantageous_a opportunity_n of_o bring_v in_o a_o mighty_a harvest_n of_o soul_n to_o christ._n 1_o cor._n 16._o 8_o 9_o put_v all_o these_o together_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a to_o imagine_v upon_o any_o solid_a ãâã_d that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o than_o one_o single_a congregation_n in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n these_o be_v the_o assembly_n and_o london_n minister_n argument_n which_o mr._n o._n may_v do_v well_o at_o his_o leisure_n to_o confute_v if_o he_o can_v if_o he_o can_v and_o as_o i_o be_o apt_a to_o suspect_v will_v not_o endeavour_v than_o my_o point_n be_v gain_v for_o if_o even_o in_o paul_n day_n there_o be_v many_o congregation_n in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n then_o much_o more_o in_o the_o time_n of_o ignatius_n the_o christian_a religion_n doubtless_o get_v ground_n continual_o in_o those_o part_n upon_o the_o gentile_a superstition_n as_o be_v manifest_a afterward_o from_o the_o church_n hereabout_o plant_v and_o mention_v in_o the_o revelation_n to_o which_o may_v be_v add_v magnesia_n and_o trallis_n out_o of_o ignatius_n epistle_n none_o of_o which_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o story_n of_o st._n paul_n except_o laodicea_n that_o i_o can_v remember_v now_o i_o will_v not_o contend_v that_o every_o of_o the_o church_n speak_v of_o in_o ignatius_n be_v ãâã_d diocesan_n not_o know_v how_o early_o they_o be_v plant_v but_o thus_o much_o i_o repeat_v again_o they_o be_v intend_v to_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o same_o model_n as_o ephefus_fw-la be_v as_o many_o be_v gather_v from_o the_o bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n fix_v in_o they_o which_o be_v as_o i_o may_v say_v the_o foundation_n of_o large_a church_n to_o consist_v of_o many_o congregation_n after_o more_o believer_n shall_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v add_v unto_o the_o church_n by_o this_o time_n i_o be_o in_o some_o hope_n it_o be_v undeniable_o prove_v 1._o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o those_o church_n to_o who_o ignatius_n write_v be_v prelatical_a that_o be_v be_v of_o a_o distinct_a species_n of_o church-officer_n and_o superior_a to_o the_o presbyter_n who_o be_v subject_a to_o they_o 2._o that_o they_o be_v likewise_o diocesan_n that_o be_v ruler_n over_o several_a congregation_n and_o over_o the_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n who_o ordinary_o minister_v in_o they_o from_o whence_o it_o must_v be_v conclude_v that_o the_o several_a passage_n of_o who_o sense_n mr._n o._n and_o i_o have_v dispute_v must_v be_v so_o expound_v as_o to_o be_v make_v agreeable_a to_o prelatical_a and_o diocesan_n episcopacy_n whether_o i_o have_v do_v it_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o reader_n if_o he_o please_v to_o consult_v the_o t._n n._n to_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d one_o altar_n very_o brief_o because_o he_o allege_v the_o testimony_n of_o no_o less_o a_o man_n than_o the_o famous_a mr._n mede_n for_o one_o numerical_a altar_n and_o not_o a_o specifical_a one_o as_o i_o expound_v it_o those_o word_n in_o ignatius_n epistle_n ad_fw-la magnes_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v think_v to_o favour_v one_o numerical_a altar_n which_o mr._n o._n contend_v for_o of_o which_o thus_o mr._n mede_n deliver_v himself_o here_o be_v a_o 414._o temple_n with_o a_o altar_n in_o it_o for_o in_o these_o primitive_a time_n they_o have_v but_o one_o altar_n in_o a_o church_n ans._n no_o more_o have_v we_o at_o this_o day_n though_o we_o have_v many_o church_n in_o a_o diocese_n yet_o every_o church_n have_v a_o altar_n and_o but_o one_o and_o so_o it_o may_v be_v at_o magnesia_n for_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v yet_o say_v to_o the_o contrary_n but_o mr._n mede_n go_v on_o it_o shall_v seem_v they_o have_v but_o one_o altar_n to_o a_o church_n take_v church_n for_o the_o company_n or_o corporation_n of_o the_o faithful_a unite_v under_o one_o bishop_n in_o the_o city_n or_o place_n where_o the_o bishop_n have_v his_o see_n or_o residence_n as_o the_o jew_n have_v one_o temple_n and_o one_o altar_n for_o the_o whole_a nation_n unite_v under_o one_o highpriest_n the_o author_n endeavour_v to_o confirm_v this_o as_o mr._n o._n true_o say_v out_o of_o justin_n martyr_n and_o st._n cyprian_n ans._n but_o still_o mr._n o._n misrepresent_v mr._n mede_n as_o if_o he_o be_v positive_a herein_o which_o be_v not_o so_o for_o 1._o mr._n mede_n lay_v down_o his_o position_n very_o cautious_o it_o shall_v seem_v intimate_v it_o be_v not_o very_o clear_a from_o those_o word_n of_o ignatius_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d for_o these_o word_n many_o imply_v only_o that_o every_o temple_n have_v but_o one_o altar_n as_o it_o be_v with_o we_o and_o yet_o there_o may_v be_v more_o temple_n than_o one_o in_o the_o bishop_n church_n and_o therefore_o more_o altar_n 2._o mr._n mede_n at_o the_o same_o time_n think_v the_o bishop_n church_n to_o have_v be_v diocesan_n for_o though_o they_o have_v not_o several_a altar_n yet_o they_o have_v several_a oratory_n or_o lesser_a temple_n say_v he_o as_o the_o jew_n have_v their_o synagogue_n so_o that_o the_o one_o numerical_a altar_n in_o the_o bishop_n church_n do_v not_o prove_v his_o church_n to_o consist_v of_o one_o congregation_n only_o in_o this_o learned_a gentleman_n opinion_n no_o more_o than_o the_o one_o altar_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o jew_n prove_v there_o be_v no_o synagogue_n 3._o mr._n mede_n to_o back_v his_o conjecture_n ground_v on_o ignatius_n produce_v two_o testimony_n the_o one_o out_o of_o justin_n the_o other_o out_o of_o cyprian_a and_o because_o he_o be_v not_o positive_a or_o certain_a of_o the_o conclusion_n he_o draw_v from_o they_o it_o will_v be_v no_o breach_n of_o modesty_n if_o i_o examine_v whether_o mr._n mede_n have_v well_o ground_v his_o conjecture_n on_o those_o two_o father_n justin_n martyr_n in_o his_o second_o apology_n thus_o write_v all_o that_o live_v in_o city_n or_o country_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d plural_a meet_v togeher_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o one_o place_n so_o mr._n mede_n to_o celebrate_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n this_o passage_n do_v not_o evince_v that_o the_o bishop_n church_n take_v for_o the_o whole_a company_n of_o believer_n unite_v under_o he_o have_v but_o one_o altar_n for_o which_o i_o offer_v the_o follow_a reason_n first_o because_o justin_n here_o intend_v not_o to_o give_v the_o gentile_n a_o account_n of_o the_o polity_n and_o government_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n nor_o how_o many_o sort_n of_o church-officer_n there_o be_v among_o they_o nor_o how_o many_o congregation_n under_o one_o bishop_n but_o of_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o divine_a worship_n and_o that_o not_o in_o one_o single_a congregation_n but_o in_o all_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o in_o all_o town_n and_o country_n throughout_o the_o world_n the_o christian_n belong_v to_o any_o one_o congregation_n or_o certain_a district_n meet_v together_o etc._n etc._n for_o all_o this_o there_o may_v be_v several_a congregation_n under_o one_o bishop_n if_o i_o for_o example_n shall_v write_v to_o a_o foreigner_n concern_v the_o manner_n of_o our_o worship_n here_o in_o england_n not_o intermeddle_v with_o the_o nature_n of_o our_o government_n may_v i_o not_o ought_v i_o not_o to_o say_v all_o that_o live_v in_o town_n or_o country_n or_o wherever_o there_o be_v a_o congregation_n meet_v together_o in_o one_o place_n though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n there_o be_v many_o church_n and_o many_o congregation_n unite_v under_o one_o bishop_n of_o the_o diocese_n which_o thus_o meet_v together_o for_o divine_a worship_n second_o whereas_o justin_n mention_n the_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o precedent_n who_o celebrate_v the_o divine_a worship_n in_o these_o single_a congregation_n there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o understanding_n he_o speak_v of_o the_o bishop_n only_o he_o may_v use_v one_o common_a title_n for_o both_o speak_v of_o the_o presbyter_n who_o preside_v over_o the_o divine_a worship_n in_o their_o particular_a congregation_n so_o mr._n mede_n expound_v antistes_fw-la afterward_o not_o the_o bishop_n only_o but_o the_o bishop_n or_o presbyter_n that_o be_v he_o who_o minister_n in_o the_o congregation_n at_o that_o time_n three_o suppose_v he_o mean_v the_o bishop_n he_o do_v but_o instance_n in_o and_o exemplify_v the_o christian_a worship_n by_o the_o most_o honourable_a assembly_n sc_n that_o wherein_o the_o bishop_n himself_o ordinary_o preside_v in_o person_n not_o exclude_v other_o wherein_o the_o presbyter_n minister_v four_o justin_n because_o he_o
write_v in_o the_o plural_a town_n and_o country_n and_o of_o christian_a worship_n in_o general_n or_o indefinite_o must_v here_o intend_v all_o christian_n assemble_v in_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o it_o may_v as_o well_o hence_o be_v conclude_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o numerical_a congregation_n or_o altar_n in_o the_o world_n as_o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o in_o the_o bishop_n church_n upon_o the_o whole_a matter_n the_o point_n be_v no_o manner_n of_o way_n prove_v from_o justin_n martyr_n as_o for_o st._n cyprian_n who_o condemn_v the_o set_n up_o altar_n against_o altar_n it_o can_v thence_o be_v gather_v that_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n have_v but_o one_o numerical_a altar_n what_o this_o father_n blame_v be_v set_v up_o a_o altar_n against_o the_o bishop_n altar_n in_o opposition_n to_o it_o not_o in_o subordination_n to_o and_o communion_n with_o it_o it_o be_v true_a here_o what_o our_o lord_n speak_v on_o another_o occasion_n he_o that_o be_v not_o against_o the_o bishop_n be_v for_o he_o and_o he_o that_o be_v not_o with_o the_o bishop_n be_v against_o he_o in_o st._n cyprian_n time_n there_o be_v several_a not_o oratory_n only_o but_o ãâã_d stately_a and_o magnificent_a church_n in_o the_o same_o city_n and_o within_o the_o limit_n of_o one_o bishop_n jurisdiction_n so_o optatus_n milevitaâus_n relate_v post_fw-la persecuit_fw-la 16._o onem_fw-la apud_fw-la cirtam_fw-la quia_fw-la basilica_n necdum_fw-la sueram_fw-la restituta_fw-la in_o domum_fw-la urbani_n carisi_fw-la consederunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n many_o traditor_n afterward_o turn_v donatist_n bishop_n meet_v the_o house_n of_o urbanus_fw-la ãâã_d after_o the_o persecution_n ãâã_d cirta_n because_o the_o temple_n be_v not_o yet_o restore_v etc._n etc._n now_o cirta_n be_v a_o episcopal_n see_v in_o cyprians'ss_a time_n and_o crescens_n be_v bishop_n of_o it_o ox._n and_o the_o persecution_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v that_o of_o dioclesian_n wherein_o these_o temple_n be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o christian_n they_o must_v then_o have_v be_v build_v before_o that_o emperor_n time_n it_o follow_v hence_o that_o at_o cirta_n the_o christian_n have_v several_a church_n before_o dioclesian_n reign_v that_o be_v not_o long_o after_o cyprian_a even_o in_o the_o three_o age_n therefore_o there_o be_v in_o the_o cyprianic_n age_n several_a congregatâââââin_n in_o the_o same_o city_n and_o episcopal_a church_n and_o consequent_o several_a ãâã_d for_o no_o man_n can_v think_v that_o among_o these_o basilicae_fw-la these_o magnificent_a church_n that_o one_o only_o have_v a_o altar_n and_o so_o from_o the_o whole_a it_o may_v be_v gather_v that_o the_o erect_v altar_n against_o altar_n condemn_v by_o cyprian_a be_v not_o the_o erect_v more_o numerical_a altar_n than_o one_o in_o a_o episcopal_a church_n but_o erect_v they_o or_o any_o one_o of_o they_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o bishop_n this_o father_n than_o do_v not_o favour_n mr._n mede_n conjecture_n at_o all_o the_o premise_n due_o consider_v i_o think_v igantius_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d one_o altar_n be_v right_o interpret_v by_o i_o since_o it_o be_v make_v so_o manifest_a that_o his_o bishop_n be_v both_o prelatical_a and_o diocesan_n i_o need_v not_o then_o trouble_v myself_o any_o further_a about_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o other_o slight_a passage_n object_v ãâã_d i_o out_o of_o that_o father_n since_o they_o must_v all_o some_o way_n or_o other_o be_v reconcile_v with_o this_o hypothesis_n and_o i_o hope_v i_o be_v not_o very_o wide_a of_o the_o truth_n in_o the_o tentamen_fw-la novum_n chap._n iii_o of_o st._n mark_n the_o evangelist_n founder_n of_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n i_o have_v produce_v the_o testimony_n of_o eusebius_n hist._n lib._n 2._o ch_n 16_o 17._o in_o proof_n of_o a_o multitude_n of_o christian_n at_o alexandria_n about_o the_o time_n that_o philo_n the_o jew_n write_v his_o treatise_n de_fw-fr vita_fw-la contemplativa_fw-la which_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o claudius_n the_o emperor_n or_o beginning_n of_o nero_n reign_n near_o fifty_o year_n after_o christ_n mr._n o._n except_v against_o the_o testimony_n as_o follow_v that_o this_o passage_n of_o eusebius_n overthrow_v the_o notion_n of_o the_o 18._o learned_a assertor_n of_o episcopacy_n that_o a_o diocese_n be_v the_o low_a species_n of_o a_o church_n that_o eusebius_n speak_v of_o church_n in_o the_o plural_a that_o therefore_o there_o must_v be_v bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o not_o one_o bishop_n only_o that_o mark_n be_v a_o evangelist_n that_o be_v a_o extraordinary_a officer_n in_o that_o church_n that_o annianus_n mark_n be_v successor_n be_v not_o a_o bishop_n of_o a_o superior_a order_n but_o a_o honourable_a precedent_n in_o their_o assembly_n and_o a_o moderator_n in_o their_o synod_n without_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n over_o his_o colleague_n ans._n i_o be_o not_o concern_v in_o the_o private_a opinion_n of_o modern_a author_n who_o assert_v a_o diocese_n to_o be_v the_o low_a species_n of_o a_o church_n nor_o will_v i_o trouble_v myself_o to_o show_v how_o they_o limit_v their_o notion_n and_o explain_v themselves_o in_o that_o point_n nor_o whether_o mr._n o._n fair_o deduce_v his_o consequence_n from_o that_o passage_n of_o eusebius_n ãâã_d therefore_o there_o must_v be_v bishop_n not_o one_o bishop_n only_o of_o alexandria_n let_v the_o assertor_n of_o this_o notion_n see_v to_o it_o mr._n oh_o reason_v such_o as_o it_o be_v affect_v not_o i_o nor_o my_o hypothesis_n it_o be_v my_o firm_a persuasion_n that_o a_o single_a congregation_n as_o well_o as_o diocese_n be_v even_o in_o scripture_n call_v a_o church_n only_o let_v it_o be_v observe_v mr._n o._n grant_n that_o there_o be_v according_a to_o eusebius_n several_a church_n or_o congregation_n in_o alexandria_n but_o how_o he_o will_v evince_v there_o be_v several_a bishop_n there_o i_o be_o yet_o to_o seek_v it_o be_v moreover_o suppose_v that_o mark_n be_v a_o evangelist_n or_o a_o extraordinary_a officer_n and_o what_o then_o still_o annianus_n a_o ordinary_a one_o may_v succeed_v he_o in_o the_o ordinary_a office_n of_o govern_v a_o diocesan_n church_n see_v part_n the_o first_o chapter_n the_o five_o and_o though_o mark_n be_v a_o evangelist_n a_o extraordinary_a officer_n which_o mr._n o._n must_v confess_v and_o have_v power_n over_o all_o the_o presbyter_n there_o yet_o say_v mr._n o._n annianus_n be_v not_o a_o bishop_n of_o a_o superior_a order_n with_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n over_o his_o colleague_n but_o a_o honourable_a precedent_n or_o moderator_n in_o the_o synod_n but_o this_o be_v only_a mr._n o.'s_n singular_a conceit_n we_o be_v in_o the_o present_a controversy_n to_o be_v guide_v by_o what_o eusebius_n tell_v we_o that_o annianus_n succeed_v mark_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o 24._o church_n of_o alexandria_n can_v any_o one_o understand_v less_o thereby_o than_o that_o annianus_n receive_v the_o same_o and_o all_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n that_o mark_v have_v in_o short_a i_o can_v discern_v mr._n o._n have_v advance_v any_o thing_n against_o i_o or_o lay_v his_o own_o sentiment_n so_o close_o together_o as_o to_o be_v consistent_a with_o themselves_o from_o the_o acts._n four_o the_o therapeutae_n compose_v hymn_n of_o divers_a kind_n in_o metre_n which_o the_o christian_n do_v not_o till_o afterward_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o antanini_fw-la five_o the_o therapeutae_n spread_v themselves_o throughout_o the_o world_n and_o be_v many_o in_o egypt_n but_o the_o christian_o few_o whereunto_o it_o may_v be_v reply_v first_o the_o christian_n expound_v the_o law_n allegorical_o as_o be_v manifest_a from_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n and_o some_o passage_n in_o st._n paul_n other_o epistle_n and_o beside_o though_o the_o jew_n do_v endeavour_v to_o improve_v the_o law_n by_o some_o allegorical_a deduction_n from_o it_o yet_o they_o hold_v primary_o unto_o the_o literal_a sense_n and_o according_o observe_v the_o law_n whereas_o the_o christian_n reject_v it_o in_o the_o literal_a sense_n and_o adhere_v only_o to_o the_o allegorical_a this_o then_o prove_v the_o therapeutae_n to_o be_v christian_n rather_o than_o jew_n second_o it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v then_o new_a and_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n of_o a_o late_a date_n they_o can_v not_o in_o any_o reason_n be_v call_v ancient_n nevertheless_o philo_n here_o mean_v the_o write_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o be_v out_o of_o controversy_n ancient_n and_o which_o the_o christian_n even_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n make_v frequent_a use_n of_o they_o may_v proper_o enough_o be_v call_v the_o christian_n ancient_a author_n beside_o though_o philo_n this_o must_v be_v own_v believe_v the_o therapeutae_n to_o be_v a_o sect_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o because_o they_o be_v conversant_a in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n thence_o collect_v that_o they_o
shall_v have_v be_v the_o companion_n of_o paul_n or_o of_o barnabas_n this_o last_o also_o be_v the_o evangelist_n of_o who_o the_o dispute_n be_v betwixt_o mr._n o._n and_o i_o who_o be_v but_o once_o mention_v in_o scripture_n and_o that_o at_o babylon_n which_o be_v in_o egypt_n as_o many_o with_o reason_n hold_v he_o may_v be_v a_o resident_n evangelist_n at_o alexandria_n though_o occasional_o with_o peter_n at_o the_o writing_n that_o epistle_n at_o babylon_n but_o ãâã_d any_o will_v contend_v st._n peter_n babylon_n be_v rome_n be_v it_o so_o what_o absurdity_n be_v it_o to_o affirm_v with_o eusebius_n that_o peter_n send_v he_o from_o rome_n to_o alexandria_n where_o he_o plant_v that_o church_n and_o depart_v this_o life_n bequeath_v the_o government_n of_o it_o to_o annianus_n yet_o once_o more_o admit_v mark_n after_o he_o have_v form_v and_o regulate_v that_o church_n of_o alexandria_n to_o have_v remove_v unto_o some_o other_o city_n and_o country_n for_o i_o be_o by_o no_o mean_n oblige_v to_o maintain_v that_o he_o die_v there_o nor_o do_v eusebius_n express_o say_v so_o that_o i_o know_v of_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o i_o to_o affirm_v with_o eusebius_n that_o annianus_n take_v the_o administration_n of_o that_o church_n of_o alexandria_n 24._o after_o mark_n leave_v it_o to_o conclude_v if_o there_o be_v but_o one_o mark_n who_o sometime_o be_v with_o peter_n at_o other_o time_n with_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n then_o with_o barnabas_n alone_o after_o that_o with_o paul_n again_o and_o last_o with_o peter_n yet_o this_o hinder_v not_o but_o at_o last_o he_o settle_v at_o alexandria_n neither_o will_v his_o occasional_a removal_n thence_o at_o the_o apostle_n call_v destroy_v his_o residence_n see_v part_v the_o first_o chapter_n the_o five_o whither_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n for_o satisfaction_n it_o be_v high_a time_n now_o to_o consider_v mr._n oh_o plea_n on_o this_o argument_n i_o be_o refer_v to_o page_n 126._o st._n jerom_n be_v the_o only_a ancient_a author_n that_o have_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o particular_a manner_n of_o church_n government_n establish_v by_o mark_n ãâã_d alexandria_n and_o on_o who_o authority_n the_o presbyterian_o very_o much_o rely_v what_o he_o say_v be_v the_o alexandrian_a presbyter_n from_o mark_n to_o heraclas_n evag._n and_o dionys._n call_v one_o choose_v from_o among_o themselves_o and_o place_v in_o a_o high_a degree_n i_o say_v call_v he_o bishop_n but_o he_o tell_v we_o not_o who_o choose_v he_o nor_o who_o ordain_v he_o so_o that_o we_o be_v yet_o at_o a_o loss_n as_o to_o one_o main_a part_n of_o the_o controversy_n for_o any_o thing_n jerom_n have_v discover_v to_o we_o only_o one_o will_v have_v expect_v that_o if_o the_o presbyter_n at_o any_o time_n have_v ordain_v their_o bishop_n this_o father_n will_v not_o have_v fail_v to_o let_v we_o know_v it_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o himself_o and_o those_o of_o his_o own_o order_n he_o also_o inform_v we_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n that_o one_o presbyter_n be_v set_v over_o the_o rest_n for_o a_o remedy_n against_o ãâã_d and_o this_o be_v do_v postea_fw-la that_o be_v after_o john_n two_n last_o epistle_n those_o of_o paul_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n and_o the_o first_o of_o peter_n be_v write_v for_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v all_o one_o till_o then_o as_o he_o suppose_v and_o we_o must_v be_v make_v to_o believe_v but_o it_o be_v very_o hard_a to_o believe_v all_o this_o upon_o the_o credit_n of_o jerom_n nay_o jerom_n himself_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o if_o we_o may_v believe_v he_o for_o he_o confess_v that_o paul_n make_v timothy_n tim._n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n how_o then_o come_v in_o this_o postea_fw-la after_o he_o have_v quote_v st._n paul_n first_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n for_o if_o ever_o ãâã_d be_v make_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n by_o paul_n it_o be_v before_o st._n paul_n write_v that_o epistle_n and_o if_o so_o how_o come_v jerom_n to_o say_v that_o the_o devise_n be_v form_v postea_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v after_o the_o write_n of_o that_o epistle_n that_o be_v after_o timothy_n be_v make_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n all_o that_o can_v be_v say_v the_o good_a father_n write_v somewhat_o confuse_o and_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o himself_o but_o to_o let_v this_o pass_v at_o present_a one_o thing_n only_o be_v very_o observable_a that_o if_o st._n paul_n constitute_v timothy_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n if_o james_n be_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n statim_fw-la ãâã_d apostolos_n and_o if_o mark_v appoint_v a_o bishop_n to_o be_v choose_v and_o set_v over_o ãâã_d of_o the_o ãâã_d at_o alexandria_n than_o this_o remedy_n against_o schism_n be_v find_v out_o and_o establish_v in_o the_o apostle_n day_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o mark_v die_v before_o peter_n and_o paul_n or_o ãâã_d i_o may_v argue_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n from_o another_o passage_n in_o jerom_n mat_n who_o affirm_v that_o mark_v himself_o be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n therefore_o this_o remedy_n against_o schism_n be_v prescribe_v in_o the_o apostle_n day_n and_o by_o the_o apostle_n also_o and_o therefore_o bishop_n must_v needs_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n even_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o jerom_n himself_o but_o still_o the_o difficulty_n remain_v who_o choose_v and_o ordain_v the_o bishop_n after_o mark_n be_v go_v here_o mr._n o._n think_v he_o have_v catch_v we_o have_v find_v a_o unquestionable_a testimony_n that_o the_o presbyter_n at_o alexandria_n both_o choose_v their_o bishop_n and_o ordain_v he_o yea_o and_o ordain_v one_o another_o so_o it_o be_v testify_v by_o ãâã_d in_o his_o origines_fw-la ãâã_d set_v forth_o by_o mr._n selden_n many_o year_n ago_o his_o word_n be_v mark_v appoint_v hananias_n or_o annianus_n first_o patriarch_n or_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o twelve_o presbyter_n his_o constant_a assistant_n to_o the_o end_n that_o when_o the_o patriarchship_n be_v vacant_a they_o shall_v choose_v one_o of_o their_o own_o number_n shall_v lay_v hand_n on_o his_o head_n and_o bless_v he_o and_o create_v he_o their_o patriarch_n then_o after_o that_o they_o shall_v elect_v some_o eminent_a person_n and_o make_v he_o ãâã_d in_o the_o room_n of_o he_o who_o be_v make_v patriarch_n that_o so_o there_o shall_v be_v always_o twelve_o ãâã_d etc._n etc._n this_o mr._n o._n call_v a_o full_a proof_n of_o presbyter_n choose_v and_o 129._o create_v their_o bishop_n and_o that_o by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o benediction_n or_o prayer_n also_o of_o presbyter_n make_v presbyter_n before_o i_o give_v a_o direct_a reply_n i_o will_v try_v what_o can_v he_o gather_v from_o this_o narrative_a of_o eutychius_n in_o favour_n of_o episcopal_a government_n first_o it_o be_v natural_a hence_o to_o gather_v that_o mark_n not_o so_o much_o as_o dream_v of_o a_o parity_n between_o the_o bishop_n and_o his_o presbyter_n his_o conceit_n be_v there_o shall_v be_v twelve_o presbyter_n answerable_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o a_o bishop_n ãâã_d they_o like_o christ_n over_o his_o ãâã_d second_o by_o this_o constitution_n of_o mark_n be_v at_o alexandria_n episcopacy_n must_v be_v acknowledge_v the_o first_o government_n set_v up_o in_o that_o church_n and_o because_o mark_n be_v a_o inspire_a evangelist_n it_o be_v divine_a also_o three_o note_v that_o according_a to_o eutychius_n the_o presbyter_n be_v to_o choose_v their_o bishop_n and_o not_o the_o people_n which_o the_o dissenter_n will_v not_o very_o well_o like_a of_o four_o that_o the_o presbyter_n ordain_v new_a presbyter_n which_o will_v scarce_o go_v down_o with_o the_o dissent_v congregation_n now_o a_o day_n five_o that_o except_v accident_n the_o patriarch_n or_o as_o mr._n o._n the_o moderator_n of_o the_o class_n be_v choose_v for_o life_n which_o the_o presbyterian_o will_v not_o allow_v of_o six_o that_o the_o dissenter_n be_v every_o whit_n as_o much_o depart_v from_o the_o observance_n of_o st._n mark_n be_v model_n as_o they_o can_v pretend_v we_o be_v yea_o and_o much_o more_o too_o thus_o much_o be_v premise_v that_o which_o i_o will_v reply_v to_o ãâã_d his_o story_n be_v that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o that_o tell_v it_o that_o he_o be_v a_o author_n of_o no_o credit_n and_o that_o there_o be_v considerable_a exception_n to_o be_v make_v against_o he_o and_o his_o tale._n they_o be_v as_o follow_v first_o he_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o selden_n himself_o to_o have_v live_v but_o in_o the_o ten_o century_n about_o 900_o year_n after_o the_o pretend_a constitution_n of_o st._n mark_n he_o allege_v no_o writer_n or_o record_n know_v unto_o we_o from_o whence_o he_o receive_v this_o account_n nor_o be_v it_o know_v that_o there_o be_v any_o such_o beside_o jerom_n who_o be_v several_a time_n in_o egypt_n know_v nothing_o of_o this_o which_o be_v very_o strange_a ãâã_d shall_v 500_o year_n after_o and_o
when_o their_o record_n have_v be_v destroy_v by_o the_o saracen_n it_o must_v then_o rest_v upon_o the_o credit_n of_o ãâã_d himself_o alone_o and_o what_o that_o be_v will_v appear_v by_o and_o by_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n this_o tale_n of_o ãâã_d must_v not_o pass_v be_v write_v by_o one_o who_o live_v at_o so_o great_a a_o distance_n of_o time_n from_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n deliver_v by_o he_o without_o any_o other_o know_v ancient_a author_n to_o support_v he_o beside_o he_o be_v a_o obscure_a writer_n pop_v up_o into_o the_o world_n to_o serve_v a_o cause_n and_o therefore_o can_v merit_v belief_n second_o ãâã_d differ_v from_o many_o author_n of_o more_o unquestionable_a authority_n than_o himself_o he_o differ_v from_o ignatius_n who_o affirm_v that_o presbyter_n ought_v to_o do_v nothing_o without_o the_o bishop_n not_o baptise_v not_o marry_o not_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n without_o the_o bishop_n but_o according_a to_o ãâã_d they_o ordain_v without_o he_o he_o differ_v from_o eusebius_n so_o far_o at_o least_o as_o to_o relate_v what_o eusebius_n know_v nothing_o of_o it_o be_v very_o strange_a that_o eusebius_n so_o diligent_a and_o so_o exact_a a_o historian_n so_o curious_a and_o inquisitive_a a_o searcher_n into_o the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o most_o eminent_a church_n from_o their_o first_o plantation_n particular_o this_o of_o alexandria_n shall_v not_o have_v discover_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o presbyter_n ordain_v their_o bishop_n and_o one_o another_o that_o he_o that_o have_v acquaint_v we_o with_o the_o name_n of_o all_o the_o patriarch_n from_o mark_n to_o alexander_n the_o precise_a order_n of_o their_o succession_n the_o year_n when_o every_o bishop_n succeed_v in_o what_o emperor_n reign_n it_o be_v and_o sundry_a other_o remarkable_a thing_n which_o happen_v in_o that_o church_n shall_v be_v whole_o silent_a and_o ignorant_a of_o this_o constitution_n of_o st._n mark_n more_o over_o ãâã_d say_v that_o mark_n write_v the_o gospel_n which_o bear_v his_o name_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o nero_n reign_n but_o eusebius_n affirm_v it_o be_v do_v in_o the_o day_n of_o claudius_n nero_n 15._o predecessor_n eutychius_n tell_v we_o that_o mark_n be_v slay_v in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o nero_n eusebius_n not_o till_o the_o eight_o evang._n at_o soon_a he_o differ_v from_o st._n jerom_n too_o who_o report_n that_o all_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v write_v in_o greek_a except_o the_o gospel_n of_o matthew_n but_o eutychius_n will_v have_v it_o that_o mark_n write_v he_o in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n brief_o than_o he_o differ_v from_o some_o author_n quote_v by_o selden_n himself_o in_o who_o he_o read_v 14_o of_o three_o presbyter_n seven_o deacon_n and_o eleven_o other_o ãâã_d officer_n of_o what_o character_n be_v not_o say_v whereas_o eutychius_n mention_n twelve_o only_a and_o all_o those_o presbyter_n on_o these_o account_n than_o he_o be_v of_o very_o little_a credit_n three_o he_o relate_v many_o thing_n in_o his_o annal_n whereof_o these_o origines_fw-la be_v a_o part_n against_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o approve_a history_n he_o make_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a to_o have_v consist_v of_o 2048._o bishop_n which_o be_v not_o credible_a he_o say_v peter_n be_v crucify_v in_o the_o twenty_o second_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o he_o reckon_v origen_n a_o bishop_n fouthly_a even_o in_o these_o origines_fw-la he_o be_v not_o at_o one_o with_o himself_o he_o write_v that_o mark_n go_v unto_o barca_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n that_o then_o claudius_n caesar_n die_v and_o nero_n succeed_v he_o that_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o nero_n peter_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n write_v the_o gospel_n of_o mark_n with_o mark_n in_o the_o roman_a tongue_n and_o in_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o yet_o that_o mark_n be_v slay_v at_o alexandria_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o nero._n but_o if_o mark_n be_v martyr_a at_o alexandria_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o nero_n it_o can_v be_v that_o he_o be_v at_o rome_n with_o peter_n in_o nero_n reign_n and_o join_v with_o he_o in_o write_v the_o gospel_n five_o eutychius_n story_n seem_v most_o improbable_a and_o in_o my_o judgement_n overthrow_v its_o self_n for_o if_o the_o presbyter_n have_v the_o power_n first_o of_o choose_v and_o then_o ordain_v one_o from_o among_o themselves_o to_o be_v patriarch_n and_o after_o that_o ordain_v the_o new_a presbyter_n also_o to_o what_o purpose_n be_v a_o bishop_n create_v be_v he_o to_o be_v a_o bishop_n of_o clouts_n to_o sit_v in_o his_o chair_n and_o grave_o to_o look_v on_o whilst_o the_o eleven_o presbyter_n choose_v and_o ordain_v the_o twelve_v and_o he_o have_v no_o hand_n in_o it_o six_o the_o origines_fw-la consist_v of_o so_o many_o childish_a ridiculous_a and_o absurd_a relation_n that_o no_o wise_a man_n can_v give_v any_o credit_n to_o so_o trifle_v a_o author_n that_o story_n of_o mark_n be_v go_v to_o a_o shoemaker_n or_o cobbler_n to_o have_v his_o shoe-latchet_a mend_v of_o hananias_n prick_v his_o finger_n with_o the_o awl_n and_o thereupon_o grow_v angry_a of_o mark_n be_v ãâã_d he_o with_o a_o promise_n to_o heal_v his_o finger_n if_o he_o will_v belive_o in_o christ_n of_o hananias_n believe_v and_o be_v cure_v and_o last_o of_o mark_n be_v baptise_v he_o thereupon_o and_o make_v he_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n be_v to_o i_o incredible_a another_o of_o the_o like_a nature_n be_v that_o of_o alexander_n desire_v that_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n shall_v not_o be_v call_v papa_n whereas_o it_o have_v be_v decree_v before_o in_o the_o day_n of_o heracles_n i_o suppose_v for_o distinction_n sake_n bishop_n be_v style_v father_n therefore_o it_o be_v judge_v fit_a that_o the_o patriarch_n shall_v be_v honour_v with_o the_o title_n of_o grandfather_n but-why_a alexander_n shall_v be_v so_o self-denying_a as_o to_o refuse_v a_o honourable_a title_n which_o several_a of_o his_o predecessor_n have_v have_v beforehim_v be_v to_o i_o a_o mystery_n again_o that_o wonderful_a design_n of_o mark_n as_o ãâã_d report_v it_o to_o have_v always_o the_o exact_a number_n of_o twelve_o presbyter_n in_o alexandria_n appear_v to_o i_o not_o very_o solid_a last_o of_o the_o same_o stamp_n be_v that_o request_n of_o peter_n to_o be_v crucify_v with_o his_o head_n downward_o that_o he_o may_v not_o have_v the_o honour_n to_o die_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o jesus_n christ_n do_v i_o fancy_n that_o peter_n never_o request_v such_o a_o thing_n or_o if_o he_o do_v that_o nero_n never_o grant_v it_o seven_o whereas_o eutychius_n will_v make_v we_o believe_v that_o mark_n be_v rule_n about_o the_o presbyter_n of_o alexandria_n not_o the_o neighbour_a bishop_n of_o egypt_n choose_v and_o ordain_v the_o patriarch_n and_o presbyter_n continue_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o alexander_n who_o must_v therefore_o be_v the_o last_o that_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o presbyter_n about_o the_o year_n 310._o yet_o st._n cyprian_n who_o flourish_v above_o 60_o year_n before_o alexander_n have_v something_o that_o make_v i_o suspect_v the_o contrary_a and_o that_o mark_v establish_v no_o such_o order_n at_o alexandria_n st._n cyprians_n word_n be_v these_o propter_fw-la quod_fw-la diligenter_fw-la de_fw-fr traditione_n divina_fw-la &_o ox._n apostolica_fw-la observatione_fw-la servandum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o tenendum_fw-la quod_fw-la apud_fw-la nos_fw-la quoque_fw-la &_o fere_n per_fw-la provincias_fw-la universas_fw-la tenetur_fw-la ut_fw-la ad_fw-la ordinationes_fw-la rite_n celebrandas_fw-la ad_fw-la eam_fw-la plebem_fw-la cui_fw-la praepositus_fw-la ordinatur_fw-la episcopi_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la provinciae_fw-la proximi_fw-la quique_fw-la conveniant_fw-la &_o episcopus_fw-la delegatur_fw-la plebe_fw-la present_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v part_n of_o a_o letter_n write_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o carthage_n to_o the_o church_n of_o leon_n asturica_n and_o emerita_n in_o spain_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o this_o be_v a_o divine_a tradition_n a_o apostolical_a practice_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n shall_v assemble_v choose_v and_o ordain_v a_o new_a bishop_n and_o that_o it_o universal_o obtain_v apud_fw-la nos_fw-la say_v the_o father_n among_o we_o in_o africa_n and_o almost_o in_o all_o the_o province_n in_o the_o world_n in_o the_o roman_a empire_n besure_n and_o i_o take_v cyprian_n to_o be_v a_o much_o trusty_a author_n than_o eutychius_n or_o jerom_n either_o to_o support_v this_o testimony_n of_o st._n cyprian_n i_o produce_v the_o first_o of_o the_o apostolical_a canon_n which_o be_v collect_v before_o st._n cyprian_n at_o least_o a_o good_a while_n before_o the_o nicene_n council_n as_o dr._n beverigde_v have_v show_v 4._o wherein_o as_o be_v by_o selden_n pretend_v the_o custom_n of_o alexandria_n be_v alter_v but_o ãâã_d can_v be_v as_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o the_o first_o canon_n aforesaid_a which_o run_v thus_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d if_o then_o this_o
apostolical_a canon_n be_v in_o force_n before_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a than_o it_o be_v not_o the_o nieene_a council_n which_o alter_v the_o alexandrian_a custom_n as_o eutychius_n and_o selden_n suppose_v it_o have_v be_v a_o much_o more_o ancient_a practice_n it_o seem_v for_o the_o provincial_a bishop_n to_o ordain_v bishop_n and_o so_o eutychius_n be_v mistake_v in_o this_o point_n also_o if_o ever_o there_o be_v such_o a_o rule_n establish_v by_o mark_n at_o alexandria_n of_o presbyter_n ordain_v bishop_n or_o presbyter_n it_o be_v change_v before_o alexander_n or_o the_o nicene_n council_n yea_o before_o st._n cyprian_n time_n eight_o whereas_o eutychius_n assert_n there_o be_v no_o bishop_n in_o egypt_n till_o demetrius_n it_o be_v prove_v to_o the_o contrary_a by_o that_o most_o learned_a prelate_n bishop_n pearson_n from_o several_a good_a testimony_n and_o particular_o 10._o from_o the_o vetus_fw-la vita_fw-la marci_n and_o rabanus_n maurus_n abbot_n of_o fulda_n of_o both_o which_o mr._n selden_n likewise_o take_v notice_n the_o former_a write_v thus_o pentapolim_n pergit_fw-la marcus_n &_o ordinans_fw-la episcopos_fw-la per_fw-la regiones_fw-la illas_fw-la &_o clericos_fw-la iterum_fw-la alexandriam_fw-la venit_fw-la the_o latter_a thus_o ordinaverat_fw-la marcus_n pro_fw-la se_fw-la episcopum_fw-la annianum_fw-la ãâã_d quoque_fw-la long_a lateque_fw-la ãâã_d episcopos_fw-la mr._n selden_n to_o avoid_v the_o force_n of_o these_o testimony_n have_v invent_v this_o shift_n sc_n that_o mark_n make_v these_o bishop_n in_o pentapolis_n only_o and_o not_o in_o egpyt_n if_o one_o ask_v why_o mark_n shall_v make_v bishop_n in_o pentapolis_n and_o not_o in_o ãâã_d also_o it_o will_v be_v hard_a for_o mr._n o._n to_o give_v a_o satisfactory_a answer_n to_o it_o beside_o it_o be_v say_v that_o mark_v make_v bishop_n per_fw-la regiones_fw-la illas_fw-la doubtless_o the_o meaning_n be_v through_o all_o the_o country_n that_o he_o travel_v between_o alexandria_n and_o pentapolis_n and_o sure_o egypt_n be_v one_o of_o they_o and_o why_o shall_v one_o patriarch_n or_o bishop_n suffice_v for_o alexandria_n and_o all_o egypt_n but_o not_o for_o pentapolis_n except_o mr._n o._n will_v be_v so_o kind_a as_o to_o furnish_v we_o with_o so_o early_a a_o instance_n of_o a_o vast_a city_n and_o province_n under_o the_o government_n of_o one_o single_a bishop_n it_o can_v then_o be_v question_v but_o that_o there_o be_v from_o the_o begin_n bishop_n in_o the_o province_n of_o egypt_n as_o well_o as_o one_o in_o the_o city_n of_o alexandria_n nine_o whereas_o eutychius_n say_v that_o mark_v appoint_v the_o twelve_o presbyter_n to_o choose_v their_o patriarch_n and_o by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o prayer_n to_o ordain_v he_o yet_o bishop_n pearson_n have_v produce_v several_a supra_fw-la good_a authority_n to_o the_o contrary_a show_v they_o be_v not_o ordain_v by_o the_o presbyter_n as_o first_o the_o apostolical_a constitution_n attest_v of_o abilius_n who_o succeed_v hananias_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o jerom_n chronicle_n we_o read_v that_o abilius_n be_v choose_v ex_fw-la presbyteris_fw-la &_o ãâã_d graecorum_n traditionem_fw-la a_o sancto_fw-it luca_n ordinatus_fw-la est_fw-la that_o be_v abilius_n be_v choose_v out_o of_o the_o presbyter_n or_o from_o among_o they_o as_o jerom_n have_v it_o not_o by_o ãâã_d and_o according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n be_v ordain_v by_o st._n luke_n furthermore_o ãâã_d who_o write_v the_o life_n of_o the_o alexandrian_a patriarch_n inform_v we_o that_o cerdon_n who_o succeed_v abilius_n and_o cerdon'_v successor_n unto_o demetrius_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o bishop_n out_o of_o that_o region_n that_o be_v egypt_n i_o suppose_v by_o all_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o there_o be_v bishop_n in_o egypt_n before_o demetrius_n who_o ordain_v the_o patriarch_n or_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n ten_o it_o be_v not_o like_a that_o ãâã_d have_v any_o authentic_a record_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n and_o egypt_n the_o saracen_n have_v destroy_v and_o burn_v they_o all_o long_o before_o eutychius_n be_v bear_v so_o that_o where_o he_o wander_v from_o the_o truth_n or_o when_o he_o ãâã_d we_o must_v conclude_v he_o frame_v his_o annal_n and_o origines_fw-la out_o of_o his_o own_o brain_n or_o some_o uncertain_a monkish_a tradition_n and_o legend_n than_o currant_n among_o they_o to_o conclude_v suppose_v the_o alexandrian_a presbyter_n by_o st._n mark_n be_v appointment_n do_v elect_a the_o patriarch_n or_o bishop_n yea_o and_o ordain_v he_o too_o yet_o it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o bishop_n however_o choose_v and_o ordain_v be_v as_o early_o as_o he_o and_o by_o divine_a right_n st._n mark_v be_v a_o person_n inspire_v and_o consequent_o have_v authority_n from_o god_n at_o least_o from_o the_o apostle_n to_o establish_v the_o government_n of_o the_o chuche_n which_o he_o found_v with_o what_o face_n then_o can_v selden_n produce_v these_o origines_fw-la to_o justify_v the_o presbyterian_a design_n in_o the_o late_a trouble_n i_o do_v not_o now_o say_v for_o alter_v the_o way_n of_o choose_v and_o ordain_v they_o but_o for_o quite_o extirpate_v episcopacy_n or_o with_o what_o colour_n of_o reason_n can_v mr._n o._n argue_v against_o episcopacy_n and_o blame_v we_o for_o not_o observe_v the_o suppose_a method_n of_o choose_v and_o ordain_v our_o bishop_n ãâã_d himself_o and_o his_o partisan_n be_v undermine_v the_o fabric_n which_o st._n mark_n be_v confess_v to_o have_v build_v and_o level_v it_o to_o the_o very_a foundation_n let_v our_o adversary_n first_o conform_v themselves_o to_o this_o rule_n of_o st._n mark_n let_v they_o in_o every_o city_n choose_v and_o ordain_v a_o bishop_n for_o life_n unto_o who_o themselves_o and_o all_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o city_n and_o country_n adjacent_a must_v be_v subject_a and_o unto_o who_o care_n and_o conduct_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n may_v chief_o be_v commit_v and_o when_o they_o have_v do_v this_o then_o let_v they_o lay_v before_o we_o this_o special_a author_n eutychius_n it_o will_v be_v time_n enough_o then_o to_o consider_v far_o of_o he_o mean_v while_o it_o seem_v not_o fair_a nor_o honest_a to_o bring_v this_o fabulous_a instance_n on_o the_o stage_n against_o we_o which_o they_o themselves_o will_v not_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o ãâã_d be_v eutychius_n of_o who_o we_o have_v be_v speak_v live_v about_o 900_o year_n distance_n from_o the_o ãâã_d by_o he_o relate_v without_o any_o intermediate_v testimony_n to_o confirm_v his_o story_n he_o differ_v in_o many_o thing_n from_o several_a good_a author_n of_o much_o more_o credit_n than_o himself_o he_o relate_v thing_n against_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o history_n he_o contradict_v himself_o ãâã_d own_o story_n ãâã_d its_o self_n he_o intermix_v many_o little_a foolish_a and_o very_a improbable_a remark_n he_o be_v contradict_v by_o more_o ancient_a writer_n yea_o and_o more_o unquestionable_a than_o himself_o jerom_n who_o design_n and_o argument_n need_v it_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o that_o constitution_n of_o st._n mark_n and_o last_o the_o dissenter_n themselves_o observe_v it_o not_o by_o this_o instance_n therefore_o ãâã_d they_o do_v we_o harm_n they_o do_v themselves_o no_o good_a yea_o rather_o hereby_o they_o condemn_v themselves_o but_o last_o against_o the_o testimony_n of_o ãâã_d i_o lay_v that_o of_o ãâã_d echellensis_fw-la de_fw-la orig._n alexand._n ecl._n which_o i_o borrow_v from_o the_o 320._o bishop_n of_o worcester_n echellensis_fw-la tell_v we_o out_o of_o severn_n alex._n bishop_n of_o the_o asmonaean_n and_o of_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o ãâã_d or_o ãâã_d that_o after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o patriarch_n the_o presbyter_n meet_v together_o and_o pray_v and_o proceed_v to_o election_n the_o first_o presbyter_n declare_v it_o belong_v to_o they_o to_o choose_v their_o bishop_n and_o to_o the_o other_o bishop_n in_o egypt_n to_o consecrate_v he_o to_o which_o the_o bishop_n than_o present_v assent_v only_o say_v if_o he_o be_v worthy_a they_o will_v consecrate_v he_o who_o they_o choose_v but_o not_o otherwise_o so_o than_o they_o have_v it_o seem_v a_o negative_a voice_n in_o the_o election_n and_o elmachinus_n make_v this_o a_o constitution_n of_o st._n mark_v in_o the_o first_o foundation_n of_o that_o church_n and_o say_v it_o continue_v to_o the_o nicene_n council_n about_o which_o time_n it_o be_v order_v that_o the_o bishop_n may_v be_v choose_v from_o any_o place_n or_o church_n whatever_o and_o this_o be_v all_o the_o alteration_n in_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o alexandrian_a church_n at_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a whatever_o selden_n or_o eutycbius_fw-la say_v to_o the_o contrary_n chap_n iv._o of_o the_o syriac_a translation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n mr._n o._n argue_v that_o the_o the_o syriac_a ãâã_d which_o be_v so_o very_a ancient_n that_o be_v come_v near_a in_o time_n to_o the_o original_a use_v not_o two_o word_n
i._o 1._o ch_n 13._o that_o 148._o by_o the_o pope_n palladius_n be_v send_v primus_fw-la episcopus_fw-la ad_fw-la scotos_fw-gr creden_n tes_fw-fr therefore_o the_o scot_n be_v christian_n before_o palladius_n ans._n if_o this_o testimony_n be_v adduce_v to_o any_o purpose_n it_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o tramontane_n pict_n receive_v palladius_n their_o first_o bishop_n from_o ãâã_d the_o roman_a ãâã_d that_o before_o that_o time_n they_o believe_v and_o have_v presbytery_n only_o but_o no_o bishop_n because_o palladius_n be_v the_o first_o now_o to_o show_v the_o disingenuity_n of_o this_o suggestion_n it_o must_v be_v note_v very_o brief_o out_o of_o the_o historical_a account_n that_o by_o scot_n be_v here_o mean_v the_o scot_n in_o ireland_n that_o bede_n have_v not_o a_o word_n of_o their_o form_n of_o government_n that_o some_o copy_n read_v ad_fw-la scotos_fw-gr convertendos_fw-la which_o will_v imply_v that_o they_o be_v not_o yet_o christian_n that_o primus_fw-la in_o prosper_n whence_o bede_n be_v think_v to_o have_v take_v his_o narrative_n in_o some_o copies_n be_v read_v primitus_fw-la that_o be_v formerly_z that_o palladius_n and_o patricius_n be_v design_v for_o the_o primate_fw-la only_o or_o the_o first_o bishop_n in_o rank_n and_o final_o that_o it_o be_v true_a palladius_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n send_v into_o ireland_n by_o the_o pope_n yet_o there_o be_v bishop_n before_o that_o time_n of_o which_o number_n archbishop_n usher_z produces_z four_n 801._o this_o be_v the_o first_o attempt_n of_o reduce_v ireland_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o pope_n i_o will_v say_v nothing_o of_o mr._n oh_o confess_v palladius_n be_v send_v into_o ireland_n plea_n 148._o mr._n o._n now_o promise_v we_o a_o instance_n of_o presbyter_n ordain_v 152._o in_o scotland_n it_o be_v that_o of_o segenius_n a_o ãâã_d and_o the_o abbot_n of_o hy_o who_o with_o other_o presbyter_n ordain_v bishop_n aidan_n and_o finan_n bede_n h._n e._n l._n 3._o 5_o 15_o ans._n but_o mr._n o._n acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v bishop_n at_o hy_o and_o in_o that_o province_n from_o bede_n lib._n 3._o ch_n 4._o and_o the_o ulster_n annal_n agree_v hereunto_o what_o need_v we_o say_v any_o more_o to_o resolve_v this_o difficulty_n some_o bishop_n with_o the_o abbot_n and_o his_o presbyter_n lay_v hand_n on_o as_o our_o custom_n be_v at_o this_o day_n ordain_v aidan_n for_o to_o what_o purpose_n be_v these_o bishop_n among_o they_o if_o not_o to_o ordain_v the_o government_n be_v in_o the_o abbot_n hand_n the_o presbyter_n be_v able_a to_o minister_v in_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n the_o bishop_n business_n than_o be_v certain_o to_o ordain_v mr._n o._n except_v against_o the_o ulster_n annal_n as_o not_o be_v attest_v by_o any_o author_n of_o that_o age_n and_o yet_o they_o agree_v in_o most_o thing_n with_o adamnanus_n and_o with_o ãâã_d and_o be_v a_o little_a rely_v on_o by_o archbishop_n Êsher_n mr._n o._n urge_v a_o bishop_n be_v suppose_v in_o the_o monastery_n 153._o at_o hylas_n he_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o abbot_n and_o think_v he_o have_v here_o sufficient_o reply_v to_o my_o lord_n of_o st._n asaph_n solution_n of_o that_o difficulty_n i_o do_v therefore_o add_v thereto_o ans._n nothing_o be_v more_o certain_a than_o that_o bishop_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v in_o monastery_n i_o read_v in_o theodoret_n of_o eleven_o reside_v in_o those_o of_o egypt_n from_o their_o youth_n up_o to_o their_o extreme_a old_a age_n and_o when_o they_o be_v bishop_n too_o theod._n e._n h._n l._n 4._o ch_n 22._o now_o though_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o abbot_n of_o hy_o yet_o it_o must_v remember_v also_o that_o the_o abbot_n jurisdiction_n extend_v itself_o throughout_o the_o province_n no_o wonder_n then_o if_o the_o provincial_a bishop_n be_v ãâã_d to_o the_o abbot_n rule_n and_o order_n require_v thus_o much_o if_o one_o of_o our_o english_a bishop_n shall_v ãâã_d into_o a_o college_n of_o oxford_n and_o readmit_v himself_o a_o member_n of_o the_o university_n he_o become_v thereby_o subject_a unto_o the_o head_n of_o that_o college_n and_o to_o the_o chancellor_n within_o the_o precinct_n of_o the_o university_n and_o that_o i_o may_v not_o fain_o a_o case_n some_o of_o our_o bishop_n have_v hold_v a_o prebendary_a of_o a_o collegiate_n church_n in_o commendam_fw-la he_o be_v thereby_o subject_a to_o the_o dean_n therein_o all_o matter_n belong_v to_o that_o church_n even_o as_o ãâã_d say_v the_o provincial_a bishop_n be_v to_o the_o abbot_n of_o hylas_n viz._n within_o the_o abbot_n jurisdiction_n but_o we_o know_v for_o all_o this_o the_o chancellor_n of_o oxford_n and_o the_o dean_n of_o a_o cathedral_n can_v ordain_v beside_o the_o abbot_n of_o hylas_n though_o they_o retain_v a_o external_n government_n over_o all_o in_o the_o province_n the_o bishop_n not_o except_v yet_o as_o to_o the_o episcopal_a and_o ministerial_a act_n of_o religion_n in_o that_o age_n belong_v to_o bishop_n the_o abbot_n give_v place_n to_o bishop_n as_o ãâã_d appear_v from_o the_o follow_a story_n in_o my_o lord_n of_o st._n asaph_n it_o be_v it_o seem_v 102._o the_o custom_n at_o that_o time_n for_o the_o priest_n be_v all_o equal_n to_o break_v the_o lord_n bread_n in_o the_o ãâã_d together_o a_o certain_a bishop_n be_v then_o at_o hy_o and_o not_o discover_v his_o character_n be_v by_o columba_n invite_v to_o break_v the_o lord_n bread_n with_o he_o but_o columba_n at_o length_n discern_v he_o to_o be_v a_o bishop_n will_v have_v the_o bishop_n break_v the_o bread_n alone_o as_o bishop_n then_o use_v to_o do_v which_o show_v that_o notwithstanding_o the_o abbot_n temporal_a jurisdiction_n as_o i_o may_v call_v it_o columba_n acknowledge_v the_o episcopal_a order_n to_o be_v superior_a to_o that_o of_o a_o presbyter_n last_o bede_n inusitato_n more_o for_o the_o right_a understanding_n whereof_o i_o refer_v to_o the_o historical_a account_n imply_v that_o this_o 4._o be_v but_o one_o singular_a and_o unprecedented_a example_n one_o swallow_n and_o such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v never_o see_v before_o do_v not_o make_v a_o summer_n one_o may_v then_o here_o just_o cry_v out_o with_o ãâã_d quid_fw-la mibi_fw-la proffer_v ãâã_d ecclesiae_fw-la consuetudinem_fw-la cum_fw-la ãâã_d turba_n ãâã_d and_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v episcopal_a the_o first_o person_n send_v into_o northumberland_n from_o hylas_n be_v one_o describe_v only_o but_o without_o a_o name_n in_o bede_n return_v back_o to_o 5._o hy_o without_o ãâã_d aidan_n be_v appoint_v and_o ordain_v unto_o the_o episcopacy_n in_o who_o ordination_n it_o be_v probable_a his_o predecessor_n a_o bishop_n be_v concern_v for_o he_o be_v then_o present_a among_o they_o mr._n o._n allege_v he_o be_v call_v only_o ãâã_d a_o priest_n but_o this_o be_v dispute_v a_o small_a point_n by_o half_n for_o if_o aidan_n be_v a_o bishop_n so_o be_v his_o ãâã_d and_o of_o aidan_n it_o be_v say_v ipsum_fw-la esse_fw-la dignum_fw-la episcopatu_fw-la and_o then_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n ãâã_d ãâã_d aidan_n at_o his_o ordination_n ãâã_d antistes_fw-la so_o then_o in_o bede_n language_n antistes_fw-la be_v a_o bishop_n and_o the_o nameless_a person_n we_o speak_v of_o be_v call_v so_o a_o little_a ãâã_d he_o be_v therefore_o a_o bishop_n if_o aidan_n be_v last_o aidan_n belike_o be_v a_o presbyter_n before_o he_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n of_o northumbria_n if_o so_o to_o what_o purpose_n be_v he_o ordain_v if_o not_o to_o a_o distinct_a office_n i_o do_v suppose_v all_o mr._n ãâã_d material_a objection_n be_v account_v for_o by_o this_o time_n and_o his_o proof_n of_o presbyterian_a ordination_n invalidate_v i_o will_v conclude_v this_o chapter_n with_o two_o observation_n first_o it_o can_v with_o any_o reason_n be_v imagine_v but_o that_o there_o be_v bishop_n in_o the_o province_n of_o hylas_n because_o columba_n the_o first_o abbot_n thereof_o come_v out_o of_o ireland_n there_o we_o read_v of_o bishop_n among_o who_o he_o be_v educate_v converse_v free_o with_o they_o and_o be_v ordain_v by_o they_o he_o be_v ordain_v deacon_n by_o finian_a bishop_n of_o meath_z and_o be_v a_o intimate_v friend_n of_o columbanus_n bishop_n of_o laghlin_n and_o ordain_v presbyter_n by_o one_o of_o they_o most_o probable_o by_o columbanus_n from_o who_o also_o he_o may_v take_v his_o name_n as_o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n do_v that_o of_o pamphilus_n hist._n account_v c._n 5._o after_o he_o be_v abbot_n of_o hy_o he_o propagate_v bishop_n among_o the_o northumbrian_n from_o who_o our_o english_a saxon_n derive_v on_o this_o account_n it_o be_v my_o lord_n of_o st._n asaph_n argue_v that_o the_o scotch_a ordination_n must_v needs_o be_v episcopal_a mean_v those_o at_o hylas_n which_o he_o confirm_v by_o this_o consideration_n because_o the_o roman_n austin_n the_o monk_n and_o his_o associate_n do_v not_o
dislike_v the_o order_n that_o they_o find_v in_o the_o british_a church_n as_o be_v episcopal_a though_o derive_v from_o the_o monastery_n of_o hy._n to_o this_o mr._n o._n except_v that_o if_o by_o british_a bishop_n be_v mean_v the_o 156._o church_n of_o south_n britain_n it_o be_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n as_o we_o observe_v before_o ans._n nothing_o be_v more_o plain_a than_o that_o my_o lord_n bishop_n mean_v the_o church_n of_o south_n britain_n whatever_o mr._n o._n observe_v before_o be_v not_o material_a but_o my_o lord_n bishop_n observation_n be_v manifest_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o if_o the_o roman_n do_v not_o dislike_v the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n of_o south_n britain_n they_o can_v not_o dislike_v the_o order_n of_o hylas_n because_o the_o south_n britain_n derive_v their_o order_n from_o hylas_n and_o doubtless_o be_v the_o same_o and_o the_o reason_n they_o dislike_v neither_o be_v because_o they_o be_v episcopal_a as_o be_v the_o roman_n and_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o mr._n o._n add_v if_o the_o order_n ãâã_d at_o hylas_n be_v intend_v as_o not_o dislike_v by_o the_o roman_n yet_o say_v he_o the_o roman_n be_v not_o so_o ignorant_a of_o the_o privilege_n of_o abbot_n as_o to_o dislike_v their_o ordination_n which_o be_v allow_v by_o that_o church_n decret_n greg._n abbas_n si_fw-la sit_fw-la presbyter_n confer_v potest_fw-la ordinem_fw-la clericalem_fw-la ans._n ordo_fw-la clericalis_fw-la may_v possible_o here_o ãâã_d neither_o the_o episcopal_a nor_o presbyterial_a nor_o the_o diaconal_a order_n but_o the_o inferior_a order_n only_o such_o as_o the_o subdeacon_n acoluthist_n exorcist_n psalmist_n lector_n and_o doorkeeper_n but_o that_o the_o episcopal_a order_n be_v not_o mean_v be_v to_o i_o past_o dispute_n for_o the_o roman_n never_o allow_v a_o abbot_n presbyter_n to_o ordain_v a_o bishop_n that_o i_o hear_v of_o second_o if_o this_o privilege_n be_v allow_v by_o the_o roman_a pontiff_n to_o the_o presbyter_n abbot_n it_o be_v allow_v to_o such_o of_o they_o only_o who_o it_o be_v likely_a own_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o roman_a see_n but_o not_o unto_o those_o who_o refuse_v subjection_n to_o it_o as_o do_v the_o abbot_n of_o hylas_n mr._n o._n know_v very_o well_o this_o privilege_n then_o whatever_o it_o be_v can_v not_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o roman_n not_o dislke_a the_o foresay_a order_n three_o the_o decretal_n mention_v be_v make_v or_o put_v together_o by_o gregory_n the_o nine_o pope_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o thirteen_o century_n about_o 709_o year_n after_o these_o abbot_n of_o hylas_n almost_o as_o many_o after_o austin_n the_o monk_n and_o therefore_o not_o apposite_o here_o allege_v four_o mr._n o._n seem_v here_o to_o countenance_v presbyterian_a order_n by_o popish_a ãâã_d and_o canonsframe_v in_o the_o dregs_o of_o time_n when_o the_o romish_a corruption_n be_v at_o their_o height_n but_o i_o like_v they_o never_o the_o better_a for_o that_o the_o roman_n be_v more_o excusable_a in_o this_o then_o our_o dissenter_n it_o be_v their_o principle_n that_o all_o church-officer_n derive_v from_o and_o depend_v mere_o upon_o the_o pope_n will._n he_o may_v then_o communicate_v the_o privilege_n to_o who_o he_o will_v even_o to_o a_o deacon_n but_o that_o a_o presbyterian_a dissenter_n shall_v justify_v his_o order_n by_o a_o pope_n decree_n be_v something_o extraordinary_a and_o extravagant_a as_o i_o fancy_n but_o second_o i_o will_v observe_v that_o columba_n a_o presbyter_n himself_o usurp_v or_o receive_v from_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o province_n of_o delried_n a_o dominion_n over_o a_o great_a province_n in_o the_o north-west_n of_o the_o now_o scotland_n over_o the_o monk_n and_o culdee_n if_o any_o such_o be_v yea_o even_o over_o his_o fellow_n presbyter_n themselves_o for_o all_o or_o many_o of_o they_o at_o least_o be_v presbyter_n and_o last_o over_o the_o bishop_n also_o if_o it_o will_v be_v acknowledge_v there_o be_v such_o in_o the_o province_n of_o hy._n beside_o he_o yet_o retain_v a_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o monastery_n of_o dearmuch_o in_o ireland_n which_o himself_o have_v former_o erect_v and_o his_o successor_n over_o many_o more_o monastery_n of_o lesser_a note_n which_o spring_v out_o of_o these_o two_o both_o in_o ãâã_d and_o in_o ãâã_d now_o this_o be_v a_o wonderful_a piece_n of_o antiquity_n to_o justify_v the_o principle_n 4._o and_o practice_n of_o the_o unite_a brethren_n at_o present_a among_o we_o if_o it_o prove_v presbyterian_a ordination_n it_o destroy_v presbyterian_a parity_n unless_o mr._n o._n will_v assert_v that_o the_o monk_n of_o hylas_n be_v equal_a to_o the_o abbot_n and_o that_o every_o monk_n be_v the_o abbot_n in_o his_o turn_n pro_fw-la tempore_fw-la what_o room_n then_o have_v mr._n o._n to_o talk_v of_o bishop_n receive_v their_o power_n from_o king_n rule_v over_o many_o church_n and_o congregation_n exercise_v jurisdiction_n over_o their_o fellow_n presbyter_n as_o he_o think_v and_o that_o for_o life_n too_o all_o this_o do_v columba_n and_o his_o successor_n who_o be_v pretend_v by_o mr._n baxter_n to_o have_v restore_v the_o culdee_n or_o presbyter_n strength_n against_o the_o encroachment_n of_o palladius_n but_o all_o this_o while_n the_o tyrant_n only_o be_v change_v not_o the_o tyranny_n the_o name_n alter_v not_o the_o thing_n instead_o of_o palladius_n the_o culdee_n and_o monk_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o columba_n and_o in_o the_o place_n of_o a_o bishop_n be_v set_v up_o a_o archpresbyter_n moreover_o i_o will_v ask_v whether_o in_o the_o suppose_a ordination_n at_o hylas_n by_o presbyter_n the_o monk-presbyter_n can_v or_o do_v ordain_v without_o the_o abbot-presbyter_n if_o not_o as_o i_o believe_v all_o will_n and_o must_v grant_v our_o unite_a brother_n will_v find_v little_a relief_n from_o this_o rare_a instance_n of_o presbyterian_a parity_n and_o ordination_n i_o shall_v here_o have_v conclude_v this_o chapter_n but_o mr._n o._n in_o the_o midst_n of_o this_o controversy_n have_v interweave_v a_o invidious_a reflection_n upon_o episcopacy_n and_o assert_v that_o the_o hierarchy_n in_o the_o church_n of_o 149._o the_o roman_a empire_n have_v their_o platform_n from_o the_o heathen_a who_o have_v their_o flamen_n and_o arch-flaman_n and_o i_o know_v not_o what_o ans._n 1._o if_o the_o heathen_n have_v sundry_a officer_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o their_o idolatrous_a religion_n subordinate_a to_o one_o another_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v the_o christian_n take_v it_o from_o they_o why_o not_o from_o the_o jewish_a hierarchy_n his_o belove_a hilarius_n sardus_n be_v of_o this_o opinion_n or_o why_o may_v it_o not_o not_o be_v think_v a_o piece_n of_o natural_a religion_n wherein_o the_o patriarch_n jew_n gentile_n all_o agree_n but_o let_v we_o see_v how_o he_o attempt_v to_o make_v good_a this_o reflection_n of_o the_o christian_n derive_v their_o hierarchy_n ãâã_d the_o heathen_a he_o ground_n it_o on_o the_o epistle_n of_o julian_n to_o arsacius_n the_o gentile_n chief-priest_n in_o galatia_n and_o after_o the_o citation_n of_o a_o scrap_n out_o of_o eusebius_n which_o i_o do_v not_o find_v in_o the_o place_n direct_v to_o cry_v out_o here_o be_v a_o precedent_n for_o bishop_n intermeddle_v with_o state_n affair_n whereas_o any_o one_o may_v know_v that_o will_v but_o read_v or_o understand_v that_o epistle_n which_o mr._n o._n never_o do_v i_o preceive_v that_o it_o be_v entire_o spend_v about_o religious_a matter_n and_o direct_v how_o arsacius_n the_o chief_a priest_n shall_v behave_v himself_o in_o govern_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o gentile_a religion_n thus_o we_o be_v wont_n to_o be_v teaze_v by_o a_o sort_n of_o man_n that_o do_v not_o or_o will_v not_o understand_v what_o they_o say_v who_o so_o they_o may_v cast_v dirt_n upon_o we_o care_v not_o how_o ignorant_o and_o false_o they_o do_v it_o but_o to_o let_v this_o pass_v the_o question_n here_o be_v whether_o the_o christian_n derive_v their_o form_n of_o church_n government_n by_o bishop_n from_o the_o gentile_n or_o the_o gentile_n from_o they_o this_o latter_a i_o undertake_v to_o make_v out_o first_o from_o the_o ancient_a writer_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n who_o argue_v for_o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o bishop_n as_o be_v borrow_v from_o the_o levitical_a high_a priest_n priest_n and_o levite_n all_o the_o world_n know_v this_o i_o need_v not_o bring_v forth_o ãâã_d testimony_n even_o mr._n oh_o so_fw-mi oft_o mention_v hilary_n be_v one_o but_o of_o this_o i_o have_v speak_v before_o second_o although_o the_o druid_n according_a to_o caesar_n have_v such_o a_o sort_n of_o government_n among_o they_o yet_o in_o the_o east_n where_o episcopacy_n be_v first_o establish_v the_o gentile_n have_v no_o such_o government_n as_o appear_v from_o what_o eusebius_n have_v note_v of_o maximinus_n 4._o the_o heathen_a emperor_n who_o observe_v the_o way_n of_o church_n government_n
among_o the_o christian_n and_o believe_v it_o conduce_v to_o the_o furtherance_n of_o their_o religion_n for_o the_o same_o reason_n appoint_v the_o same_o among_o the_o gentile_n he_o then_o draw_v his_o pattern_n from_o the_o christian_n which_o be_v moreover_o confirm_v by_o lactantius_n to_o have_v be_v then_o 36._o new_o take_v up_o by_o the_o heathen_n maximinus_fw-la novo_fw-la more_fw-it sacerdotes_fw-la maximos_fw-la per_fw-la singulas_fw-la civitates_fw-la singulos_fw-la ex_fw-la primoribus_fw-la fecit_fw-la parumque_fw-la hoc_fw-la fuit_fw-la nisi_fw-la etiam_fw-la provinciis_fw-la ex_fw-la alticre_fw-la dignitatis_fw-la gradu_fw-la singulosquasi_fw-la pontifices_fw-la superponeret_fw-la maximinus_n than_o first_o novo_fw-la more_o create_v chief_a priest_n in_o every_o city_n and_o as_o if_o this_o have_v be_v too_o little_a he_o ordain_v as_o it_o be_v high-priest_n over_o whole_a province_n it_o be_v then_o a_o new_a device_n among_o the_o gentile_n first_o set_v up_o by_o maxinisnus_fw-la in_o conformity_n to_o the_o christian_n three_o the_o same_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o that_o very_a epistle_n of_o julian_n to_o arsacius_n the_o chief-priest_n of_o galatia_n though_o quote_v by_o mr._n o._n himself_o as_o if_o it_o be_v on_o his_o side_n i_o be_o ashamed_a any_o man_n that_o pretend_v to_o religion_n and_o learning_n shall_v thus_o foul_o misrepresent_v author_n and_o make_v as_o if_o they_o have_v write_v what_o be_v manifest_a they_o never_o so_o much_o as_o dream_v of_o to_o show_v this_o i_o will_v first_o sum_v up_o what_o sozomen_n himself_o relate_v concern_v this_o matter_n and_o then_o give_v you_o a_o abridgement_n of_o julian_n epistle_n that_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o say_v the_o emperor_n julian_n desire_v 16._o that_o the_o gentile_a religion_n shall_v prevail_v but_o observe_v that_o it_o be_v far_o surmount_v by_o the_o christian_a be_v exceed_o trouble_v when_o he_o think_v with_o himself_o that_o christianity_n be_v chief_o commend_v by_o the_o life_n and_o manner_n of_o those_o who_o profess_v it_o he_o determine_v with_o himself_o to_o ãâã_d the_o temple_n of_o the_o gentile_n with_o the_o same_o rule_n and_o order_n which_o be_v in_o use_n among_o the_o christian_n also_o with_o the_o same_o degree_n and_o prerogative_n of_o supremacy_n and_o sundry_a other_o thing_n be_v mention_v wherein_o julian_n be_v resolve_v to_o imitate_v the_o christian_n he_o add_v in_o general_a the_o emperor_n endeavour_v to_o conform_v the_o gentile_a unto_o the_o christian_a institution_n then_o follow_v julian_n letter_n to_o arsacius_n the_o chief_a priest_n of_o galatia_n wherein_o there_o be_v not_o a_o syllable_n of_o state-affair_n as_o mr._n o._n have_v false_o suggest_v not_o a_o word_n that_o intimate_v as_o if_o the_o christian_a derive_v their_o government_n from_o the_o gentile_n he_o only_o admonish_v arsacius_n to_o take_v care_n about_o sundry_a particular_a thing_n belong_v unto_o morality_n such_o as_o hospitality_n to_o stranger_n care_v about_o bury_v the_o dead_a that_o the_o flamen_fw-la shall_v not_o frequent_v the_o theatre_n nor_o drink_v in_o tavern_n nor_o profess_v any_o trade_n he_o advise_v he_o to_o build_v hospital_n for_o the_o poor_a and_o promise_n to_o furnish_v he_o with_o money_n to_o do_v it_o he_o warn_v he_o not_o to_o pay_v visit_n often_o to_o great_a man_n but_o to_o write_v to_o they_o only_o and_o live_v retire_o that_o the_o inferior_a flamen_fw-la shall_v not_o meet_v secular_a officer_n when_o they_o enter_v the_o city_n in_o pomp_n ãâã_d they_o come_v to_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o god_n who_o when_o they_o be_v enter_v be_v then_o but_o private_a person_n in_o a_o word_n he_o order_v arsacius_n to_o endeavour_v to_o make_v the_o flamen_fw-la good_a man_n by_o shame_v they_o unto_o their_o duty_n or_o persuade_v they_o or_o remove_v they_o from_o the_o priestly_a ministry_n to_o bestow_v honour_n on_o they_o who_o obey_v but_o the_o the_o stubborn_a and_o contumacious_a to_o expel_v first_o from_o the_o whole_a it_o appear_v that_o all_o this_o policy_n of_o julian_n be_v take_v from_o the_o christian_n who_o rule_n and_o government_n he_o know_v very_o well_o have_v himself_o once_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o a_o reader_n in_o the_o church_n true_a many_o writer_n of_o latter_a age_n have_v teach_v that_o the_o christian_n follow_v the_o gentile_n in_o their_o church-government_n but_o it_o be_v not_o my_o business_n to_o account_v for_o the_o dream_n and_o fancy_n of_o schoolman_n and_o other_o author_n that_o follow_v they_o although_o at_o the_o same_o time_n i_o be_o of_o opinion_n that_o the_o primitive_a church_n regulate_v their_o parish_n diocese_n and_o province_n according_a to_o the_o division_n which_o they_o find_v ready_o make_v to_o their_o hand_n by_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n and_o perhaps_o to_o the_o district_v former_o appoint_v by_o the_o druid_n in_o these_o western_a part_n which_o may_v occasion_v those_o author_n to_o affirm_v that_o the_o episcopal_a government_n itself_o be_v borrow_v from_o they_o which_o be_v we_o see_v a_o great_a mistake_n to_o conclude_v see_v we_o have_v find_v the_o government_n of_o the_o gentile_a religion_n in_o the_o east_n at_o least_o be_v take_v from_o the_o christian_a be_v before_o more_o like_a unto_o the_o presbyterian_a or_o congregational_a the_o reflection_n may_v be_v retort_v upon_o our_o adversary_n and_o it_o may_v with_o more_o truth_n be_v say_v that_o they_o have_v their_o pattern_n from_o the_o gentile_a priest_n if_o any_o one_o desire_v a_o more_o full_a and_o learned_a account_n of_o this_o let_v he_o consult_v the_o late_a bishop_n of_o worcester_n 2._o chap._n vi_o concern_v fortunatianus_n bishop_n of_o assurae_n basilides_n and_o martialis_n two_o spanish_a bishop_n mr_n o._n endeavour_n to_o prove_v that_o presbyter_n and_o people_n 21._o may_v receive_v a_o accusation_n against_o their_o own_o bishop_n which_o be_v as_o ãâã_d as_o to_o say_v the_o bishop_n be_v not_o superior_a to_o his_o prebyter_n who_o be_v his_o judge_n this_o he_o pretend_v to_o evince_v from_o the_o 65_o the_o epistle_n of_o st._n cyprian_n which_o be_v thus_o direct_v epicteto_n fratri_fw-la ox._n &_o plebi_fw-la the_o case_n be_v this_o fortunatianus_n bishop_n of_o assurae_n have_v sacrifice_v unto_o idol_n in_o the_o late_a time_n of_o persecution_n under_o decius_n the_o emperor_n by_o consequence_n he_o have_v abandon_v his_o bishopric_n and_o even_o christianity_n its_o self_n when_o affair_n be_v afterward_o somewhat_o settle_v and_o peace_n restore_v unto_o the_o church_n fortunatianus_n claim_v his_o bishopric_n again_o and_o it_o be_v not_o unlikely_a but_o he_o have_v some_o interest_n among_o some_o of_o the_o people_n of_o assurae_n who_o be_v willing_a to_o accept_v he_o for_o so_o it_o be_v i_o find_v in_o the_o follow_a case_n of_o basilides_n and_o martialis_n cyprian_n acquaint_v herewith_o in_o that_o letter_n exhort_v epictetus_n and_o the_o people_n not_o to_o receive_v he_o ãâã_d to_o acknowledge_v he_o any_o more_o for_o their_o bishop_n how_o this_o story_n establish_v mr._n oh_o proposition_n i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o discern_v for_o one_a by_o this_o argument_n the_o bp_n be_v subject_a unto_o the_o people_n as_o well_o as_o to_o their_o presbyter_n which_o mr._n o._n will_v do_v well_o to_o consider_v of_o 2_o lie_v it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o fortunatianus_n be_v ever_o accuse_v or_o cite_v to_o answer_n unto_o the_o charge_n lay_v against_o he_o by_o consequence_n no_o judiciary_n sentence_n be_v pronounce_v upon_o he_o the_o fact_n be_v notorious_a he_o have_v of_o his_o own_o accord_n abdicate_v and_o turn_v to_o the_o gentile_n three_o if_o fortunatianus_n be_v formal_o cite_v accuse_v and_o condemn_v it_o follow_v not_o that_o epictetus_n the_o suppose_a presbyter_n and_o the_o people_n be_v his_o judge_n one_o may_v with_o more_o reason_n imagine_v that_o the_o cause_n be_v bring_v if_o at_o all_o before_o the_o the_o provincial_a bishop_n and_o by_o they_o decide_v four_o it_o be_v not_o certain_a that_o epictetus_n be_v be_v a_o mere_a presbyter_n ãâã_d for_o aught_o any_o one_o know_v or_o can_v say_v to_o the_o contrary_a epictetus_n fill_v the_o episcopal_a chair_n at_o assurae_n when_o cyprian_n write_v that_o epistle_n five_o suppose_v epictetus_n be_v only_o a_o presbyter_n yet_o here_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o a_o formal_a process_n or_o judgement_n give_v against_o fortunatianus_n but_o only_o a_o caution_n give_v to_o that_o church_n not_o to_o receive_v he_o again_o for_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n i_o suppose_v be_v plain_a the_o unfortunate_a man_n have_v sacrifice_v and_o thereby_o abandon_v his_o bishopric_n but_o peace_n be_v restore_v he_o will_v needs_o intrude_v into_o it_o again_o have_v as_o be_v to_o be_v presume_v some_o friend_n at_o assurae_n favour_v his_o pretence_n this_o be_v certain_a the_o design_n of_o st._n cyprian_n in_o this_o epistle_n be_v not_o to_o
power_n of_o government_n and_o ordination_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o deacon_n in_o scythia_n for_o these_o 70_o year_n as_o blundel_n can_v make_v his_o inference_n for_o presbyter_n the_o most_o probable_a conjecture_n be_v that_o there_o be_v some_o of_o all_o sort_n sc_n bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n four_o i_o may_v demand_v of_o mr._n o._n to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v any_o one_o presbyter_n among_o those_o christian_a captive_n which_o haply_o he_o will_v be_v put_v hard_a to_o do_v but_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n i_o will_v undertake_v to_o demonstrate_v that_o there_o be_v at_o least_o one_o bishop_n in_o scythia_n before_o ulphilas_n viz._n theophilus_n who_o be_v one_o of_o the_o nicene_n father_n and_o subscribe_v the_o canon_n of_o that_o council_n so_o eusebius_n witness_v also_o the_o bishop_n of_o persis_n be_v present_a at_o the_o synod_n 7._o nor_o be_v there_o want_v a_o scythian_a bishop_n socrates_n name_n he_o theophilus_n who_o being_n bishop_n of_o the_o goth_n ãâã_d there_o present_a subscribe_v 41._o the_o nicene_n council_n theophilus_n therefore_o be_v bishop_n of_o the_o goth_n before_o the_o nicene_n synod_n and_o be_v present_a at_o the_o council_n and_o subscribe_v it_o therefore_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o the_o government_n of_o the_o scythian_a church_n be_v not_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o presbyter_n among_o the_o christian_a goth_n or_o scythian_n for_o about_o 70_o year_n as_o mr._n o._n and_o blondel_n have_v affirm_v but_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o bishop_n or_o of_o a_o bishop_n at_o least_o i_o add_v that_o see_v we_o find_v a_o bishop_n among_o the_o goth_n before_o the_o nicene_n synod_n it_o be_v but_o reasonable_a to_o think_v that_o bishop_n or_o a_o bishop_n at_o first_o go_v along_o with_o the_o captive_a christian_n into_o scythia_n or_o that_o one_o soon_o follow_v they_o thither_o i_o will_v confirm_v this_o con_n jecture_n from_o that_o passage_n in_o sozomen_n who_o inform_v ãâã_d that_o it_o 21._o be_v a_o ancient_a custom_n speak_v of_o the_o scythian_n that_o one_o bishop_n only_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o that_o province_n sozomen_n be_v now_o write_v of_o the_o church-affair_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o valentinian_n and_o valens_n that_o be_v about_o the_o year_n 370._o 43_o year_n after_o ulphilas_n have_v be_v first_o ordain_v bishop_n now_o ulphilas_n be_v not_o long_o before_o this_o time_n alive_a according_a to_o socrates_n and_o invent_v the_o gothick_n letter_n ãâã_d the_o reign_n of_o 33._o valens_n without_o all_o peradventure_o therefore_o the_o goth_n have_v bishop_n long_o before_o ulphilas_n for_o if_o there_o have_v be_v but_o two_o in_o all_o that_o be_v ulphilas_n and_o after_o he_o vetranio_n than_o bishop_n it_o have_v be_v a_o foolish_a remark_n of_o sozomen_n to_o tell_v his_o reader_n that_o it_o be_v a_o ancient_a custom_n among_o the_o scythian_a christian_n that_o one_o bishop_n only_o govern_v their_o province_n when_o as_o this_o ancient_a custom_n forsooth_o have_v be_v but_o of_o 40_o year_n continuance_n from_o the_o first_o and_o there_o have_v be_v but_o two_o and_o the_o former_a of_o they_o dead_a but_o about_o four_o year_n before_o for_o both_o ulphilas_n and_o vetranio_n be_v bishop_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o valens_n 47._o the_o sum_n be_v there_o be_v bishop_n in_o scythia_n during_o some_o part_n at_o least_o of_o the_o 70_o year_n mention_v by_o mr._n o._n and_o in_o all_o likelihood_n all_o the_o while_n i_o defy_v mr._n o_o to_o show_v the_o contrary_a out_o of_o philostorgius_n or_o any_o other_o historian_n extant_a there_o do_v remain_v indeed_o a_o small_a difficulty_n to_o be_v account_v for_o viz._n how_o then_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o philostorgius_n call_v he_o the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o goth_n if_o the_o goth_n have_v bishop_n before_o he_o the_o answer_n hereunto_o be_v easy_a and_o ãâã_d five_o theophilus_n who_o be_v present_a at_o the_o nicene_n synod_n be_v bishop_n of_o the_o goth_n beyond_o the_o danube_n or_o ister_n for_o they_o come_v not_o over_o the_o river_n into_o the_o roman_a empire_n till_o after_o the_o say_a synod_n upon_o their_o arrival_n or_o at_o their_o request_n constantine_n allot_v maesia_n for_o they_o to_o inhabit_v that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o part_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n which_o lie_v to_o the_o bank_n of_o the_o danube_n on_o this_o side_n the_o river_n and_o name_v ulphilas_n to_o be_v bishop_n and_o he_o be_v the_o first_o bishop_n of_o the_o cisistrian_a scythian_n within_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o ordain_v by_o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n though_o theophilus_n before_o he_o have_v be_v bishop_n of_o the_o transistrian_a so_o socrates_n moreover_o to_o this_o faith_n even_o ulphilas_n himself_o bishop_n 41._o of_o the_o goth_n than_o first_o consent_v for_o before_o that_o time_n he_o have_v embrace_v the_o ãâã_d faith_n follow_v theophilus_n bishop_n of_o the_o goth_n who_o be_v present_a have_v subscribe_v the_o nicene_n council_n so_o that_o after_o all_o this_o it_o can_v be_v question_v but_o that_o the_o gothick_n christian_n be_v long_o before_o ulphilas_n govern_v by_o bishop_n although_o blondel_n and_o mr._n o._n have_v so_o roundly_o deny_v it_o without_o yea_o against_o plain_a evidence_n to_o the_o contrary_n upon_o a_o far_a search_n into_o blondel_n i_o find_v he_o acknowledge_v what_o i_o have_v before_o speak_v of_o theophilus_n bishop_n of_o the_o ãâã_d but_o mr._n o._n who_o pretend_v to_o improve_v argument_n have_v leave_v this_o lame_a and_o more_o imperfect_a than_o he_o find_v it_o let_v we_o then_o see_v what_o answer_n blundel_n have_v frame_v against_o theophilus_n the_o scythian_a bishop_n it_o be_v as_o follow_v if_o we_o grant_v theophilus_n be_v bishop_n of_o the_o gothick_n metropolis_n before_o ãâã_d we_o will_v be_v hereby_o furnish_v with_o a_o strong_a weapon_n justify_v our_o cause_n for_o they_o who_o make_v to_o themselves_o a_o bishop_n their_o superior_a who_o dare_v deny_v they_o a_o power_n of_o ordain_v presbyter_n which_o be_v but_o their_o equal_n ans._n this_o argument_n be_v ground_v upon_o a_o supposition_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v allow_v of_o nor_o can_v be_v prove_v blondel_n take_v it_o here_o for_o grant_v the_o scythian_a presbyter_n ordain_v their_o bishop_n theophilus_n for_o instance_n but_o one_o may_v surmise_v several_a other_o thing_n with_o equal_a probabilty_n any_o of_o which_o will_v overthrow_v this_o wonderful_a demonstration_n as_o 1._o it_o may_v be_v suppose_v that_o a_o bishop_n or_o bishop_n be_v by_o the_o scythian_n at_o their_o irruption_n into_o galatia_n and_o cappadocia_n carry_v captive_n into_o scythia_n as_o be_v before_o observe_v or_o 2._o that_o some_o bishop_n may_v follow_v the_o captive_a christian_n into_o that_o barbarous_a country_n be_v first_o ordain_v in_o the_o empire_n theophilus_n which_o be_v a_o greek_a name_n haply_o be_v so_o make_v and_o ordain_v their_o bishop_n or_o 3._o the_o scythian_a church_n may_v send_v one_o of_o their_o own_o presbyter_n to_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o imperial_a bishop_n as_o ulphilas_n after_o be_v for_o that_o there_o be_v a_o correspondence_n between_o the_o scythian_a and_o imperial_a church_n be_v past_a doubt_n when_o we_o consider_v that_o theophilus_n bishop_n of_o the_o scythian_n assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a there_o be_v nothing_o in_o philostorgius_n the_o only_a author_n of_o this_o tale_n that_o thwart_v any_o one_o of_o thesethree_a supposition_n or_o that_o countenance_n blondel_n surmise_n of_o the_o scythian_a presbyter_n ordain_v their_o own_o bishop_n that_o of_o ulphilas_n be_v the_o first_o bishop_n i_o have_v already_o account_v for_o 2._o if_o the_o scythian_a presbyter_n ordain_v a_o bishop_n to_o preside_v over_o they_o suppose_v this_o it_o hence_o follow_v they_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o have_v one_o and_o rather_o than_o have_v none_o choose_v in_o their_o necessity_n to_o constitute_v and_o ordain_v he_o themselves_o contrary_a to_o the_o ordinary_a and_o establish_a method_n of_o which_o they_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a but_o this_o be_v say_v upon_o a_o bare_a supposition_n of_o the_o scythian_a presbyter_n ordain_v their_o bishop_n which_o be_v not_o prove_v nor_o at_o all_o probable_a as_o i_o have_v show_v before_o that_o which_o appear_v above_o board_n be_v that_o the_o scythian_n have_v a_o bishop_n which_o set_v apart_o mere_a conjecture_n on_o both_o side_n be_v sufficient_a to_o my_o purpose_n chap._n viii_o of_o the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la the_o occasion_n of_o their_o institution_n as_o i_o conjecture_v be_v either_o 1._o to_o promote_v and_o quicken_v conversion_n in_o the_o country_n and_o village_n subject_a to_o the_o city_n bishop_n or_o 2._o after_o believer_n and_o congregation_n be_v there_o multiply_v to_o be_v as_o suffragans_fw-la and_o assistant_n for_o the_o better_a government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o
because_o it_o be_v a_o fundamental_a law_n in_o the_o church_n that_o there_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v two_o bishop_n in_o one_o diocese_n with_o plenitude_n of_o power_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o serve_v two_o master_n therefore_o these_o ãâã_d be_v entire_o under_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o city_n bishop_n who_o be_v indeed_o the_o ãâã_d there_o be_v not_o any_o monument_n of_o antiquity_n that_o i_o be_o aware_a of_o from_o whence_o we_o may_v better_o understand_v the_o nature_n of_o these_o chorepiscopi_fw-la than_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n which_o i_o will_v therefore_o transcribe_v at_o length_n into_o english_a they_o who_o reside_v in_o village_n and_o in_o the_o country_n or_o be_v ant._n call_v chorepiscopi_fw-la although_o ordain_v by_o bishop_n it_o please_v the_o holy_a synod_n that_o they_o know_v their_o own_o measure_n and_o govern_v the_o church_n subject_v to_o they_o and_o rest_v content_a with_o that_o care_n and_o administration_n that_o they_o constitute_v reader_n subdeacons_n and_o exorcist_n and_o be_v satisfy_v with_o this_o power_n not_o dare_v to_o ordain_v a_o presbyter_n or_o deacon_n without_o the_o express_a consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n unto_o which_o both_o he_o the_o chorepiscopus_n and_o the_o country_n belong_v but_o let_v the_o country_n bishop_n be_v under_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n to_o which_o he_o be_v subject_a now_o the_o main_a question_n be_v whether_o these_o chorepiscopi_fw-la be_v real_a bishop_n superior_a to_o and_o distinguish_v from_o presbyter_n and_o in_o who_o be_v lodge_v the_o episcopal_a character_n and_o power_n the_o affirmative_a be_v prove_v by_o the_o follow_a argument_n 1._o i_o consider_v that_o the_o title_n of_o bishop_n and_o the_o power_n of_o ordain_v presbyter_n be_v then_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v in_o they_o which_o i_o can_v never_o be_v induce_v to_o believe_v will_v have_v be_v grant_v they_o at_o that_o time_n of_o day_n if_o they_o be_v mere_a presbyter_n they_o be_v under_o the_o same_o bishop_n as_o the_o city_n presbyter_n be_v how_o come_v they_o to_o have_v that_o honourable_a title_n bestow_v on_o they_o which_o the_o city_n presbyter_n have_v not_o be_v the_o country_n presbyter_n such_o the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la be_v according_a to_o mr._n o._n far_o more_o honourable_a and_o better_o deserve_v the_o title_n of_o bishop_n then_o the_o city_n presbyter_n be_v i_o can_v imagine_v no_o other_o reason_n of_o this_o but_o because_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o true_a stamp_n and_o character_n of_o bishop_n have_v a_o inherent_a habitual_a power_n to_o do_v whatever_o any_o diocesan_n can_v and_o more_o than_o any_o mere_a presbyter_n be_v able_a to_o do_v only_o as_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o diocesan_n bishop_n have_v no_o independent_a diocese_n of_o their_o own_o to_o govern_v and_o by_o consequence_n be_v under_o some_o limitation_n which_o diocesan_n be_v not_o 2._o i_o remember_v that_o by_o the_o same_o conncil_n of_o antioch_n they_o be_v seven_o allow_v to_o give_v pacifick_n letter_n to_o the_o clergy_n to_o go_v into_o other_o diocese_n which_o in_o those_o day_n the_o bishop_n only_o can_v do_v and_o which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o episcopal_a prerogative_n 3._o again_o the_o 10_o canon_n of_o antioch_n decree_n that_o the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la although_o they_o have_v receive_v imposition_n of_o hand_n by_o bishop_n may_v not_o dare_v to_o ordain_v a_o presbyter_n or_o deacon_n the_o obvious_a meaning_n whereof_o be_v that_o although_o the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la be_v ordain_v bishop_n ãâã_d they_o may_v not_o ordain_v presbyter_n or_o deacon_n without_o leave_n from_o the_o diocesan_n if_o a_o chorepiscopus_n receive_v the_o real_a character_n or_o power_n of_o a_o bishop_n he_o may_v be_v apt_a to_o think_v and_o conclude_v with_o himself_o that_o he_o may_v ordain_v presbyter_n and_o deacon_n as_o well_o as_o the_o diocesan_n be_v of_o the_o same_o order_n with_o he_o no_o say_v the_o canon_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o prohibition_n be_v manifest_a because_o at_o present_a he_o act_v only_o as_o a_o comminister_v and_o assistant_n in_o another_o diocese_n where_o he_o may_v not_o exert_v his_o episcopal_a power_n without_o licence_n from_o the_o diocesan_n nor_o can_v do_v it_o without_o breach_n of_o the_o peace_n and_o order_n of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v something_o of_o this_o kind_n even_o among_o ourselves_o at_o this_o day_n a_o diocesan_n bishop_n out_o of_o his_o own_o diocese_n and_o whilst_o he_o abide_v in_o another_o man_n can_v ordain_v presbyter_n and_o deacon_n without_o ãâã_d from_o the_o proper_a bishop_n and_o something_o of_o this_o nature_n i_o find_v in_o the_o 18_o canon_n of_o ancyra_n where_o a_o presbyter_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n for_o another_o diocese_n but_o reject_v be_v permit_v to_o return_v to_o his_o former_a post_n but_o still_o to_o as_o be_v a_o presbyter_n though_o retain_v his_o episcopal_a honour_n and_o character_n one_o may_v then_o be_v a_o real_a bishop_n and_o have_v the_o habitual_a power_n and_o intrinsic_a character_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o yet_o can_v put_v forth_o the_o act_n and_o ordain_v in_o another_o diocese_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n he_o shall_v it_o will_v breed_v confusion_n 4._o chorepiscopi_fw-la be_v real_a bishop_n because_o they_o have_v a_o equal_a right_n and_o authority_n to_o assist_v vote_n decree_n and_o confirm_v canon_n at_o council_n as_o diocesan_n bishop_n have_v divers_a of_o they_o subscribe_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o mere_a presbyter_n do_v so_o likewise_o but_o it_o be_v in_o the_o name_n and_o stead_n of_o their_o principal_n as_o their_o very_a subscription_n show_v thus_o vito_n or_o victor_n and_o vincentius_n presbyter_n and_o pope_n sylvester_n legate_n subscribe_v the_o nicene_n synod_n yet_o add_v to_o their_o common_a name_n romanus_n or_o roma_fw-la missus_fw-la so_o in_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n anno_fw-la 419._o two_o roman_a presbyter_n and_o legate_n of_o the_o pope_n do_v philippus_n presbyter_n legatus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la romanae_fw-la asellus_n presbyter_n legatus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la romanae_fw-la but_o the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la subscribe_v in_o their_o own_o name_n without_o mention_v any_o delegation_n at_o all_o and_o therefore_o act_v by_o their_o own_o proper_a inherent_a authority_n and_o by_o consequence_n be_v real_a bishop_n have_v i_o presume_v prove_v that_o the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la have_v the_o true_a episcopal_a character_n impress_v on_o they_o i_o come_v to_o consider_v 141._o what_o advantage_n mr._n o._n will_v make_v of_o '_o they_o in_o the_o first_o place_n from_o the_o 10_o canon_n of_o ant._n a._n d._n 344_o or_o 341_o he_o lay_v it_o down_o that_o the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la or_o country_n bishop_n ordain_v presbyter_n until_o they_o be_v restrain_v by_o that_o canon_n i_o agree_v with_o mr._n o._n so_o far_o that_o it_o be_v very_o likely_a the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la presume_v to_o ordain_v presbyter_n in_o another_o bishop_n diocese_n until_o they_o be_v prohibt_v by_o this_o canon_n it_o be_v necessary_a they_o shall_v be_v restrain_v for_o the_o peace_n and_o good_a order_n of_o the_o church_n from_o have_v a_o uncontrollable_a liberty_n of_o ordain_v in_o another_o bishop_n diocese_n and_o without_o his_o consent_n the_o rule_n be_v high_o reasonable_a and_o observe_v to_o this_o day_n however_o this_o be_v the_o canon_n will_v do_v mr._n o._n no_o service_n if_o the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la be_v real_a bishop_n and_o more_o than_o presbyter_n of_o which_o i_o have_v already_o produce_v sufficient_a proof_n again_o mr._n o._n gather_v that_o if_o these_o chorepiscopi_fw-la be_v bishop_n than_o it_o appear_v that_o bishop_n be_v make_v not_o only_o in_o city_n but_o in_o country_n village_n this_o i_o grant_v also_o unto_o mr._n o._n but_o it_o nothing_o concern_v the_o matter_n in_o hand_n we_o must_v distinguish_v between_o diocesan_n bishop_n who_o seat_n and_o principal_a church_n be_v ofttimes_o in_o village_n and_o the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la who_o be_v not_o diocesan_n but_o the_o comministri_fw-la and_o vicarii_fw-la of_o the_o city_n bishop_n now_o how_o far_o the_o delegated_a power_n of_o a_o chorepiscopus_n extend_v no_o one_o alive_a can_v tell_v at_o this_o day_n it_o be_v nothing_o likely_a that_o it_o be_v confine_v to_o one_o village_n only_o as_o mr._n o._n contend_v though_o haply_o his_o ordinary_a residence_n and_o particular_a care_n may_v be_v in_o some_o country-town_n where_o he_o discharge_v the_o ordinary_a duty_n of_o a_o presbyter_n and_o on_o that_o score_n may_v be_v account_v as_o a_o country_n presbyter_n under_o the_o city_n bishop_n such_o at_o this_o day_n be_v even_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n who_o be_v by_o commendam_fw-la possess_v of_o a_o rectory_n in_o another_o diocese_n he_o can_v act_n there_o but_o as_o a_o presbyter_n except_o he_o have_v leave_v from_o the_o proper_a bishop_n for_o
aught_o any_o thing_n then_o that_o mr._n o._n say_v or_o pretend_v to_o prove_v the_o delegated_a power_n of_o a_o chorepiscopus_n reach_v to_o more_o than_o one_o or_o half_a a_o dozen_o village_n well!_o mr._n o._n go_v on_o and_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o country_n village_n where_o the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la be_v fix_v be_v but_o thin_o people_v with_o christian_n the_o majority_n or_o at_o least_o great_a number_n of_o the_o people_n be_v heathen_n by_o which_o he_o add_v we_o may_v guess_v at_o the_o bigness_n of_o primitive_a diocese_n which_o be_v scarce_o as_o large_a as_o our_o lesser_a parish_n here_o be_v divers_a thing_n suppose_v and_o assert_v but_o none_o prove_v 1._o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o the_o chorepiscopus_n power_n be_v confine_v to_o one_o village_n or_o country_n parish_n only_o this_o aught_o to_o be_v make_v out_o by_o mr._n o._n 2._o it_o be_v assert_v that_o these_o country_n village_n be_v thin_o people_v with_o christian_n but_o that_o be_v more_o than_o mr._n o._n know_v and_o the_o contrary_n be_v more_o probable_a so_o that_o they_o abound_v with_o christian_n now_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o constantius_n son_n of_o constantine_n the_o great_a when_o that_o council_n of_o antioch_n be_v hold_v and_o from_o whence_o mr._n o._n make_v the_o deduction_n beside_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o a_o chorepiscopus_n be_v never_o make_v but_o where_o the_o christian_n be_v numerous_a in_o short_a how_o thin_a soever_o particular_a village_n be_v of_o christian_n yet_o there_o be_v many_o very_o many_o village_n all_o of_o they_o have_v some_o christian_n and_o a_o power_n over_o they_o be_v commit_v to_o the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la this_o note_n of_o mr._n oh_o be_v not_o very_o much_o to_o the_o purpose_n but_o however_o from_o the_o premise_n he_o collect_v 4._o that_o we_o may_v thence_o guess_v at_o the_o bigness_n of_o primitive_a diocese_n which_o be_v scarce_o as_o large_a as_o our_o lesser_a parish_n something_o of_o this_o nature_n may_v perhaps_o be_v conjecture_v if_o all_o mr._n o._n have_v assert_v without_o proof_n and_o overlook_v without_o examination_n be_v true_a but_o i_o ask_v whether_o this_o be_v not_o a_o intolerable_a piece_n of_o confidence_n to_o intimate_v at_o this_o rate_n that_o these_o country_n village_n be_v separate_v and_o independent_a diocese_n when_o as_o it_o be_v manifest_a from_o the_o very_a canon_n that_o they_o be_v appendage_n of_o the_o city_n diocese_n and_o ant._n subject_a to_o the_o city_n bishop_n here_o then_o instead_o of_o a_o small_a parish_n bishopric_n we_o have_v find_v as_o large_a a_o diocese_n haply_o as_o we_o be_v at_o this_o day_n mr._n o._n proceed_v and_o affirm_v that_o the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la be_v a_o instance_n of_o bishop_n without_o subject_a presbyter_n they_o be_v but_o parish_n bishop_n under_o city_n bishop_n say_v then_o a_o chorepiscopus_n have_v the_o charge_n of_o one_o only_a single_a village_n or_o particular_a congregation_n special_o allot_v to_o he_o which_o at_o this_o day_n we_o call_v a_o parish_n admit_v this_o yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n without_o subject_a presbyter_n probable_o he_o have_v some_o district_n of_o the_o diocese_n commit_v to_o his_o particular_a care_n and_o inspection_n the_o canon_n of_o antioch_n seem_v to_o intimate_v thus_o much_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o synod_n that_o the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la govern_v the_o church_n in_o the_o plural_a subject_n to_o they_o and_o to_o content_v themselves_o with_o this_o care_n and_o solicitude_n of_o constitute_a reader_n but_o grant_v they_o have_v no_o subject_a presbyter_n but_o act_v ordinary_o as_o parish_n presbyter_n yet_o they_o be_v real_a bishop_n and_o ready_a upon_o occasion_n to_o discharge_v the_o diocesan_n office_n when_o require_v which_o prebyter_n can_v not_o morever_o if_o these_o chorepiscopi_fw-la be_v only_a presbyter_n and_o bishop_n of_o a_o small_a congregation_n as_o mr._n o._n have_v before_o conclude_v why_o be_v the_o caution_n give_v they_o against_o ordain_v presbyter_n and_o deacon_n except_o it_o be_v for_o other_o parish_n or_o church_n for_o sure_o they_o do_v not_o ordain_v presbyter_n and_o deacon_n for_o themselves_o if_o they_o do_v even_o so_o they_o must_v have_v have_v presbyter_n subject_a to_o they_o in_o short_a they_o have_v doubtless_o a_o delegated_a power_n from_o the_o city_n or_o diocesan_n bishop_n to_o ordain_v presbyter_n and_o deacon_n ãâã_d ãâã_d where_o and_o when_o ever_o occasion_n require_v but_o in_o the_o last_o place_n mr._n o._n urge_v the_o second_o council_n of_o 142._o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d can._n seven_o which_o make_v the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la to_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o with_o ãâã_d this_o council_n be_v provincial_a and_o hold_v in_o spain_n anno_fw-la 620._o which_o be_v therefore_o of_o no_o great_a authority_n with_o i_o especial_o since_o the_o argument_n it_o insist_o on_o be_v chief_o draw_v from_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o so_o the_o canon_n conclude_v quoe_v ãâã_d eye_v a_o seed_n apostolica_fw-la prohibita_fw-la esse_fw-la noscuntur_fw-la nevertheless_o that_o i_o may_v not_o be_v think_v to_o decline_v any_o thing_n say_v on_o this_o subject_n that_o have_v the_o appearance_n of_o a_o argument_n against_o i_o i_o answer_v that_o although_o by_o the_o first_o design_n and_o institution_n of_o the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la they_o be_v real_a bishop_n so_o it_o be_v before_o and_o after_o the_o council_n of_o ancyra_n and_o antioch_n for_o sometime_o yet_o not_o long_o afterward_o a_o end_n be_v put_v to_o these_o chorepiscopi_fw-la so_o i_o read_v in_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n can._n 57_o hold_v anno_fw-la 364._o there_o and_o then_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o bishop_n be_v not_o to_o be_v make_v any_o more_o in_o village_n and_o in_o the_o country_n understand_v within_o another_o diocese_n but_o only_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o their_o stead_n which_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v but_o presbyter_n intrufted_a with_o the_o administration_n of_o some_o part_n of_o the_o episcopal_a power_n but_o it_o be_v observable_a what_o be_v after_o add_v as_o for_o those_o chorepiscopi_fw-la who_o have_v be_v already_o make_v the_o former_a canon_n of_o ancyra_n and_o antioch_n must_v be_v observe_v by_o they_o that_o they_o do_v nothing_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o city_n bishop_n where_o we_o see_v plain_o a_o supersedeas_fw-la be_v give_v unto_o that_o order_n of_o the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la for_o the_o future_a nor_o be_v this_o alteration_n to_o be_v wonder_v at_o for_o the_o make_v the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la or_o vicarious_a bishop_n in_o the_o country_n belong_v to_o another_o diocese_n be_v mere_o a_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n and_o by_o the_o same_o power_n that_o it_o be_v introduce_v it_o may_v again_o be_v annul_v i_o observe_v moreover_o that_o the_o 2d_o clause_n above_o mention_v which_o still_o reserve_v to_o the_o former_a chorepiscopi_fw-la their_o power_n which_o have_v be_v commit_v to_o they_o by_o the_o city_n bishop_n show_v that_o they_o have_v receive_v some_o character_n which_o a_o council_n can_v not_o deprive_v they_o of_o for_o otherwise_o the_o power_n of_o the_o former_a chorepiscopi_fw-la may_v have_v be_v abrogate_a as_o well_o as_o the_o order_n its_o self_n entire_o dissolve_v for_o the_o future_a the_o occasion_n of_o this_o change_n make_v by_o the_o laodicean_n father_n doubtless_o be_v that_o they_o have_v by_o experience_n find_v some_o inconvenience_n and_o disorder_n happen_v through_o these_o chorepiscopi_fw-la who_o it_o may_v be_v can_v never_o be_v hinder_v from_o ordain_v presbyter_n and_o deacon_n in_o other_o bishop_n diocefse_n contrary_a to_o all_o order_n and_o good_a rule_n therefore_o a_o end_n be_v put_v to_o they_o and_o in_o their_o place_n be_v substitute_v the_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d who_o i_o imagaine_n be_v like_o our_o archdeacon_n at_o this_o day_n and_o be_v institute_v for_o the_o diocesan_n ease_n in_o matter_n of_o less_o moment_n but_o upon_o no_o account_n be_v to_o have_v the_o episcopal_a character_n impress_v on_o they_o with_o power_n to_o ordain_v no_o not_o with_o the_o bishop_n licence_n according_o the_o late_a learned_a bishop_n of_o worcester_n observe_v that_o lanfranc_n ãâã_d 146._o make_v a_o archdeacon_n with_o jurisdiction_n in_o his_o see_n that_o thomas_n archbishop_n of_o york_n first_o divide_v his_o diocese_n into_o archdeaconries_n and_o remigius_n bishop_n of_o lincoln_n his_o into_o seven_o archdeaconry_n say_v harry_n of_o huntingdon_n one_o occasion_n hereof_o be_v the_o lay_v aside_o the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la as_o too_o much_o assume_v unto_o themselves_o the_o sum_n of_o what_o have_v be_v say_v be_v that_o the_o ãâã_d be_v at_o first_o real_a bishop_n but_o in_o another_o diocese_n where_o they_o may_v put_v forth_o such_o episcopal_a act_n as_o be_v permit_v they_o within_o some_o certain_a
limit_a district_n and_o even_o ordain_v presbyter_n and_o deacon_n when_o express_o delegated_a thereto_o by_o the_o diocesan_n that_o they_o refide_v in_o some_o country_n village_n where_o their_o ordinary_a and_o constant_a work_n be_v no_o other_o than_o of_o presbyter_n and_o so_o be_v look_v on_o as_o the_o diocesan_n presbyter_n which_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n prejudice_v their_o episcopal_a character_n one_o may_v be_v a_o bishop_n yet_o without_o a_o diocese_n as_o one_o may_v be_v a_o presbyter_n without_o a_o title_n or_o parish_n the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n think_v fit_a to_o put_v a_o end_n unto_o this_o order_n so_o do_v the_o roman_n and_o spanish_a church_n as_o also_o the_o english_a haply_o the_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d or_o archdeacon_n may_v have_v the_o title_n of_o chorepiscopi_fw-la for_o some_o while_n continue_v to_o they_o be_v substitute_v in_o their_o room_n but_o this_o be_v no_o proof_n that_o they_o be_v presbyter_n at_o their_o first_o institution_n when_o the_o real_a episcopal_a character_n be_v ãâã_d on_o they_o though_o no_o diocese_n be_v yet_o actual_o allot_v they_o this_o be_v what_o i_o think_v needful_a and_o enough_o to_o be_v offer_v in_o answer_n to_o the_o difficulty_n start_v about_o the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la as_o for_o that_o epistle_n to_o ãâã_d it_o shall_v suffice_v to_o note_v that_o it_o be_v one_o of_o those_o which_o be_v account_v spurious_a as_o may_v be_v collect_v from_o bellarmin_n himself_o who_o judgement_n be_v ejus_fw-la scripta_fw-la non_fw-la extant_a exceptis_fw-la scrip._n paucis_fw-la epistolis_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d sun_n inter_v epistold_n s._n hieronymi_n aliique_fw-la in_o hiftorid_a ãâã_d l._n 2._o c._n 22._o l._n 5._o c._n 10._o 11._o the_o rest_n eccles._n therefore_o and_o this_o in_o particular_a be_v apocryphal_a it_o be_v possible_o counterfeit_v by_o some_o that_o live_v after_o the_o council_n of_o hispalis_n there_o be_v a_o very_a great_a agreement_n between_o this_o epistle_n and_o that_o seven_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n as_o who_o ever_o will_v read_v they_o must_v confess_v we_o shall_v not_o need_v therefore_o to_o be_v concern_v at_o any_o thing_n bring_v against_o we_o out_o of_o this_o connterfeit_a epistle_n chap._n ix_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a mro._n as_o if_o all_o antiquity_n be_v on_o his_o side_n omit_v not_o to_o argue_v even_o from_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a its_o self_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o power_n of_o presbyter_n ordain_v which_o be_v a_o discovery_n so_o new_a and_o surprise_v that_o one_o will_v ãâã_d the_o whole_a chriftian_a church_n have_v be_v blind_a above_o these_o 1300._o year_n last_o paft_n till_o he_o with_o the_o help_n of_o mr._n baxter_n have_v be_v please_v to_o open_v all_o our_o eye_n at_o last_o and_o to_o assure_v we_o that_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a decree_v 135._o concern_v the_o presbyter_n ordain_v by_o melitius_fw-la at_o ãâã_d as_o follow_v he_o autem_fw-la qui_fw-la dei_fw-la gratia_n &_o nostris_fw-la lege_fw-la vestris_fw-la precibus_fw-la adjuti_fw-la ad_fw-la ãâã_d scbisma_n deflexisse_fw-la compersi_fw-la sunt_fw-la sed_fw-la se_fw-la intra_fw-la catholica_fw-la &_o apostolicae_fw-la ãâã_d fine_n ab_fw-la erroris_fw-la labe_fw-la vacuos_fw-la continuerint_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la ãâã_d tum_fw-la ministros_fw-la ãâã_d &c_n &c_n mr._n o._n have_v take_v this_o passage_n out_o of_o mr._n baxter_n and_o he_o out_o of_o some_o translator_n that_o do_v not_o or_o will_v not_o understand_v the_o historian_n aright_o the_o word_n be_v part_n of_o a_o letter_n write_v by_o the_o nicene_n father_n to_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n wherein_o they_o give_v a_o account_n to_o that_o church_n of_o what_o have_v be_v propound_v and_o examine_v in_o the_o synod_n and_o what_o have_v be_v decree_v and_o confirm_v therein_o as_o first_o that_o the_o impiety_n 9_o of_o arrius_n and_o his_o accomplice_n have_v be_v bring_v into_o question_n and_o condemn_v etc._n etc._n that_o as_o for_o melitius_fw-la it_o please_v the_o synod_n to_o deal_v more_o gentle_o with_o he_o than_o with_o arrius_n viz._n that_o he_o shall_v remain_v in_o his_o own_o city_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v have_v no_o power_n to_o ordain_v or_o to_o propose_v the_o name_n of_o the_o candidate_n to_o the_o holy_a function_n only_o he_o may_v retain_v the_o bare_a title_n of_o his_o honour_n that_o be_v of_o bishop_n that_o those_o who_o have_v be_v constitute_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d by_o he_o be_v first_o confirm_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d by_o a_o more_o solemn_a and_o religious_a imposition_n of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n may_v be_v allow_v to_o join_v in_o matter_n proper_o belong_v to_o they_o but_o that_o until_o they_o have_v obtain_v their_o honour_n and_o ministry_n again_o they_o shall_v be_v second_o unto_o all_o those_o who_o in_o every_o diocese_n and_o church_n have_v be_v before_o propose_v under_o the_o authority_n of_o our_o most_o belove_a colleague_n alexander_n and_o moreover_o shall_v have_v no_o power_n to_o propound_v the_o name_n of_o those_o who_o be_v subject_a to_o alexander_n nor_o in_o short_a to_o do_v any_o thing_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o alexandria_n this_o be_v all_o the_o nicene_n synod_n write_v concern_v the_o melitian_n or_o those_o who_o have_v be_v constitute_v and_o ordain_v by_o melitius_fw-la here_o be_v not_o a_o syllable_n of_o presbyter_n or_o of_o ordain_v minister_n the_o passage_n may_v as_o well_o and_o be_v to_o be_v ãâã_d of_o bishop_n and_o of_o ordain_v bishop_n but_o for_o the_o more_o through_o understand_v it_o we_o must_v remember_v that_o melitius_fw-la whilst_o peter_n be_v patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n have_v be_v bishop_n of_o lycus_n a_o city_n in_o egypt_n subject_n to_o the_o say_a patriarch_n that_o during_o the_o persecution_n under_o maximinus_n peter_n abscond_v melitius_fw-la have_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o constitute_v or_o ordain_v bishop_n 24._o which_o belong_v unto_o the_o patriarch_n to_o do_v it_o be_v not_o indeed_o doubt_v but_o that_o he_o ordain_v presbyter_n and_o deacon_n also_o nevertheless_o his_o first_o and_o principal_a crime_n as_o i_o believe_v be_v his_o constitute_n or_o ordain_v bishop_n which_o be_v a_o manifest_a invasion_n of_o the_o patriarch_n right_a and_o that_o ãâã_d constitute_v and_o ordain_v bishop_n be_v prove_v by_o valesius_fw-la locum_fw-la out_o of_o epiphanius_n nay_o the_o say_v learned_a annotator_n evince_n that_o melitius_fw-la constitute_v or_o ordain_v twenty_o eight_o bishop_n beside_o five_o presbyter_n and_o three_o deacon_n as_o he_o gather_v from_o the_o second_o apology_n of_o athanasius_n against_o the_o arrian_n from_o whence_o he_o make_v no_o scruple_n to_o affirm_v that_o socrates_n in_o this_o place_n speak_v chief_o of_o bishop_n constitute_v or_o ordain_v by_o ãâã_d yet_o so_o as_o that_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n also_o be_v ãâã_d by_o he_o ãâã_d say_v he_o if_o the_o nicene_n father_n hide_v herein_o decree_v nothing_o against_o the_o melitian_n ãâã_d they_o have_v leave_v their_o work_n very_o lame_a and_o imperfect_a beside_o ãâã_d become_v schismatical_a not_o by_o ordain_v presbyter_n but_o by_o ordain_v bishop_n hence_o sozomen_n observe_v that_o melitius_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d supra_fw-la have_v usurp_v the_o power_n of_o ordain_v which_o do_v not_o all_o belong_v unto_o he_o the_o power_n of_o ordain_v who_o why_o not_o bishop_n for_o till_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o be_v fall_v into_o ãâã_d he_o have_v certain_o as_o bishop_n power_n to_o ãâã_d priest_n and_o deacon_n but_o not_o of_o ordain_v or_o ãâã_d bishop_n without_o the_o ãâã_d leave_v and_o this_o be_v i_o suppose_v if_o not_o his_o only_a fault_n yet_o his_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d wherefore_o when_o the_o nicene_n father_n decree_v that_o the_o ãâã_d who_o have_v be_v constitute_v and_o ordain_v by_o ãâã_d may_v not_o intermeddle_v in_o the_o constitute_n or_o ordain_v other_o until_o themselves_o have_v be_v confirm_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d by_o a_o more_o solemn_a imposition_n of_o hand_n they_o must_v thereby_o mean_v that_o the_o melitian_n bishop_n be_v ordain_v schismatical_o be_v suspend_v from_o ordain_v until_o they_o have_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o patriarch_n and_o some_o of_o the_o egyptian_a bishop_n subject_a to_o he_o and_o this_o be_v all_o that_o the_o synod_n declare_v concern_v the_o melitian_n but_o neither_o mr._n o._n nor_o mr._n baxter_n for_o any_o thing_n i_o can_v see_v in_o the_o plea_n have_v take_v any_o notice_n of_o this_o passage_n ãâã_d whereof_o we_o be_v amuse_v with_o something_o less_o pertinent_a to_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n as_o i_o be_o now_o about_o to_o show_v for_o the_o nicene_n father_n go_v on_o in_o that_o epistle_n to_o speak_v of_o the_o alexandrian_n that_o be_v such_o as_o have_v not_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o alexander_n the_o
they_o but_o by_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n only_o and_o not_o by_o any_o inherent_a right_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o this_o letter_n that_o argue_v any_o thing_n for_o their_o intrinisick_n power_n to_o ordain_v the_o most_o that_o can_v be_v say_v be_v that_o they_o have_v a_o ancient_a right_n by_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n and_o custom_n to_o ordain_v with_o bishop_n and_o if_o so_o than_o their_o ordain_v without_o bishop_n be_v a_o nullity_n as_o well_o as_o a_o irregularity_n because_o they_o transgress_v that_o very_a law_n which_o alone_o give_v they_o their_o power_n 3._o it_o be_v a_o great_a mistake_n to_o think_v every_o thing_n establish_v or_o rather_o reinforce_v by_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n have_v no_o better_a foundation_n than_o that_o very_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n or_o reinforcement_n a_o divine_a and_o scriptural_a law_n may_v and_o have_v be_v oftentimes_o confirm_v and_o renew_v by_o a_o synodical_a decree_n and_o subject_v to_o ecclesiastical_a penalty_n the_o lord's-day_n which_o mr._n o._n will_v not_o deny_v to_o be_v holy_a by_o divine_a institution_n have_v be_v make_v so_o by_o humane_a appointment_n also_o and_o punishment_n decree_v against_o those_o that_o profane_a it_o this_o be_v manifest_a among_o out_o self_n here_o in_o england_n and_o constantine_n ordain_v the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n for_o divine_a worship_n shall_v we_o say_v the_o lord's-day_n be_v 18._o not_o holy_a and_o appropriate_a to_o divine_a worship_n before_o that_o emperor_n constitution_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n be_v the_o 38._o 41._o 42_o 49._o 50_o 51._o etc._n etc._n can._n apostol_n the_o decree_n then_o of_o the_o synod_n of_o nice_a hinder_v not_o but_o that_o it_o may_v have_v be_v a_o divine_a institution_n that_o presbyter_n ordain_v and_o govern_v only_o with_o and_o under_o bishop_n and_o if_o this_o be_v so_o as_o i_o have_v former_o it_o be_v hope_v make_v good_a than_o presbyter_n ordain_v without_o bishop_n will_v prove_v a_o nullity_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o divine_a and_o scripture_n rule_n as_o well_o as_o a_o irregularity_n or_o contrary_n to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n but_o how_o do_v the_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n show_v that_o ordination_n belong_v to_o the_o presbyter_n office_n his_o meaning_n i_o suppose_v be_v that_o the_o nicene_n synod_n can_v not_o appoint_v presbyter_n to_o ordain_v with_o bishop_n except_o the_o presbyter_n have_v a_o prior_n and_o a_o intrinsic_a power_n to_o ordain_v but_o i_o ask_v why_o may_v not_o the_o synod_n show_v thereby_o that_o the_o presbyter_n intrinsic_a power_n what_o ever_o it_o be_v belong_v to_o they_o only_o in_o conjunction_n with_o bishop_n and_o not_o separately_z from_o '_o they_o if_o a_o prince_n command_v the_o general_n of_o his_o army_n to_o do_v nothing_o of_o moment_n without_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o principal_a field-officer_n this_o show_v that_o the_o field-officer_n have_v a_o power_n to_o act_n with_o the_o general_n and_o under_o he_o but_o not_o that_o they_o have_v a_o power_n to_o act_n separate_o and_o without_o he_o and_o if_o the_o general_n or_o other_o the_o king_n minister_n declare_v this_o part_n of_o the_o commission_n to_o the_o field-officer_n they_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o act_n in_o conjunction_n with_o their_o general_n for_o the_o commission_n so_o appoint_v but_o it_o will_v be_v presumption_n and_o mutiny_n to_o act_n without_o the_o general_n which_o if_o they_o presume_v to_o do_v their_o order_n will_v of_o themselves_o be_v null_a and_o invalid_a brief_o mr._n o._n must_n first_o prove_v that_o the_o nicene_n father_n suppose_v the_o presbyter_n to_o have_v a_o intrinsic_a power_n to_o ordain_v alone_o before_o he_o can_v make_v out_o that_o their_o separate_a ordination_n be_v irregular_a only_o and_o not_o invalid_a in_o themselves_o but_o mr._n o._n again_o argue_v that_o if_o it_o be_v say_v these_o nicene_n constitution_n condemn_v schismatical_a ordination_n which_o he_o grant_v yet_o answer_v that_o schism_n as_o such_o can_v make_v ordination_n null_a though_o it_o imply_v a_o irregularity_n hereunto_o i_o return_v that_o schism_n as_o such_o do_v make_v the_o ordination_n null_a it_o be_v null_a as_o to_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o office_n so_o confer_v though_o not_o as_o to_o the_o habitual_a power_n or_o intrinsic_a character_n give_v this_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v the_o very_a sense_n of_o the_o nicene_n father_n in_o this_o their_o epistle_n to_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n the_o melitian_n bishop_n because_o they_o have_v be_v schismatical_o ordain_v be_v suspend_v from_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o office_n yet_o their_o character_n be_v not_o declare_v utter_o void_a and_o annul_v there_o be_v room_n leave_v for_o their_o exercise_v it_o again_o upon_o some_o certain_a condition_n and_o the_o title_n of_o bishop_n be_v still_o continue_v unto_o they_o which_o can_v not_o be_v if_o the_o character_n have_v be_v entire_o lose_v or_o null_a hitherto_o belong_v the_o case_n of_o colluthus_n and_o ischyras_n which_o some_o episcopal_a divine_n have_v urge_v against_o the_o validity_n of_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n for_o say_v they_o ischyras_n ordain_v by_o colluthus_n a_o presbyter_n be_v in_o athanasius_n constant_o call_v and_o declare_v no_o presbyter_n but_o a_o mere_a laic_a and_o not_o suffer_v so_o much_o as_o to_o have_v the_o honour_n and_o title_n of_o presbyter_n as_o all_o other_o of_o the_o melitian_n schism_n episcopal_o though_o schismatical_o ordain_v be_v allow_v so_o the_o nicene_n father_n have_v decree_v the_o reason_n why_o ischyras_n be_v reject_v be_v this_o he_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o a_o presbyter_n only_o viz._n colluthus_n blondel_n have_v take_v much_o pain_n to_o perplex_v this_o fact_n with_o sundry_a difficulty_n and_o objection_n throw_v in_o our_o way_n on_o purpose_n to_o render_v it_o useless_a unto_o we_o in_o the_o present_a controversy_n and_o mr._n o._n also_o have_v make_v his_o observation_n on_o it_o i_o shall_v consider_v they_o both_o and_o to_o that_o end_n shall_v in_o the_o first_o place_n produce_v the_o principal_a passage_n that_o occur_v in_o athanasius_n second_o apology_n relate_v to_o the_o say_v colluthus_n and_o ãâã_d there_o i_o read_v of_o ischyras_n who_o neither_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o church_n nor_o ath._n when_o alexander_n receive_v the_o presbyter_n ordain_v by_o melitius_fw-la be_v reckon_v among_o they_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o melitius_fw-la his_o ãâã_d so_o that_o he_o be_v no_o presbyter_n how_o then_o or_o by_o who_o be_v he_o create_v a_o presbyter_n by_o colluthus_n for_o that_o alone_o remain_v to_o be_v pretend_v but_o it_o be_v grant_v on_o all_o hand_n that_o colluthus_n die_v presbyter_n all_o his_o ordination_n be_v void_a and_o all_o ordain_v by_o he_o in_o the_o schism_n reduce_v into_o the_o order_n of_o laic_n but_o they_o the_o eusebian_n and_o melitian_n call_v a_o private_a fellow_n presbyter_n ischyras_n be_v not_o acknowledge_v a_o presbyter_n by_o athanasius_n 135._o ischyras_n be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o presbyter_n he_o never_o be_v a_o presbyter_n 764._o of_o melitius_fw-la not_o ordain_v by_o he_o ischyras_n be_v in_o no_o wise_a a_o cleric_a though_o the_o eusebian_n and_o 781._o melitian_n give_v it_o out_o that_o he_o be_v a_o presbyter_n it_o be_v remarkable_a that_o ischyras_n in_o his_o submissive_a letter_n unto_o 782._o athanasius_n disown_v not_o his_o be_v a_o presbyter_n ordain_v by_o ãâã_d which_o i_o note_v here_o by_o the_o by_o ischyras_n our_o accuser_n be_v no_o manner_n of_o way_n a_o presbyter_n because_o 789._o he_o be_v not_o mention_v in_o the_o ãâã_d or_o register_n of_o those_o who_o have_v be_v ordain_v by_o melitius_fw-la ischyras_n never_o be_v a_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n but_o boast_v 792._o himself_o to_o be_v a_o presbuter_n of_o colluthus_n though_o no_o body_n believe_v he_o so_o that_o he_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v depose_v by_o the_o alexandrian_a synod_n and_o number_v among_o the_o laic_n ischyras_n a_o fellow_n that_o call_v himself_o a_o presbyter_n but_o be_v 794._o no_o presbyter_n for_o he_o be_v ordain_v by_o a_o catholic_n presbyter_n colluthus_n who_o himself_z ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v but_o a_o imaginary_a or_o counterfeit_n bishop_n and_o be_v command_v in_o the_o general_n council_n of_o alexandria_n by_o hosius_n and_o the_o other_o bishop_n to_o be_v a_o presbyter_n as_o he_o have_v be_v before_o so_o that_o by_o consequence_n all_o ordain_v by_o he_o go_v back_o into_o their_o former_a place_n and_o ischyras_n appear_v a_o laic_a the_o eusebian_n and_o melitian_n call_v this_o fellow_n bishop_n who_o 802._o be_v not_o at_o all_o a_o presbyter_n but_o they_o make_v the_o emperor_n to_o write_v unto_o colluthus_n for_o nothing_o ãâã_d amiss_o to_o they_o that_o a_o church_n be_v provide_v for_o ischyras_n and_o immediate_o cause_v he_o to_o be_v
which_o proper_o belong_v to_o we_o here_o be_v to_o prove_v it_o to_o have_v be_v the_o principle_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o four_o century_n when_o the_o alexandrian_a and_o nicene_n synod_n be_v assemble_v which_o we_o think_v also_o be_v hitherto_o make_v good_a but_o blondel_n go_v on_o ischyras_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o alexandrian_a 326._o bishop_n whence_o it_o appear_v he_o be_v take_v for_o a_o presbyter_n not_o a_o mere_a laic_a for_o else_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o affirm_v he_o be_v depose_v a_o man_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v knock_v down_o except_o he_o stand_v on_o his_o foot_n before_o ans._n this_o be_v what_o we_o utter_o deny_v and_o be_v indeed_o a_o mere_a quirk_n no_o better_a than_o fool_v ischyras_n and_o many_o other_o be_v not_o proper_o depose_v but_o only_o declare_v no_o presbyter_n as_o be_v ordain_v by_o a_o presbyter_n which_o may_v reasonable_o be_v gather_v from_o the_o expression_n use_v in_o the_o foresay_a synodical_a epistle_n concern_v such_o as_o colluthus_n have_v ordain_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o ischyras_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d denote_v no_o more_o and_o therefore_o when_o the_o synod_n of_o jerusalem_n complain_v how_o the_o eusebian_n cause_v ischyras_n to_o be_v call_v bishop_n they_o aggravate_v the_o insolence_n in_o these_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d whereas_o he_o be_v not_o so_o hier._n much_o as_o a_o presbyter_n viz._n at_o that_o very_a time_n that_o be_v to_o say_v when_o ãâã_d be_v alive_a and_o in_o some_o credit_n and_o when_o the_o eusebian_n give_v he_o out_o for_o a_o bishop_n before_o the_o alexandrian_a synod_n be_v assemble_v or_o have_v declare_v he_o a_o laic_a even_o than_o he_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o presbyter_n so_o that_o he_o be_v a_o mere_a laic_a in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n and_o before_o the_o alexandrian_a father_n have_v so_o pronounce_v he_o nor_o do_v i_o see_v any_o impropriety_n in_o say_v ischyras_n though_o no_o presbyter_n be_v depose_v for_o though_o he_o be_v real_o no_o presbyter_n as_o be_v ordain_v by_o a_o presbyter_n only_o yet_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o office_n and_o title_n of_o presbyter_n support_v and_o uphold_v himself_o by_o stilt_n by_o confidence_n and_o hypocrisy_n he_o be_v believe_v a_o presbyter_n by_o many_o and_o by_o many_o countenance_v and_o keep_v up_o as_o such_o now_o though_o a_o man_n lie_v prostrate_a on_o the_o floor_n can_v be_v knock_v down_o qui_fw-la iaceo_fw-la in_o terrâ_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la unde_fw-la cadat_fw-la yet_o he_o who_o stand_v on_o crutch_n or_o be_v hold_v up_o by_o other_o it_o be_v not_o absurd_a to_o say_v he_o may_v be_v knock_v down_o which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v the_o weakness_n of_o blondel_n fancy_n and_o the_o false_a colour_n put_v on_o this_o argument_n but_o blundel_n give_v it_o yet_o a_o siner_n turn_v thus_o it_o be_v usual_a in_o that_o age_n say_v he_o to_o reduce_v real_a bishop_n and_o presbyter_n transgress_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n ad_fw-la laicam_fw-la communionem_fw-la and_o yet_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o they_o have_v be_v real_a bishop_n ans._n this_o be_v very_o true_a but_o be_v just_a such_o another_o piece_n of_o sophistry_n as_o before_o and_o reach_v not_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o cause_n for_o 1._o this_o will_v not_o evince_v that_o ever_o ãâã_d be_v a_o presbyter_n though_o some_o real_a presbyter_n for_o crime_n prove_v upon_o they_o be_v allow_v only_a lay-communion_n he_o have_v not_o ãâã_d we_o that_o they_o be_v declare_v mere_a laic_n they_o be_v only_o suspend_v from_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o presbyter_n and_o admit_v to_o lay-communion_n their_o character_n still_o as_o i_o may_v say_v lie_v dormant_a in_o they_o if_o any_o such_o instance_n be_v to_o be_v find_v it_o can_v thence_o be_v gather_v that_o ischyras_n also_o be_v so_o deal_v with_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o argue_v from_o one_o or_o a_o few_o particular_a instance_n unto_o all_o other_o or_o to_o any_o other_o single_a case_n especial_o which_o differ_v from_o they_o for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o misdemean_v one_o self_n in_o a_o office_n another_o to_o counterfeit_v it_o the_o former_a be_v deprive_v from_o perform_v what_o he_o be_v orherwise_o right_o qualify_v for_o the_o latter_a be_v not_o what_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o instance_n of_o the_o former_a kind_n be_v of_o a_o pure_a ecclesiastical_a punishment_n whereas_o the_o latter_a labour_n under_o a_o defect_n and_o error_n of_o the_o first_o concoction_n which_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n annul_v all_o his_o follow_v ministerial_a act_n he_o have_v never_o receive_v the_o power_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o though_o therefore_o a_o real_a presbyter_n be_v for_o his_o misbehaviour_n sometime_o condemn_v to_o lay-communion_n yet_o the_o suspension_n take_v of_o as_o he_o once_o be_v so_o he_o again_o become_v a_o real_a presbyter_n to_o all_o intent_n and_o purpose_n it_o be_v no_o good_a consequence_n hence_o draw_v that_o a_o counterfeit_n presbyter_n such_o be_v ischyras_n who_o be_v declare_v a_o mere_a laic_a must_v needs_o have_v be_v a_o presbyter_n neither_o will_v it_o follow_v that_o he_o who_o have_v usurp_v the_o seat_n of_o a_o presbyter_n from_o whence_o he_o be_v thrust_v down_o and_o depose_v be_v ever_o a_o real_a presbyter_n for_o a_o man_n may_v well_o enough_o be_v say_v to_o be_v depose_v from_o a_o office_n which_o he_o usurp_v and_o discharge_v for_o a_o while_n but_o never_o have_v a_o right_n and_o title_n to_o a_o real_a king_n though_o depose_v be_v once_o a_o real_a king_n that_o be_v undeniable_a but_o one_o that_o personate_v and_o be_v call_v a_o king_n and_o act_v all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o royal_a character_n for_o a_o time_n must_v be_v acknowledge_v never_o to_o have_v be_v a_o real_a king_n it_o be_v ischyras_n his_o case_n he_o act_v the_o part_n of_o a_o presbyter_n and_o be_v afterward_o kick_v off_o the_o stage_n shall_v it_o hence_o be_v conclude_v he_o be_v once_o a_o real_a presbyter_n under_o blondel_n favour_n i_o think_v not_o but_o let_v we_o see_v now_o what_o mr._n o._n who_o have_v a_o knack_n at_o improve_n argument_n ãâã_d offer_v about_o the_o case_n of_o ischyras_n he_o acknowledge_v colluthus_n be_v but_o a_o pretend_a bishop_n and_o therefore_o be_v command_v 181._o by_o the_o alexandrian_a council_n to_o be_v a_o presbyter_n i_o be_o of_o this_o mind_n and_o it_o be_v all_o i_o demand_v shall_v be_v grantedme_v the_o reader_n of_o himself_o will_v discern_v hereby_o that_o he_o have_v give_v up_o the_o whole_a cause_n but_o perhaps_o mr._n o._n mean_n that_o colluthus_n pretend_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n though_o he_o be_v not_o one_o and_o under_o that_o false_a colour_n to_o ordain_v therefore_o not_o his_o power_n of_o ordain_v as_o a_o presbyter_n be_v call_v in_o question_n but_o his_o dissimulation_n in_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v what_o he_o be_v not_o be_v condemn_v and_o so_o he_o be_v public_o declare_v to_o be_v a_o presbyter_n that_o be_v a_o pretend_a bishop_n only_o ans._n but_o i_o ask_v then_o why_o be_v ischyras_n lay_v aside_o as_o a_o mere_a laic_a sure_o not_o because_o his_o ordainer_n false_o assume_v the_o character_n of_o bishop_n which_o belong_v not_o to_o he_o but_o then_o say_v i_o be_v it_o not_o hard_a my_o ordainers_n dissimulation_n suppose_v he_o otherwise_o to_o have_v the_o power_n shall_v annul_v my_o order_n but_o colluthus_n his_o ordination_n be_v vacate_v not_o because_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n and_o be_v not_o but_o because_o he_o be_v a_o presbyter_n without_o power_n to_o ordain_v well!_o but_o mr._n o._n tell_v we_o ischyras_n ordination_n be_v declare_v void_a as_o be_v not_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o author_n colluthus_n belike_o not_o own_v he_o have_v ordain_v ischyras_n so_o that_o it_o not_o appear_v it_o be_v take_v for_o grant_v he_o be_v never_o ordain_v and_o so_o he_o become_v a_o laic_a no_o presbyter_n not_o because_o he_o be_v ordain_v by_o a_o presbyter_n but_o for_o want_v of_o any_o ordination_n that_o appear_v the_o meaning_n of_o all_o which_o as_o i_o apprehend_v be_v that_o the_o instance_n make_v nothing_o against_o ordination_n by_o presbyter_n see_v here_o be_v no_o ordination_n at_o all_o ischyras_n ordainer_n not_o own_v that_o they_o have_v impose_v hand_n on_o he_o for_o answer_v hereunto_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o what_o be_v above_o reply_v unto_o something_o of_o this_o kind_n the_o sum_n whereof_o be_v that_o ischyras_n be_v either_o real_o ordain_v by_o colluthus_n the_o presbyter_n or_o at_o least_o by_o his_o judge_n take_v for_o such_o which_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n as_o for_o dr._n field's_n argument_n
ãâã_d &_o sanctus_n hilarius_n whence_o some_o conclude_v they_o can_v be_v ascribe_v to_o so_o ill_a a_o man_n as_o the_o deacon_n but_o that_o either_o hilary_n bishop_n of_o poitiers_n or_o hilary_n of_o 916._o arles_n must_v have_v they_o yet_o vossius_fw-la 168._o contend_v that_o those_o title_n of_o beatus_fw-la &_o sanctus_n be_v by_o custom_n and_o in_o civility_n give_v to_o all_o clergyman_n whether_o they_o deserve_v they_o or_o not_o as_o at_o this_o day_n reverendus_fw-la &_o venerabilis_fw-la be_v that_o the_o commentary_n be_v write_v when_o damasus_n be_v rector_n ecclesiae_fw-la pope_n of_o rome_n tim._n and_o that_o hilary_n of_o poitiers_n die_v in_o the_o second_o year_n of_o damasus_n be_v too_o old_a to_o have_v either_o time_n or_o strength_n to_o perform_v such_o a_o work_n whilst_o that_o pope_n be_v live_v and_o last_o that_o hilary_n of_o arles_n come_v too_o late_o to_o write_v in_o damasus_n his_o pontificate_n or_o to_o be_v quote_v by_o st._n austin_n and_o thus_o the_o commentary_n and_o question_n will_v fall_v to_o the_o deacon_n share_n ans._n 1._o it_o be_v certain_a to_o i_o hilary_n of_o poitiers_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o the_o question_n and_o commentary_n as_o we_o now_o have_v they_o but_o not_o for_o the_o reason_n assign_v those_o word_n ãâã_d body_n rector_n est_fw-fr damasus_n be_v on_o 1_o tim._n 3._o from_o whence_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o commentary_n be_v but_o 52_o leaf_n in_o folio_n which_o he_o may_v have_v time_n and_o strength_n to_o finish_v in_o that_o pope_n first_o year_n the_o commentary_n moreover_o break_v off_o abrupt_o at_o the_o 10_o ch._n of_o the_o hebrew_n and_o the_o work_n be_v leave_v unfinished_a whence_o it_o may_v be_v think_v that_o there_o his_o life_n or_o his_o strength_n may_v fail_v he_o but_o still_o it_o be_v confess_v hilary_n of_o poitiers_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o they_o they_o be_v too_o mean_a to_o be_v father_v upon_o so_o great_a a_o man._n 2._o the_o particular_a testimony_n speak_v of_o before_o can_v be_v attribute_v unto_o hilary_n of_o arles_n for_o he_o flourish_v twenty_o year_n after_o austin_n 3._o neither_o can_v they_o belong_v to_o the_o deacon_n a_o reason_n of_o no_o credit_n or_o authority_n as_o i_o shall_v show_v wherefore_o 4._o they_o be_v cite_v out_o of_o some_o work_n of_o hilary_n of_o poitiers_n not_o now_o extant_a which_o may_v be_v confirm_v by_o another_o testimony_n in_o austin_n not_o yet_o observe_v by_o any_o that_o i_o know_v of_o write_v still_o against_o the_o pelagian_n ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la adversus_fw-la haereticos_fw-la acerrimum_fw-la defensorem_fw-la 490._o venerandum_fw-la quis_fw-la ignorat_fw-la hilarium_fw-la episcopum_fw-la gallum_fw-la which_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o no_o other_o hilary_n then_o the_o bishop_n of_o poitiers_n as_o be_v manifest_a from_o what_o have_v be_v say_v 5._o neither_o ãâã_d nor_o ãâã_d allow_v this_o deacon_n so_o much_o as_o a_o place_n in_o their_o catalogue_n of_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n be_v it_o seem_v unworthy_a that_o honour_n bellarmine_n indeed_o incidental_o mention_n he_o in_o his_o observation_n on_o ambroses_n work_n yet_o make_v no_o reckon_n of_o he_o but_o jerom_n fall_v foul_a on_o he_o call_v he_o in_o derision_n orbis_n deucalionem_fw-la 627._o and_o add_v libellos_fw-la adversus_fw-la nos_fw-la de_fw-la haereticis_fw-la rebaptizandis_fw-la edidit_fw-la it_o can_v then_o be_v think_v st._n austin_n will_v build_v upon_o this_o deacon_n authority_n thus_o much_o i_o think_v fit_a to_o say_v concern_v the_o passage_n of_o st._n austin_n borrow_v out_o of_o hilary_n suppose_v by_o some_o to_o be_v the_o deacon_n and_o author_n of_o the_o commentary_n and_o question_n of_o which_o i_o will_v now_o say_v something_o consider_v they_o in_o the_o lump_n 1._o i_o do_v suppose_v the_o same_o person_n or_o person_n whosoever_o they_o be_v write_v these_o commentary_n and_o question_n blondel_n himself_o be_v of_o this_o opinion_n and_o so_o be_v bellarmine_n in_o his_o observation_n on_o ambrose_n 59_o work_n 2._o i_o also_o judge_v they_o be_v write_v long_o after_o hilary_n of_o poitiers_n yea_o after_o jerom_n and_o austin_n by_o some_o ignorant_a idle_a and_o knaulsh_a fellow_n who_o mix_v truth_n and_o falsehood_n good_a and_o bad_a together_o collect_v some_o notion_n out_o of_o the_o father_n and_o add_v many_o of_o his_o own_o silly_a conceit_n the_o testimony_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v of_o be_v its_o likely_a collect_v out_o of_o austin_n the_o discourse_n about_o the_o ambition_n 101._o of_o the_o roman_a deacon_n exalt_v themselves_o above_o presbyter_n be_v borrow_v from_o jerom_n epistle_n to_o evagrius_n but_o to_o make_v short_a work_n on_o it_o let_v we_o hear_v erasmus_n censure_n of_o the_o question_n the_o author_n say_v he_o repeat_v many_o the_o same_o thing_n in_o several_a place_n propound_v the_o same_o question_n and_o treat_v of_o they_o over_o and_o over_o again_o be_v not_o constant_a in_o his_o opinion_n some_o scrap_n out_o of_o other_o man_n work_n be_v often_o insert_v he_o repeat_v what_o he_o have_v say_v ãâã_d but_o in_o a_o quite_o different_a stile_n he_o be_v very_o idle_a in_o start_a question_n which_o he_o ought_v not_o there_o be_v a_o perfect_a confusion_n in_o the_o work_n sometime_o he_o write_v commentary_n sometime_o controversy_n sometime_o he_o preach_v and_o sometime_o dispute_v very_o foolish_o and_o mere_o prate_v he_o be_v often_o scurrilous_a and_o abusive_a and_o yet_o have_v say_v many_o thing_n worthy_a to_o be_v read_v and_o know_v but_o gather_v out_o of_o other_o he_o cite_v not_o his_o author_n he_o cheat_v the_o reader_n with_o counterfeit_a title_n by_o the_o repetition_n and_o the_o disorder_n in_o his_o matter_n he_o write_v of_o by_o his_o tumultuous_a and_o womanish_a talkativeness_n he_o even_o kill_v his_o reader_n the_o first_o part_n seem_v to_o be_v the_o work_n of_o some_o greek_a affect_v to_o speak_v latin_a etc._n etc._n erasmus_n be_v more_o favourable_a to_o the_o commentary_n yet_o confess_v the_o preface_n be_v not_o st._n ambroses_n but_o some_o busy_a and_o illiterate_a fellow_n tack_v they_o to_o the_o commentary_n i_o make_v account_n then_o these_o commentary_n and_o question_n be_v of_o no_o credit_n or_o authority_n in_o any_o controversy_n whatever_o 2._o the_o compiler_n of_o they_o have_v intermix_v several_a thing_n favour_v episcopacy_n and_o so_o be_v jack_n of_o both-sides_z 1._o he_o expound_v the_o angel_n speak_v of_o 1_o cor._n 11._o 10._o bishop_n ground_v himself_o on_o the_o revelation_n and_o give_v the_o reason_n why_o woman_n ought_v to_o be_v cover_v in_o the_o church_n because_o of_o the_o angel_n that_o be_v bishop_n quia_fw-la episcopus_fw-la personam_fw-la habet_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o vicarius_fw-la est_fw-la domini_fw-la sustain_v the_o person_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v the_o vicar_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o which_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o day_n of_o paul_n else_o the_o explanation_n be_v altogether_o fruitless_a and_o impertinent_a 2._o he_o resemble_v the_o deacon_n to_o the_o levite_n presbyter_n to_o the_o priest_n whereof_o one_o be_v the_o highpriest_n unto_o who_o the_o bishop_n answer_v see_v question_n 101._o 3._o he_o grant_v timothy_n have_v the_o power_n ofordain_v commit_v to_o he_o by_o paul_n in_o these_o word_n unde_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la episcopum_fw-la ordinet_fw-la timotheus_n ostendit_fw-la paulus_n but_o he_o no_o where_o express_o allow_v this_o to_o the_o presbyter_n many_o other_o observation_n if_o it_o be_v worth_a while_n may_v be_v collect_v out_o of_o this_o author_n tend_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n 3._o he_o contradict_v himself_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o most_o ancient_a writer_n in_o the_o church_n he_o affirm_v that_o at_o first_o all_o may_v preach_v baptise_v and_o explain_v scripture_n but_o after_o church_n be_v establish_v and_o distinct_a office_n be_v appoint_v and_o the_o church_n begin_v to_o be_v govern_v another_o way_n so_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v presume_v to_o officiate_v in_o holy_a thing_n except_o he_o be_v ordain_v whereas_o nothing_o be_v more_o manifest_a than_o that_o there_o be_v at_o the_o council_n of_o jerusalem_n 15._o beside_o deacon_n two_o species_n of_o officer_n at_o least_o apostle_n and_o elder_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o prophet_n of_o who_o also_o we_o read_v act._n 15_o that_o when_o st._n paul_n write_v his_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n there_o be_v set_v in_o the_o church_n by_o god_n himself_o apostle_n prophet_n evangelist_n pastor_n teacher_n etc._n etc._n the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v meet_v with_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n in_o that_o to_o the_o philippian_n we_o read_v of_o their_o apostle_n of_o their_o bishop_n or_o presbyter_n and_o their_o deacon_n timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v their_o elder_n and_o deacon_n under_o they_o to_o omit_v sundry_a other_o example_n hereof_o in_o
scripture_n clemens_n romanus_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o lord_n appoint_v who_o be_v to_o minister_v in_o divine_a office_n among_o the_o christian_n and_o ignatius_n need_v not_o here_o to_o be_v bring_v in_o for_o evidence_n but_o let_v we_o consider_v the_o several_a instance_n mr._n o._n give_v in_o confirmation_n of_o this_o paradox_n that_o there_o be_v no_o minister_n in_o the_o church_n at_o the_o beginning_n the_o first_o be_v of_o philip._n but_o philip_n have_v be_v ordain_v by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o beside_o be_v a_o person_n endue_v with_o extraordinary_a and_o supernatural_a gift_n that_o be_v be_v a_o prophet_n and_o of_o such_o i_o ready_o grant_v it_o true_a that_o they_o be_v not_o strict_o and_o indispensable_o tie_v to_o common_a rule_n of_o order_n but_o may_v do_v what_o the_o spirit_n move_v they_o to_o but_o it_o be_v remarkable_a what_o hilary_n himself_o say_v of_o philip_n evangelistae_fw-la diaconi_fw-la sunt_fw-la sicut_fw-la philippus_n so_o then_o here_o be_v minister_n thus_o early_o beside_o the_o apostle_n as_o for_o apollo_n act._n 18._o 24._o to_o pass_v by_o other_o observation_n that_o may_v be_v useful_a i_o much_o question_n whether_o when_o he_o preach_v at_o ephesus_n he_o be_v yet_o a_o christian_a or_o rather_o be_o positive_a he_o be_v none_o for_o he_o know_v only_o the_o baptism_n of_o john_n v_o 25._o unto_o who_o therefore_o aquila_n and_o priscilla_n expound_v the_o way_n of_o god_n more_o perfect_o v_o 26._o and_o though_o after_o this_o he_o still_o preach_v at_o corinth_n v_o 28._o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o by_o this_o time_n he_o have_v be_v ordain_v to_o it_o for_o any_o thing_n appear_v to_o the_o contrary_a and_o we_o must_v not_o think_v none_o be_v ordain_v but_o such_o of_o who_o it_o be_v express_o testify_v in_o scripture_n we_o ought_v rather_o to_o conclude_v all_o be_v ordain_v because_o many_o be_v of_o aquila_n and_o priscilla_n their_o instruct_v apollo_n i_o have_v show_v elsewhere_o that_o it_o be_v private_a not_o ministerial_a instruction_n in_o short_a i_o know_v not_o one_o example_n of_o a_o person_n unordain_v and_o of_o ordinary_a gift_n only_o that_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o preach_v in_o any_o christian_a assembly_n much_o more_o to_o administer_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n nor_o can_v i_o fancy_v when_o that_o time_n be_v of_o which_o hilary_n speak_v when_o every_o man_n that_o will_v do_v administer_v in_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n but_o the_o story_n of_o vrigen_n be_v urge_v who_o be_v make_v catechist_n in_o the_o school_n of_o alexandria_n and_o teach_v the_o catechuman_n in_o the_o rudiment_n of_o christianty_n as_o dr._n cave_n relate_v it_o and_o what_o be_v yet_o more_o theoctistus_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n and_o alexander_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n invite_v he_o to_o preach_v before_o they_o as_o africa_n have_v always_o be_v note_v for_o a_o country_n abound_v with_o strange_a and_o monstrous_a creature_n so_o be_v we_o continual_o pester_v with_o some_o surprise_v and_o extraordinary_a fact_n in_o the_o egyptian_a church_n as_o if_o that_o differ_v from_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o but_o to_o this_o example_n of_o origen_n i_o first_o say_v that_o mr._n o._n be_v as_o much_o oblige_v to_o reconcile_v it_o with_o the_o presbyterian_a principle_n as_o i_o be_o with_o the_o episcopal_a that_o origen_n though_o he_o instruct_v the_o catechuman_n at_o alexandria_n in_o the_o principle_n of_o christianty_n so_o do_v our_o schoolmaster_n though_o not_o ordain_v haply_o once_o or_o so_o he_o preach_v at_o caesarea_n before_o he_o have_v be_v ordain_v so_o do_v our_o fellow_n of_o college_n at_o the_o university_n yet_o this_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o sacrament_n which_o he_o do_v not_o presume_v to_o administer_v and_o last_o though_o theoctistus_n and_o alexander_n of_o jerusalem_n out_o of_o curiosity_n desirous_a to_o hear_v the_o great_a origen_n discourse_n upon_o some_o profound_a point_n in_o christianty_n invite_v he_o into_o the_o pulpit_n yet_o demetrius_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n condemn_v it_o and_o it_o become_v a_o scandal_n and_o occasion_n of_o offence_n among_o they_o mr._n o._n speak_v of_o evangelist_n will_v prove_v they_o to_o have_v 145._o be_v unfixt_v officer_n from_o this_o observation_n out_o of_o hilary_n that_o evangelist_n that_o be_v deacon_n as_o hilary_n think_v do_v preach_v sine_fw-la cathedra_fw-la which_o he_o expound_v without_o a_o fix_a residence_n ans._n this_o be_v more_o absurd_a than_o any_o thing_n i_o have_v meet_v with_o in_o my_o adversary_n sine_fw-la cathedra_fw-la without_o a_o fix_a residence_n he_o may_v as_o well_o have_v render_v it_o without_o fear_n or_o wit._n the_o meaning_n doubtless_o be_v that_o whereas_o presbyter_n have_v their_o stall_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bishop_n and_o sit_v in_o his_o presence_n 57_o and_o perhaps_o according_a to_o hilary_n preach_v out_o of_o they_o the_o deacon_n always_o stand_v nor_o have_v their_o stall_n so_o that_o when_o permit_v they_o preach_v sine_fw-la cathedra_fw-la stantibus_fw-la diaconis_fw-la we_o often_o meet_v with_o in_o st._n cyprian_n and_o hilary_n himself_o take_v notice_n that_o the_o 101._o roman_a deacon_n do_v not_o assume_v the_o privilege_n of_o sit_v in_o the_o church_n have_v ãâã_d cathedra_fw-la no_o seat_n in_o it_o jerom_n have_v also_o observe_v the_o same_o sedent_fw-la presbyteri_fw-la stant_fw-la diaconi_fw-la so_o that_o hilary_n meaning_n be_v hereby_o to_o distinguish_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o and_o intimate_v that_o deacon_n be_v inferior_a to_o presbyter_n be_v not_o suffer_v to_o sit_v or_o to_o have_v a_o stall_n in_o the_o church_n as_o the_o other_o have_v in_o short_a no_o one_o sure_o will_v dare_v to_o say_v that_o deacon_n be_v unfixt_v officer_n in_o the_o church_n either_o in_o the_o apostle_n or_o in_o hilary_n day_n mr._n o._n and_o before_o he_o blondel_n in_o order_n to_o prove_v that_o 21._o bishop_n be_v mere_o the_o first_o presbyter_n and_o have_v only_o precedency_n but_o no_o power_n or_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o rest_n argue_v from_o hilary_n that_o in_o the_o begin_n the_o old_a presbyter_n in_o year_n succeed_v into_o the_o episcopacy_n and_o so_o become_v the_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o precedent_n of_o the_o presbytery_n and_o that_o this_o apostolical_a custom_n or_o ãâã_d continue_v till_o it_o be_v by_o experience_n find_v that_o undeserving_a or_o disable_v old_a man_n be_v advance_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n and_o the_o dishonour_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v therefore_o change_v into_o election_n to_o the_o end_n not_o order_n but_o merit_n may_v take_v place_n ans._n 1._o the_o controversy_n be_v not_o about_o the_o manner_n of_o succeed_v into_o the_o ãâã_d the_o method_n be_v either_o prescribe_v in_o scripture_n or_o not_o if_o it_o be_v let_v the_o presbyterian_o show_v where_o and_o we_o promise_v to_o observe_v it_o for_o the_o future_a if_o not_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o church_n to_o order_n this_o circumstance_n as_o shall_v be_v think_v fit_a in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o may_v not_o lay_v aside_o bishop_n because_o we_o have_v not_o a_o divine_a rule_n about_o their_o succession_n many_o thing_n be_v appoint_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o particular_a circumstance_n be_v leave_v at_o large_a unto_o humane_a prudence_n we_o be_v command_v to_o read_v the_o scripture_n but_o not_o how_o much_o at_o a_o time_n whether_o one_o or_o more_o section_n whether_o one_o or_o more_o chapter_n nor_o in_o what_o order_n shall_v we_o therefore_o abolish_v the_o command_n itself_o because_o these_o circumstance_n be_v not_o express_o deliver_v to_o we_o in_o scripture_n god_n forbid_v suppose_v then_o that_o there_o have_v be_v different_a custom_n take_v up_o about_o the_o way_n of_o succeed_v into_o the_o episcopacy_n this_o be_v no_o prejudice_n against_o episcopacy_n its_o self_n 2._o it_o be_v some_o matter_n of_o wonder_n to_o i_o how_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n can_v be_v prejudice_v by_o the_o old_a presbyter_n succeed_v as_o of_o right_a to_o the_o first_o chair_n or_o presidency_n if_o he_o receive_v thereby_o no_o power_n or_o jurisdiction_n as_o our_o adverrsary_n pretend_v 3._o it_o be_v false_a and_o nothing_o can_v be_v false_a than_o this_o conceit_n of_o the_o old_a presbyter_n succeed_v into_o the_o episcopacy_n timothy_n be_v a_o young_a man_n and_o promote_v by_o st._n paul_n and_o that_o not_o for_o his_o age_n but_o his_o merit_n for_o sure_o none_o can_v believe_v he_o be_v the_o old_a among_o the_o ephesian_a elder_n what_o occasion_n then_o for_o the_o apostle_n admonition_n let_v no_o man_n despise_v thy_o youth_n if_o all_o the_o presbyter_n be_v young_a than_o himself_o and_o jerom_n who_o affirm_v that_o paul_n ordain_v timothy_n bishop_n of_o ephesus_n his_o maxim_n be_v presbyter_n aetatis_fw-la nomen_fw-la est_fw-la episcopus_fw-la
collector_n of_o they_o will_v have_v omit_v so_o important_a a_o decree_n as_o this_o whereon_o so_o many_o of_o their_o other_o canon_n be_v build_v as_o on_o a_o foundation_n jerom_n toto_fw-la orbe_n decretum_fw-la est_fw-la must_v then_o imply_v that_o episcopacy_n be_v a_o apostolical_a constitution_n 2._o the_o same_o may_v be_v ãâã_d from_o those_o word_n remedium_fw-la schismatis_fw-la &_o episcopum_fw-la nominabant_fw-la in_o jerom_n epistle_n to_o evagrius_n the_o remedy_n then_o against_o schism_n must_v be_v as_o ancient_a as_o the_o precedent_n who_o according_a to_o jerom_n be_v call_v bishop_n now_o they_o be_v style_v bishop_n before_o ignatius_n be_v martyr_a as_o abundant_o appear_v in_o his_o epistle_n therefore_o this_o remedy_n against_o schism_n be_v divise_v in_o the_o apostolic_a age_n except_o any_o one_o will_v affirm_v that_o ignatius_n and_o all_o the_o other_o follower_n disciple_n fellow-labourer_n and_o fellow-soldier_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o give_v testimony_n to_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n even_o unto_o blood_n prepare_v this_o new_a remedy_n against_o schism_n so_o soon_o as_o the_o apostle_n st._n john_n eye_n be_v shut_v and_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o set_v up_o a_o government_n in_o the_o church_n which_o the_o apostle_n be_v altogether_o stranger_n to_o as_o our_o adversary_n suppose_v 3._o jerom._n witness_v over_o and_o over_o again_o that_o bishop_n be_v establish_v in_o the_o church_n whilst_o the_o apostle_n live_v and_o flourish_v upon_o those_o word_n quae_fw-la est_fw-la in_o to_o per_fw-la impositionem_fw-la manuum_fw-la mearum_fw-la he_o 6._o thus_o gloss_n scilicet_fw-la ad_fw-la episcopatum_fw-la upon_o those_o other_o word_n cum_fw-la episcopis_fw-la &_o diaconis_fw-la he_o thus_o comment_v hic_fw-la episcopos_fw-la presbyteros_fw-la intelligimus_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la in_o una_fw-la urbe_fw-la plures_fw-la episcopi_fw-la esse_fw-la potuissent_fw-la 4._o intimate_v that_o though_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v the_o same_o in_o 3._o that_o place_n yet_o there_o be_v then_o a_o high_a degree_n of_o bishop_n of_o who_o there_o can_v be_v but_o one_o in_o a_o city_n now_o jerom_n here_o must_v of_o necessity_n speak_v of_o the_o apostle_n day_n else_o his_o comment_n have_v be_v altogether_o vain_a and_o absurd_a for_o to_o expound_v st._n paul_n ãâã_d by_o a_o usage_n which_o spring_v up_o in_o the_o church_n long_o after_o be_v senseless_a beside_o he_o think_v epaphroditus_n be_v at_o that_o time_n bishop_n of_o philippi_n as_o be_v plain_o employ_v when_o he_o gloss_n on_o the_o other_o passage_n in_o this_o epistle_n epaphroditum_fw-la commilitonem_fw-la meum_fw-la commilito_fw-la propter_fw-la honorem_fw-la quia_fw-la &_o ipse_fw-la acceperat_fw-la in_o illis_fw-la apostolatus_fw-la officium_fw-la epaphroditus_n then_o be_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o philippian_n according_a to_o jerom_n that_o be_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a language_n he_o be_v their_o bishop_n again_o whereas_o jerom_n question_n archippus_n to_o have_v be_v a_o deacon_n of_o the_o church_n of_o coloss._n ch_n 4._o 17._o yet_o elsewhere_o he_o put_v the_o question_n to_o himself_o quid_fw-la est_fw-la ministerium_fw-la 3._o quod_fw-la archippus_n accepit_fw-la a_o domino_fw-la and_o answer_n legimus_fw-la &_o archippo_n commilitoni_fw-la nostro_fw-la exquo_fw-la puto_fw-la aut_fw-la episcopum_fw-la eum_fw-la fuisse_fw-la colossensis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la aut_fw-la si_fw-la ita_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n hereby_o though_o not_o positive_o assert_v he_o the_o bishop_n of_o coloss_n yet_o imply_v plain_o by_o the_o disjunctive_a there_o be_v bishop_n in_o those_o day_n moreover_o jerom_n in_o his_o catalogue_n of_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n reckon_v up_o james_n make_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o simeon_n after_o he_o timothy_n of_o ephesus_n titus_n of_o crete_n by_o paul_n and_o polycarp_n of_o smyrna_n by_o john_n on_o the_o 45_o psalm_n he_o thus_o speak_v constituit_fw-la christus_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la finibus_fw-la mundi_fw-la principes_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la i._n e._n episcopos_fw-la and_o that_o by_o prince_n he_o here_o mean_v single_a supreme_a governor_n of_o church_n appear_v from_o his_o comment_n on_o the_o 1_o st_z of_o titus_n where_o he_o have_v this_o observation_n that_o paul_n be_v then_o form_v a_o prince_n of_o the_o church_n of_o crete_n this_o institution_n then_o be_v by_o jerom_n attribute_v unto_o christ_n himself_o must_v be_v understand_v as_o do_v at_o least_o by_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ._n last_o jerom_n note_n galatas_fw-la that_o all_o who_o see_v the_o lord_n and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n be_v call_v apostle_n paulatim_fw-la vero_fw-la tempore_fw-la procedente_fw-la other_o also_o be_v ordain_v apostle_n by_o they_o who_o the_o lord_n have_v choose_v as_o epaphroditus_n we_o can_v understand_v no_o less_o by_o ordain_v apostle_n here_o than_o those_o who_o be_v set_v over_o church_n to_o rule_v they_o call_v afterward_o bishop_n and_o the_o paulatim_fw-la here_o being_n to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o apostle_n time_n will_v let_v we_o in_o to_o the_o understanding_n jerom_n paulatim_fw-la and_o his_fw-la postquam_fw-la in_o his_o commentary_n on_o ãâã_d and_o that_o the_o decree_n there_o speak_v of_o be_v put_v in_o execution_n by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o but_o by_o degree_n if_o then_o epaphroditus_n be_v bishop_n of_o philippi_n archippus_n of_o coloss_n james_n of_o jerusalem_n timothy_n of_o ephesus_n and_o titus_n bishop_n and_o prince_n of_o crete_n polycarp_n of_o smyrna_n and_o in_o a_o word_n if_o there_o be_v bishop_n and_o prince_n appoint_v by_o christ_n in_o all_o quarter_n of_o the_o world_n and_o all_o whilst_o paul_n be_v alive_a in_o the_o opinion_n of_o jerom_n than_o jerom_n toto_fw-la orbe_n ãâã_d est_fw-la be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o a_o apostolical_a constitution_n 4._o the_o occasion_n of_o set_v up_o one_o above_o the_o ãâã_d to_o take_v the_o care_n and_o charge_n of_o the_o church_n of_o necessity_n imply_v that_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o institute_v episcopacy_n it_o be_v according_a to_o jerom_n the_o corinthian_a schisiu_n and_o yet_o more_o particular_o because_o our_o ãâã_d contend_v that_o jerom_n only_o allude_v to_o the_o corinthian_a schism_n not_o that_o that_o schism_n in_o particular_a be_v the_o occasion_n of_o the_o decree_n which_o be_v but_o mere_a ãâã_d at_o best_a i_o far_a note_n the_o schism_n which_o give_v occasion_n to_o the_o decree_n be_v according_a to_o jerom_n found_v on_o such_o a_o principle_n and_o pretence_n as_o be_v not_o to_o be_v meet_v with_o in_o any_o other_o church_n than_o that_o of_o corimh_o nor_o in_o any_o other_o age_n than_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n the_o pretence_n as_o jerom_n believe_v be_v posiquam_fw-la unusquisq_fw-la eos_fw-la quos_fw-la baptizaverat_fw-la suos_fw-la esse_fw-la putabat_fw-la non_fw-la christi_fw-la etc._n etc._n allude_v to_o the_o 1_o cor._n 1._o 13_o 14._o 15._o if_o then_o the_o toto_fw-la orb_n decretum_fw-la be_v occasion_v by_o the_o corinthian_a schism_n which_o in_o jerom_n judgement_n spring_v from_o that_o false_a and_o foolish_a principle_n that_o every_o minister_n may_v challenge_v to_o himself_o all_o those_o christian_n who_o he_o have_v baptise_a to_o be_v member_n of_o his_o own_o separate_a congregation_n the_o remedy_n against_o this_o disease_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v confess_v to_o have_v commence_v soon_o after_o this_o corinthian_a schism_n and_o by_o consequence_n in_o the_o apostle_n day_n 5._o jerom_n instance_v in_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n confirm_v what_o i_o be_o prove_v viz._n that_o bishop_n be_v appoint_v in_o the_o apostle_n day_n evag._n a_o marco_n evangelista_n usque_fw-la ad_fw-la heraclam_fw-la presbyteri_fw-la unum_fw-la ex_fw-la se_fw-la electum_fw-la &_o excelsiori_fw-la gradu_fw-la collocatum_fw-la episcopum_fw-la nominabant_fw-la here_o we_o have_v a_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n name_n and_o thing_n acknowledge_v by_o jerom_n from_o mark_n the_o evangelist_n therefore_o jerom_n must_v have_v believe_v the_o ãâã_d orbe_n decretum_fw-la est_fw-la happen_v in_o the_o apostle_n day_n since_o many_o of_o they_o survive_v st._n mark_n 6._o the_o character_n and_o commendation_n jerom_n give_v of_o this_o institution_n of_o bishop_n i_o observe_v before_o what_o he_o have_v write_v on_o the_o 45_o psal._n constituit_fw-la christus_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la mundi_fw-la finibus_fw-la principes_fw-la ãâã_d if_o then_o it_o be_v a_o institution_n of_o christ_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v at_o least_o apostolical_a so_o he_o call_v it_o ut_fw-la sciamus_fw-la traditiones_fw-la apostolicas_fw-la sumptas_fw-la de_fw-la veteri_fw-la testamento_fw-la the_o apostolical_a tradition_n or_o institution_n be_v borrow_v from_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o that_o episcopacy_n and_o the_o three_o distinct_a order_n of_o church_n officer_n bishop_n presbyter_n and_o deacon_n ãâã_d include_v yea_o principal_o mean_v here_o by_o the_o apostolical_a tradition_n be_v evident_a from_o what_o follow_v quod_fw-la aaron_n &_o silij_fw-la ejus_fw-la atque_fw-la levitae_fw-la in_o templo_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la ãâã_d sibi_fw-la episcopi_fw-la presbyteri_fw-la &_o diaconi_fw-la vindicent_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la
christiana_n quod_fw-la aaron_n &_o filios_fw-la ejus_fw-la hoc_fw-la episcopum_fw-la &_o presbyterum_fw-la noverimus_fw-la nepot_n 7._o jerom_n not_o ãâã_d and_o more_o than_o once_o insinuate_v that_o bishop_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n apostolorum_fw-la locum_fw-la tenent_fw-la episcopi_fw-la 54._o bishop_n hold_v the_o place_n of_o the_o apostle_n habes_fw-la pro_fw-la apostolis_n episcopos_fw-la filios_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la you_o have_v instead_o of_o the_o apostle_n 45._o bishop_n the_o son_n of_o the_o apostle_n episcopi_fw-la &_o presbyteri_fw-la ãâã_d in_fw-la exemplum_fw-la apostolos_n &_o apostolicos_fw-la viros_fw-la quorum_fw-la honorem_fw-la palin_n possidentes_fw-la habere_fw-la nitantur_fw-la &_o meritum_fw-la and_o let_v bishop_n and_o presbyter_n take_v for_o their_o pattern_n the_o apostle_n and_o apostolical_a man_n who_o honour_n they_o possess_v and_o therefore_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o have_v their_o merit_n non_fw-fr est_fw-fr facile_fw-la stare_n loco_fw-la pauli_n tenere_fw-la gradum_fw-la petri_n heliodor_n it_o be_v no_o easy_a matter_n to_o stand_v in_o the_o place_n of_o paul_n to_o possess_v the_o degree_n of_o peter_n omnes_fw-la so_o episcopi_fw-la sive_fw-la romae_fw-la sive_fw-la eugubii_n sive_fw-la constantinopoli_fw-it rhegii_fw-la sive_fw-la alexandria_n sive_fw-la tanais_n i_o may_v add_v from_o jerom_n sive_fw-la divites_fw-la sive_fw-la pauperes_fw-la sive_fw-la sublime_n ãâã_d inferiores_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la sunt_fw-la successores_fw-la evag._n all_o bishop_n whatever_o be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n and_o whereas_o in_o this_o very_a epistle_n he_o be_v exalt_v his_o fellow_n presbyter_n as_o high_a as_o with_o any_o colour_n of_o pretence_n he_o be_v able_a yet_o no_o such_o thing_n as_o this_o drop_n from_o he_o sc_n that_o the_o presbyter_n be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n if_o then_o bishop_n be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n as_o if_o jerom_n may_v be_v judge_n they_o be_v than_o also_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n must_v needs_o be_v by_o apostolical_a institution_n for_o none_o can_v appoint_v successor_n unto_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o 8._o the_o early_a establishment_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o very_a day_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o at_o least_o immediate_o after_o they_o will_v force_v any_o ingenious_a man_n to_o confess_v episcopacy_n be_v of_o apostolical_a institution_n this_o also_o jerom_n have_v witness_v clem._n tell_v we_o that_o clement_n of_o who_o we_o read_v phil._n 4._o be_v the_o four_o some_o say_v the_o second_o bishop_n of_o rome_n after_o peter_n that_o ignatius_n e._n be_v the_o 3d_o bishop_n of_o ãâã_d after_o peter_n that_o papias_n a_o disciple_n of_o st._n john_n the_o apostle_n be_v bishop_n of_o hierapolis_n and_o quadratus_n a_o disciple_n of_o the_o apostle_n bishop_n of_o athens_n pap._n to_o these_o add_v the_o asiatic_a bishop_n of_o who_o we_o read_v in_o ignatius_n epistle_n for_o because_o jerom_n believe_v the_o epistle_n genuine_a and_o approve_v of_o the_o subject_a matter_n of_o they_o he_o have_v hereby_o give_v in_o his_o testimony_n that_o there_o be_v bishop_n in_o all_o those_o church_n be_v it_o then_o possible_a to_o imagine_v jerom_n believe_v that_o decree_n to_o be_v any_o other_o than_o apostolical_a or_o that_o episcopacy_n receive_v its_o date_n from_o a_o mere_a ecclesiastical_a canon_n sometime_o after_o it_o can_v never_o enter_v into_o my_o head_n that_o the_o church_n government_n which_o some_o say_v be_v presbyterian_a that_o be_v administer_v by_o a_o college_n of_o presbyter_n act_v in_o a_o parity_n when_o the_o apostle_n be_v live_v shall_v be_v thus_o quick_o alter_v by_o a_o mere_a humane_a or_o ecclesiastical_a decree_n upon_o a_o pretence_n of_o prevent_a schism_n whereas_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o do_v not_o as_o the_o presbyterian_o believe_v think_v this_o reason_n sufficient_a to_o change_v the_o church-government_n in_o their_o time_n that_o be_v it_o be_v most_o improbable_a and_o absurd_a to_o say_v so_o many_o holy_a man_n and_o martyr_n of_o christ_n familiar_a with_o and_o disciple_n of_o the_o apostle_n sc_n st._n clement_n ignatius_n papias_n quadratus_n and_o a_o innumerable_a company_n who_o name_n and_o who_o particular_a diocese_n be_v not_o transmit_v unto_o we_o say_v eusebius_n shall_v dare_v not_o only_o to_o decree_v and_o consent_n to_o the_o alteration_n of_o church-government_n but_o themselves_o to_o usurp_v and_o exercise_v a_o authority_n over_o their_o equal_n contrary_a to_o the_o apostolical_a rule_n and_o practice_n from_o the_o whole_a than_o that_o have_v be_v say_v i_o may_v reasonable_o conclude_v 1._o that_o episcopacy_n which_o be_v by_o jerom_n call_v the_o remedy_n against_o schism_n be_v set_v up_o and_o decree_v ãâã_d the_o apostle_n in_o their_o own_o day_n 2._o that_o though_o he_o term_v it_o a_o ecclesiastical_a custom_n and_o constitution_n he_o be_v to_o be_v take_v to_o mean_v in_o opposition_n to_o ãâã_d veritati_fw-la our_o lord_n be_v own_o personal_a appointment_n and_o not_o unto_o apostolical_a tradition_n or_o institution_n 3._o that_o what_o i_o have_v offer_v in_o this_o chapter_n towards_o the_o reconcile_a jerom_n with_o himself_o be_v most_o reasonable_a to_o be_v admit_v and_o last_o that_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n allow_v by_o jerom_n unto_o bishop_n particular_o that_o of_o ordination_n and_o the_o other_o of_o confirmation_n belong_v to_o they_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o apostle_n commission_n and_o be_v not_o restraint_n lay_v upon_o the_o presbyter_n by_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n that_o of_o confirmation_n he_o deduce_v from_o scripture_n in_o his_o dialogue_n against_o the_o luciferian_o but_o mr._n o._n will_n perhaps_o say_v that_o all_o this_o be_v nothing_o to_o he_o and_o to_o the_o objection_n he_o have_v lay_v in_o our_o way_n i_o be_o then_o oblige_v now_o to_o consider_v in_o particular_a what_o observation_n he_o have_v muster_v up_o out_o of_o jerom_n and_o level_v against_o episcopacy_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o claim_v mr._n o._n then_o plead_v that_o jerom_n have_v show_v the_o presbyter_n of_o alexandria_n ãâã_d their_o bishop_n for_o almost_o 200_o year_n and_o that_o he_o 126._o will_v leave_v nothing_o out_o that_o be_v material_a in_o constitute_v they_o ans._n jerom_n have_v not_o show_v nor_o so_o much_o as_o direct_o assert_v that_o the_o presbyter_n of_o alexandria_n make_v their_o bishop_n but_o he_o have_v omit_v several_a circumstance_n not_o only_o material_a but_o advantageous_a to_o his_o main_a design_n if_o they_o have_v be_v true_a jerom_n both_o in_o his_o commentary_n on_o titus_n and_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o evagrius_n speak_v constant_o in_o the_o passive_a voice_n how_o that_o one_o be_v choose_v and_o set_v over_o the_o rest_n but_o by_o who_o he_o say_v not_o why_o not_o by_o the_o neighbour_a bishop_n why_o not_o by_o the_o predecessor_n as_o well_o as_o by_o the_o presbyter_n jerom_n have_v not_o express_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n choose_v out_o of_o the_o presbyter_n receive_v another_o and_o a_o new_a consecration_n nor_o that_o the_o presbyter_n ordain_v he_o all_o which_o will_v have_v tend_v much_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o himself_o and_o his_o fellow-presbyter_n true_o he_o express_o say_v the_o presbyter_n name_v he_o bishop_n at_o his_o instalment_n but_o this_o do_v not_o necessary_o imply_v either_o that_o they_o choose_v or_o ordain_v he_o he_o ought_v and_o doubtless_o will_v have_v speak_v out_o if_o either_o or_o both_o these_o thing_n have_v be_v true_a whereas_o then_o mr._n o._n add_v jerom_n mention_n no_o other_o way_n of_o constitute_v they_o but_o by_o presbyter_n 127._o it_o be_v certain_a he_o mention_n no_o way_n at_o all_o this_o be_v manifest_a '_o beyond_o all_o exception_n jerom_n have_v assure_v we_o of_o it_o that_o the_o apostle_n not_o the_o presbyter_n make_v and_o ordain_v bishop_n in_o most_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n at_o ephesus_n at_o coloss_n at_o philippi_n at_o athens_n in_o crete_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o if_o mark_n do_v not_o so_o at_o alexandria_n it_o be_v very_o strange_a however_o orbis_n major_n est_fw-la urbe_fw-la it_o shall_v indeed_o seem_v by_o the_o allusion_n wherewith_o jerom_n explain_v himself_o that_o the_o presbyter_n choose_v one_o of_o their_o own_o number_n and_o set_v he_o over_o the_o rest_n so_o say_v he_o the_o army_n choose_v their_o general_n the_o deacon_n their_o arch-deacon_n admit_v then_o this_o at_o present_a i_o reply_v 1._o it_o be_v no_o where_o so_o much_o as_o hint_v in_o jerom_n that_o the_o alexandrian_a presbyter_n ordain_v their_o patriarch_n but_o rather_o the_o contrary_a that_o the_o neighbour_a bishop_n impose_v hand_n on_o he_o quid_fw-la facit_fw-la excepta_fw-la ordinatione_fw-la episcopus_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la faciat_fw-la presbyter_n in_o which_o word_n he_o must_v have_v a_o eye_n unto_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o alexandrian_a church_n from_o mark_n to_o heraclas_n and_o dionysius_n imply_v that_o bishop_n not_o presbyter_n ordain_v all_o that_o while_n well!_o but_o i_o
have_v admit_v that_o the_o presbyter_n of_o alexandria_n choose_v their_o patriarch_n and_o then_o mr._n o._n argue_v ibid._n that_o jerom_n make_v this_o a_o argument_n of_o the_o identity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n ans._n whatever_o may_v be_v infer_v from_o jerom_n i_o be_o very_o sure_a this_o be_v no_o good_a argument_n for_o the_o identity_n and_o equality_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n for_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o ordinary_a deacon_n be_v not_o the_o same_o nor_o equal_a to_o archdeacon_n nor_o the_o army_n to_o the_o emperor_n as_o i_o have_v occasional_o observe_v elsewhere_o although_o the_o deacon_n choose_v their_o archdeacon_n and_o the_o army_n set_v up_o the_o emperor_n for_o to_o what_o purpose_n be_v a_o archdeacon_n choose_v or_o a_o general_n if_o they_o be_v but_o still_o equal_a to_o the_o army_n and_o to_o the_o deacon_n if_o they_o have_v no_o power_n over_o they_o there_o be_v a_o memorable_a story_n to_o our_o purpose_n of_o the_o emperor_n valentinian_n he_o have_v be_v choose_v emperor_n by_o the_o army_n the_o ãâã_d soldier_n afterward_o demand_v of_o he_o to_o choose_v and_o receive_v a_o partner_n in_o the_o government_n to_o which_o he_o reply_v it_o be_v in_o your_o choice_n fellow_n soldier_n whether_o you_o will_v choose_v i_o emperor_n or_o not_o but_o since_o you_o have_v choose_v i_o what_o you_o require_v be_v in_o my_o power_n not_o you_o and_o you_o ought_v to_o rest_v content_v as_o good_a subject_n but_o to_o return_v unto_o jerom._n i_o have_v show_v before_o out_o of_o he_o that_o the_o apostle_n make_v bishop_n what_o then_o be_v become_v of_o this_o argument_n for_o parity_n in_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n except_o alexandria_n but_o if_o jerom_n contradict_v himself_o past_o all_o relief_n i_o can_v help_v it_o yet_o again_o why_o may_v not_o one_o imagine_v that_o jerom_n principal_a aim_n be_v to_o maintain_v the_o honour_n of_o presbyter_n above_o deacon_n he_o note_v that_o at_o alexandria_n the_o bishop_n be_v choose_v not_o out_o of_o the_o deacon_n but_o unum_fw-la ex_fw-la se_fw-la viz._n out_o of_o the_o presbyter_n ay_o but_o it_o will_v be_v reply_v that_o jerom_n in_o this_o epistle_n design_v to_o prove_v that_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v at_o first_o the_o same_o and_o that_o to_o other_o argument_n for_o their_o identity_n he_o subjoin_v this_o story_n of_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n i_o reply_v not_o so_o if_o mr._n o._n will_v allow_v i_o to_o reconcile_v jerom_n with_o himself_o i_o be_o not_o indeed_o able_a to_o account_v for_o jerom_n when_o he_o prove_v the_o identity_n of_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n from_o sundry_a place_n of_o scripture_n the_o epistle_n of_o peter_n and_o paul_n and_o st._n john_n and_o yet_o give_v we_o a_o catalogue_n of_o several_a bishop_n in_o that_o time_n but_o this_o i_o say_v jerom_n after_o he_o have_v advance_v the_o honour_n of_o presbyter_n above_o deacon_n in_o that_o epistle_n to_o evagrius_n tell_v we_o there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v the_o same_o he_o proceed_v to_o argue_v from_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n that_o there_o even_o to_o heraclas_n and_o dionysius_n for_o 200_o year_n the_o bishop_n be_v choose_v out_o of_o the_o presbyter_n not_o out_o of_o the_o deacon_n which_o observation_n be_v not_o design_v to_o prove_v the_o presbyterian_a identity_n nor_o the_o parity_n but_o the_o honour_n give_v to_o the_o presbyter_n above_o deacon_n because_o the_o patriarch_n be_v for_o a_o long_a while_n choose_v out_o of_o their_o number_n only_o last_o let_v what_o will_v become_v of_o jerom_n and_o his_o argument_n this_o be_v sure_a and_o confess_v on_o all_o hand_n there_o be_v always_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o conversion_n by_o mark._n it_o no_o manner_n of_o way_n belong_v to_o the_o present_a controversy_n how_o or_o by_o who_o choose_v and_o set_v up_o if_o the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v think_v not_o to_o have_v determine_v this_o point_n i_o mean_v what_o way_n and_o bywhom_v the_o bishop_n shall_v be_v constitute_v it_o be_v then_o in_o the_o church_n to_o determine_v but_o not_o utter_o to_o lay_v they_o aside_o but_o mr._n o._n go_v on_o 128._o we_o read_v not_o of_o any_o other_o consecration_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n than_o the_o presbyter_n election_n and_o their_o place_v he_o in_o a_o high_a degree_n and_o name_v he_o bishop_n no_o have_v mr._n o._n forget_v or_o do_v he_o not_o know_v till_o aster_n he_o have_v thus_o shoot_v his_o bolt_n that_o according_a to_o eutychius_n cite_v this_o very_o 128th_o p._n that_o by_o the_o institution_n of_o mark_n the_o presbyter_n when_o the_o patriarchship_n be_v vacant_a choose_v one_o of_o their_o number_n on_o who_o head_n they_o lay_v their_o hand_n and_o bless_v he_o and_o create_v he_o patriarch_n and_o if_o this_o be_v true_a jerom_n forget_v a_o very_a material_a thing_n that_o will_v have_v make_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o presbyter_n and_o their_o identity_n with_o bishop_n and_o mr._n o._n forget_v another_o that_o of_o the_o presbyter_n impose_v hand_n on_o their_o new_a patriarch_n which_o i_o take_v to_o be_v somewhat_o more_o than_o elect_v place_v and_o name_v he_o bishop_n mr._n o._n prove_v ibid._n there_o be_v ancient_o no_o other_o consecration_n but_o elect_v place_v and_o name_v he_o bishop_n from_o the_o testimony_n of_o polydore_n virgil_n who_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr invent._n rerum_fw-la l._n 4._o c._n 6._o ãâã_d say_v mr._n o._n that_o ancient_o in_o make_v bishop_n there_o be_v no_o ceremony_n use_v etc._n etc._n ans._n mr._n o._n have_v a_o knack_n above_o all_o other_o man_n to_o misrepresent_v author_n and_o though_o i_o resolve_v not_o to_o concern_v myself_o with_o late_a writer_n yet_o be_v polydore_n be_v in_o his_o time_n a_o learned_a man_n and_o of_o no_o small_a reputation_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n of_o engl._n i_o will_v with_o mr._n o._n pay_v some_o deference_n to_o his_o testimony_n and_o character_n let_v we_o then_o hear_v what_o polydore_n have_v deliver_v in_o the_o place_n cite_v he_o tell_v that_o jesus_n christ_n create_v twelve_o pontiff_n who_o he_o call_v apostle_n also_o seventy_o disciple_n who_o he_o make_v sacerdotes_fw-la priest_n that_o from_o these_o latter_a the_o order_n of_o presbyter_n arise_v that_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n be_v not_o admit_v into_o their_o office_n by_o any_o other_o rite_n save_v only_o the_o election_n or_o institution_n of_o christ._n which_o polydore_n prove_v immediate_o after_o from_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o take_v mathias_n into_o their_o number_n and_o institute_v the_o seven_o deacon_n let_v we_o run_v through_o polydor_n argument_n backward_o and_o see_v what_o it_o say_v the_o apostle_n impose_v hand_n on_o the_o seven_o deacon_n therefore_o on_o mathias_n and_o by_o consequence_n according_a to_o virgil_n so_o do_v christ_n lay_v hand_n on_o the_o apostle_n and_o seventy_o disciple_n so_o that_o this_o authority_n out_o of_o polydore_n recoil_v upon_o himself_o indeed_o mr._n o._n own_v as_o much_o but_o then_o thereby_o he_o destroy_v his_o own_o propositition_n which_o be_v we_o know_v no_o other_o ceremony_n but_o election_n etc._n etc._n but_o be_v not_o impositiof_o hand_n a_o ceremony_n and_o more_o than_o elect_v place_v and_o nominate_v he_o bishop_n i_o be_o persuade_v it_o be_v a_o ceremony_n thus_o mr._n o._n confute_v himself_o when_o he_o pretend_v to_o confirm_v his_o opinion_n i_o can_v pass_v by_o one_o thing_n which_o polydore_n very_o false_o tack_n to_o his_o discourse_n here_o concern_v the_o original_a of_o imposition_n of_o hand_n which_o he_o derive_v from_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o apostle_n but_o add_v atque_fw-la hinc_fw-la olim_fw-la 336._o factum_fw-la etc._n etc._n hence_o it_o come_v about_o that_o ãâã_d it_o be_v a_o old_a ecclesiastical_a practice_n in_o consecrate_v a_o bishop_n the_o presbyter_n impose_v hand_n and_o for_o this_o cite_v cyprian_n four_o epistle_n to_o felix_n in_o the_o oxford_n ed._n the_o 67._o it_o be_v pity_n mr._n o._n stumble_v not_o upon_o this_o hint_n of_o virgil_n in_o appearance_n it_o be_v better_a than_o any_o he_o have_v produce_v in_o his_o plea_n but_o the_o comfort_n be_v there_o be_v nothing_o like_o this_o to_o be_v find_v in_o that_o epistle_n and_o this_o i_o think_v proper_a to_o note_n to_o the_o end_n no_o new_a trouble_n shall_v be_v create_v i_o upon_o virgil_n authority_n mr._n o._n jerom_n say_v the_o custom_n be_v change_v from_o the_o time_n of_o heraclas_n and_o dionysius_n what_o custom_n not_o the_o election_n of_o a_o bishop_n by_o presbyter_n and_o people_n for_o that_o continue_v long_o after_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v be_v the_o ãâã_d of_o bishop_n which_o afterward_o be_v do_v by_o neighbour_a bishop_n in_o
about_o 1556._o a_o synod_n be_v hold_v in_o the_o middle_n of_o moravia_n where_o be_v present_a more_o than_o 200_o of_o the_o clergy_n then_o 40._o be_v fifteen_o minister_n ordain_v two_o bishop_n and_o six_o consenior_o the_o two_o bishop_n be_v george_n israel_n for_o the_o polonian_a church_n and_o johannes_n blaboslaus_fw-la for_o the_o moravian_n at_o the_o same_o time_n joannes_n nigranus_fw-la be_v bishop_n in_o bohemia_n supra_fw-la now_o it_o be_v that_o the_o arrian_n afterward_o call_v socinian_n disturb_v the_o peace_n order_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o ãâã_d bohemi_fw-fr assert_v that_o the_o pastor_n alias_o the_o minister_n or_o presbyter_n have_v power_n to_o do_v all_o thing_n in_o the_o church_n and_o this_o paradox_n they_o pretend_v to_o advance_v leave_v any_o thing_n that_o smell_v of_o popery_n shall_v remain_v among_o they_o who_o have_v renounce_v that_o communion_n 44._o therefore_o they_o be_v so_o true_a to_o their_o principle_n as_o not_o only_o to_o disallow_v of_o bishop_n call_v senior_n or_o superintendant_o but_o to_o deny_v even_o the_o godhead_n of_o jesus_n christ_n ãâã_d forsooth_o the_o papist_n maintain_v that_o doctrine_n but_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n they_o may_v as_o well_o have_v deny_v the_o be_v of_o god_n himself_o at_o the_o same_o time_n in_o ãâã_d polonia_n the_o fratres_n bohemi_n have_v five_o bishop_n for_o so_o many_o diocese_n vix_fw-la the_o crasovian_a the_o ãâã_d the_o ãâã_d the_o russian_a and_o the_o belsensis_fw-la diocese_n 46._o anno_fw-la 1571._o joannes_n calephus_fw-la be_v their_o bishop_n in_o bohemia_n joannes_n laurentius_n in_o poland_n stanislaus_n and_o andreas_n stephanus_n 51._o bishop_n of_o the_o fratres_n in_o bohemia_n and_o last_o johannes_n adam_n comenius_n a_o moravian_n and_o another_o a_o polonian_a their_o elect_a bishop_n annno_n 1632._o 9_o comenius_n after_o this_o history_n of_o which_o i_o have_v give_v a_o summary_n account_v so_o far_o as_o belong_v to_o the_o present_a argument_n have_v furnish_v we_o with_o another_o tractate_n which_o he_o style_v ratio_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d in_o unitate_fw-la fratrum_fw-la bohemorum_fw-la the_o pontifical_a of_o the_o bohemian_a brethren_n as_o i_o may_v call_v it_o the_o substance_n whereof_o be_v as_o follow_v he_o tell_v we_o that_o in_o their_o church_n whereof_o himself_o be_v a_o bishop_n elect_a there_o be_v four_o order_n of_o minister_n sc_n the_o ãâã_d sen_fw-la antistites_fw-la or_o the_o prepositi_fw-la ministrorum_fw-la sometime_o call_v vigiles_fw-la or_o speculatores_fw-la superintendentes_fw-la or_o superattendente_n that_o be_v as_o he_o explain_v himself_o in_o our_o language_n bishop_n 2_o conseniores_fw-la which_o he_o expound_v coepiscopi_fw-la or_o chorepiscopi_fw-la or_o the_o bishop_n fellow_n 3._o pastor_n who_o be_v also_o ordinary_o call_v minister_n the_o same_o as_o with_o we_o be_v style_v presbyter_n priest_n or_o elder_n 4._o deacon_n call_v ãâã_d administratores_fw-la or_o adjutores_fw-la among_o the_o bishop_n there_o be_v beside_o a_o praeses_fw-la or_o primate_n or_o the_o first_o bishop_n the_o president_n be_v or_o primate_n office_n among_o other_o thing_n be_v to_o appoint_v and_o call_v synod_n the_o office_n of_o the_o bishop_n beside_o other_o thing_n be_v to_o ordain_v all_o ecclesiastical_a degree_n as_o deacon_n pastor_n consenior_o and_o senior_n or_o bishop_n all_o other_o degree_n be_v obedient_a and_o subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n the_o consenior_o be_v coadjutor_n to_o the_o senior_n or_o bishop_n have_v power_n with_o the_o senior_n or_o without_o they_o but_o by_o their_o direction_n and_o command_n to_o be_v member_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a senate_n and_o be_v above_o the_o pastor_n or_o deacon_n their_o business_n be_v to_o provide_v for_o good_a order_n to_o acquaint_v the_o senior_n with_o misdemeanour_n to_o admonish_v the_o minister_n to_o observe_v the_o ecclesiastical_a statute_n and_o custom_n to_o provide_v fit_a person_n for_o the_o ministry_n to_o exercise_v discipline_n over_o the_o minister_n together_o with_o the_o bishop_n or_o without_o they_o yet_o by_o their_o direction_n to_o examine_v the_o candidate_n ãâã_d for_o holy_a order_n and_o to_o present_v they_o to_o the_o bishop_n diligent_o to_o observe_v how_o the_o pastor_n discharge_v themselves_o in_o their_o office_n to_o reprove_v their_o small_a offence_n and_o to_o acquaint_v the_o bishop_n with_o their_o more_o scandalous_a one_o i_o do_v not_o find_v they_o have_v power_n to_o ordain_v and_o ãâã_d in_o his_o annotation_n say_v that_o in_o minoribus_fw-la negotiis_fw-la episcopi_fw-la vice_n obirent_fw-la as_o the_o ancient_a chorepiscopi_fw-la do_v if_o they_o be_v choose_v senior_n they_o be_v new_o ordain_v with_o imposition_n of_o hand_n as_o pastor_n or_o minister_n be_v the_o senior_n ordain_v all_o order_n the_o senior_n be_v choose_v by_o the_o senior_n consenior_o and_o pastor_n and_o be_v ordain_v in_o a_o general_n assembly_n with_o imposition_n of_o hand_n at_o the_o solemnity_n be_v sing_v that_o hymn_n come_v holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n the_o former_a or_o the_o ordain_v senior_n offer_v the_o new_a create_a bishop_n their_o right_a hand_n in_o token_n of_o fellowship_n the_o consenior_o they_o in_o token_n of_o obedience_n the_o consenior_o be_v ordain_v with_o imposition_n of_o hand_n give_v their_o right_a hand_n to_o the_o senior_n in_o token_n of_o obedience_n to_o the_o former_a consenior_o in_o token_n of_o fellowship_n the_o minister_n offer_v they_o to_o the_o new_a create_v consenior_o in_o token_n of_o obedience_n minister_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o senior_n with_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n of_o the_o senior_n so_o many_o as_o be_v present_a at_o the_o solemnity_n they_o sing_v that_o hymn_n come_v holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n the_o new_a ordain_v minister_n give_v their_o right_a hand_n unto_o the_o senior_n and_o consenior_o in_o token_n of_o obedience_n to_o the_o pastor_n in_o token_n of_o fellowship_n and_o the_o deacon_n offer_v their_o hand_n to_o they_o in_o token_n of_o observance_n to_o conclude_v it_o most_o be_v confess_v that_o comenius_n say_v bishop_n and_o presbyter_n be_v one_o i_o suppose_v he_o mean_v have_v the_o same_o power_n and_o authority_n to_o minister_v in_o the_o ãâã_d and_o ãâã_d and_o this_o be_v out_o of_o all_o doubt_n but_o withal_o he_o intimate_v that_o a_o bishop_n be_v one_o who_o be_v moreover_o a_o inspector_n or_o superintendent_n and_o for_o this_o cite_v act_n 20._o 28._o his_o mind_n be_v i_o suppose_v that_o st._n paul_n in_o the_o 17_o verse_n address_v himself_o general_o to_o all_o presbyter_n whether_o mere_a elder_n or_o those_o who_o moreover_o have_v the_o oversight_n of_o the_o rest_n but_o in_o the_o 28_o ãâã_d he_o turn_v his_o speech_n unto_o those_o especial_o who_o have_v be_v make_v bishop_n and_o this_o be_v but_o what_o the_o syriac_a version_n seem_v to_o imply_v wherein_o as_o have_v already_o be_v note_v verse_n the_o 17_o elder_n be_v render_v by_o kashishaa_n which_o proper_o and_o only_o signify_v elder_n but_o verse_n the_o 28_o episkupea_n be_v use_v which_o denote_v overseer_n however_o this_o be_v if_o any_o one_o careful_o observe_v what_o have_v be_v before_o relate_v concern_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o bohemian_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o conceive_v but_o that_o bishop_n or_o senior_n be_v somewhat_o more_o than_o mere_a presbyter_n the_o division_n of_o ecclesiastical_a officer_n into_o three_o or_o four_o order_n the_o power_n of_o ordain_v appropriate_v to_o bishop_n the_o great_a care_n they_o have_v about_o get_v a_o right_a succession_n of_o order_n ãâã_d bishop_n and_o many_o other_o remarkable_a passage_n before_o mention_v render_v this_o point_n contestable_a from_o the_o whole_a i_o think_v it_o follow_v that_o the_o waldenses_n and_o the_o fratres_n bohemi_n be_v govern_v by_o bishop_n superior_a to_o minister_n or_o pastor_n long_o after_o they_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o roman_a idolatrous_a communion_n yea_o that_o the_o waldenses_n have_v bishop_n within_o 150_o year_n and_o less_o the_o fratres_n bohemi_n within_o 160._o that_o therefore_o mr._n o._n be_v utter_o mistake_v who_o aver_v that_o the_o waldenses_n have_v no_o other_o minister_n than_o presbyter_n for_o near_a 500_o year_n last_o pass_v and_o that_o presbyter_n ordain_v presbyter_n without_o bishop_n the_o contrary_n be_v most_o certain_a if_o my_o author_n have_v not_o deceive_v i_o mr._n o._n be_v not_o insensible_a of_o this_o matter_n of_o fact_n of_o the_o bohemian_n derive_v their_o bishop_n from_o the_o waldenses_n but_o he_o shuffle_n we_o off_o with_o say_v that_o the_o waldensian_a bishop_n be_v only_o titular_a bishop_n 157._o that_o be_v indeed_o mere_a presbyter_n honour_v with_o the_o bare_a title_n of_o bishop_n if_o mr._n o._n have_v not_o know_v that_o remarkable_a story_n about_o zambergius_n and_o two_o other_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n by_o stephen_n and_o another_o waldensian_a bishop_n he_o may_v possible_o have_v be_v pardonable_a
be_v not_o two_o thing_n but_o both_o one_o office_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o christ_n religion_n quest._n 11._o whether_o a_o bishop_n have_v authority_n to_o make_v a_o priest_n by_o the_o scripture_n or_o no_o and_o whether_o any_o other_o but_o only_o a_o bishop_n may_v make_v a_o priest_n cr._n ans._n a_o bishop_n may_v make_v a_o priest_n by_o the_o scripture_n so_o may_v prince_n and_o governor_n and_o the_o people_n also_o by_o election_n the_o people_n do_v common_o elect_v their_o bishop_n and_o priest_n quest._n 12._o whether_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v require_v any_o consecration_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o a_o priest_n or_o only_o appoint_v to_o the_o office_n be_v sufficient_a cr._n ans._n in_o the_o new_a testament_n he_o that_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v a_o bishop_n or_o a_o priest_n need_v no_o consecration_n by_o the_o scripture_n for_o election_n and_o appoint_v thereunto_o be_v sufficient_a i_o have_v somewhat_o contract_v the_o archbishop_n answer_n but_o so_o as_o to_o preserve_v the_o sense_n full_a and_o entire_a and_o something_n i_o have_v omit_v not_o material_a as_o i_o judge_v here_o to_o be_v set_v down_o these_o question_n and_o answer_n in_o the_o ms._n be_v subscribe_v t._n cant._n and_o this_o be_v my_o opinion_n and_o sentence_n which_o i_o do_v not_o temerarious_o define_v but_o remit_v the_o judgement_n whole_o to_o your_o majesty_n to_o all_o which_o i_o reply_v 1._o that_o though_o these_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o ãâã_d yet_o other_o bishop_n unto_o who_o the_o same_o ãâã_d be_v put_v be_v otherwise_o persuade_v mr._n stripe_n have_v furnish_v we_o with_o 27._o different_a answer_n give_v by_o some_o other_o of_o the_o learned_a doctor_n or_o bishop_n of_o that_o time_n from_o another_o ms._n out_o of_o cotton_n library_n to_o the_o 9th_o question_n the_o call_v name_v appointment_n and_o preferment_n of_o one_o before_o another_o to_o be_v a_o bishop_n or_o priest_n have_v a_o necessity_n to_o be_v do_v in_o that_o sort_n a_o prince_n be_v want_v the_o order_v ordination_n appear_v teach_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o scripture_n per_fw-la manuum_fw-la impositionem_fw-la cum_fw-la oratione_fw-la this_o i_o doubt_v not_o will_v be_v own_a a_o true_a and_o more_o scriptural_a resolution_n of_o the_o question_n than_o cr_n be_v to_o question_v 10_o bishop_n be_v first_o or_o not_o after_o these_o learned_a man_n speak_v here_o cautious_o cranmer_n rash_o and_o round_o pronounce_v to_o quest._n 11._o scripture_n warrant_v a_o bishop_n obey_v the_o ãâã_d to_o order_n a_o priest_n per_fw-la manuum_fw-la impositionem_fw-la cum_fw-la oratione_fw-la and_o so_o it_o have_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n they_o do_v not_o bold_o define_v that_o priest_n and_o bishop_n be_v one_o office_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o christ_n religion_n as_o cranmer_n do_v to_o quest._n 12_o manuum_fw-la impositio_fw-la cum_fw-la oratione_fw-la be_v require_v unto_o the_o make_n of_o a_o bishop_n or_o priest_n so_o as_o only_o appoint_v it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a there_o be_v yet_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o learned_a man_n to_o be_v see_v in_o mr._n stripe_n which_o i_o will_v add_v unto_o the_o former_a 28._o to_o quest._n 9th_o make_v bishop_n have_v two_o part_n appointment_n and_o ordination_n appointment_n which_o by_o necessity_n the_o apostle_n make_v by_o common_a election_n and_o sometime_o by_o their_o own_o assignment_n can_v not_o be_v do_v by_o christian_a prince_n because_o there_o be_v none_o yet_o now_o appertain_v to_o they_o but_o in_o order_v wherein_o grace_n be_v confer_v the_o apostle_n follow_v the_o rule_n teach_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n per_fw-la manuum_fw-la impositionem_fw-la cum_fw-la oratione_fw-la &_o jejunio_fw-la a_o more_o solid_a and_o judicious_a answer_n then_o cranmer_n to_o quest._n 10_o christ_n make_v the_o apostle_n first_o both_o priest_n and_o bishop_n but_o whether_o at_o one_o time_n some_o doubt_n after_o that_o the_o apostle_n make_v both_o bishop_n and_o priest_n the_o name_n whereof_o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v confound_v they_o manifest_o imply_v a_o real_a distinction_n between_o they_o in_o the_o beginning_n though_o they_o be_v one_o in_o name_n or_o rather_o though_o both_o be_v call_v by_o both_o name_n indifferent_o to_o quest._n 11_o the_o bishop_n have_v authority_n from_o his_o prince_n to_o give_v order_n may_v by_o his_o ministry_n give_v to_o he_o of_o god_n in_o scripture_n ordain_v a_o priest_n and_o we_o read_v not_o that_o any_o other_o not_o be_v a_o b._n bishop_n have_v since_o the_o begin_n of_o christ_n church_n ordain_v a_o priest_n n._n b._n to_o quest._n 12_o only_a appointment_n be_v not_o sufficient_a but_o consecration_n that_o be_v to_o say_v imposition_n of_o hand_n with_o ãâã_d and_o prayer_n be_v also_o require_v for_o so_o the_o apostle_n use_v to_o order_n they_o that_o be_v appoint_v and_o so_o have_v be_v use_v continual_o and_o we_o have_v not_o read_v the_o contrary_n from_o the_o whole_a it_o appear_v that_o what_o ever_o be_v cranmer_n opinion_n yet_o other_o be_v of_o a_o contrary_a mind_n it_o can_v then_o be_v true_o affirm_v that_o cranmer_n be_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o far_o may_v be_v confirm_v by_o what_o dr._n leighton_n reply_v at_o the_o same_o time_n unto_o the_o query_n 1._o i_o suppose_v that_o a_o bishop_n have_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n power_n from_o god_n as_o be_v his_o minister_n to_o create_v the_o presbyter_n although_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o promote_v any_o one_o unto_o the_o office_n of_o a_o presbyter_n or_o admit_v he_o to_o any_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n unless_o the_o prince_n leave_v be_v first_o obtain_v in_o a_o christian_a commonwealth_n but_o that_o any_o other_o person_n have_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n power_n to_o create_v the_o presbyter_n i_o have_v not_o read_v nor_o learn_v from_o any_o instance_n 2._o i_o suppose_v consecration_n by_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n be_v necessary_a for_o so_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n thus_o much_o dr._n durel_n who_o read_v the_o whole_a ms._n by_o the_o permission_n of_o mr._n st._n report_v out_o of_o it_o 328._o in_o his_o vindiciae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la angli_fw-la the_o judgement_n then_o of_o cranmer_n set_v forth_o in_o that_o ms._n can_v with_o any_o truth_n be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n it_o be_v the_o opinion_n but_o of_o some_o person_n from_o which_o their_o contemporary_n we_o see_v differ_v much_o but_o 2._o the_o argument_n ground_v on_o the_o ms._n belong_v not_o to_o the_o time_n when_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v protestant_a so_o that_o the_o resolution_n of_o those_o query_n be_v rather_o of_o the_o popish_a church_n of_o england_n for_o the_o question_n be_v not_o put_v by_o edw._n vi_o as_o be_v at_o first_o surmise_a but_o by_o hen._n viii_o to_o make_v out_o which_o note_n 1._o the_o manuscript_n have_v no_o date_n nor_o any_o king_n name_v in_o it_o that_o call_v the_o assembly_n at_o windsor_n one_o may_v then_o ascribe_v it_o to_o the_o father_n henry_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o son_n edward_n 2._o cranmer_n submit_v himself_o and_o his_o sentence_n unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o king_n but_o edward_n vi._n be_v a_o child_n too_o young_a and_o unexperienced_a to_o ask_v these_o question_n or_o to_o have_v the_o final_a decision_n of_o they_o refer_v to_o he_o 3._o lee_n archbishop_n of_o york_n who_o subscribe_v the_o answer_n in_o the_o ms._n die_v in_o the_o year_n 1544._o anglicanae_n some_o year_n before_o edward_n be_v king_n by_o which_o argument_n dr._n durel_n say_v he_o convince_v mr._n still_o that_o the_o convention_n be_v hold_v at_o windsor_n in_o the_o reign_n of_o hen._n viii_o not_o of_o edward_n vi._n 4._o in_o mr._n strype_n memor_n the_o king_n make_v his_o animadversion_n upon_o the_o bishop_n answer_n which_o can_v be_v think_v the_o supra_fw-la work_n of_o edw._n vi_o a_o child_n but_o of_o hen._n viii_o 5._o the_o matter_n of_o the_o question_n and_o of_o the_o answer_n of_o cranmer_n sufficient_o prove_v that_o hen._n viii_o convened_a that_o assembly_n at_o windsor_n they_o both_o resemble_v the_o foresay_a king_n and_o bishop_n book_n and_o one_o animadversion_n of_o the_o king_n in_o mr._n stripe_n which_o be_v since_o they_o confess_v appoint_v bishop_n belong_v now_o to_o prince_n how_o can_v you_o prove_v that_o order_v be_v only_o commit_v unto_o you_o bishop_n bewray_v king_n henry_n aspire_v to_o be_v invest_v with_o all_o the_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n even_o of_o ordination_n itself_o of_o which_o see_v more_o in_o his_o memorial_n p._n 16_o 17._o append._n n._n 7._o it._n mem._n 141._o brief_o as_o in_o his_o elder_a brother_n life_n time_n he_o be_v breed_v up_o in_o learning_n that_o he_o may_v be_v alterius_fw-la orbis_n papa_n or_o
be_v no_o ordination_n but_o confer_v the_o extraordinary_a gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o philip_n can_v not_o do_v mr._n o._n forget_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o whole_a argument_n but_o answer_v it_o by_o half_n i_o urge_v that_o philip_n have_v the_o extraordinary_a and_o miraculous_a gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v usual_o confer_v by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n that_o though_o he_o have_v this_o gift_n yet_o he_o can_v not_o give_v it_o that_o therefore_o they_o who_o have_v a_o gift_n yet_o may_v not_o have_v power_n to_o confer_v that_o gift_n and_o by_o consequence_n that_o those_o person_n who_o be_v ordain_v to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o they_o can_v ordain_v which_o be_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v prove_v there_o be_v nothing_o that_o i_o perceive_v merit_v any_o reply_n until_o we_o come_v to_o that_o piece_n of_o discipline_n 1_o cor._n 5._o where_o we_o read_v of_o the_o incestuous_a corinthian_a excommunicate_v as_o i_o contend_v by_o the_o authority_n and_o command_n of_o st._n paul_n but_o mr._n o._n insinuate_v that_o the_o apostle_n reprove_v the_o corinthian_n 79._o for_o not_o excommunicate_v the_o sinner_n themselves_o 1_o cor._n 5._o 2._o ans._n this_o verse_n prove_v it_o not_o the_o expression_n be_v in_o the_o passive_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o the_o offender_n may_v be_v take_v away_o by_o who_o why_o not_o by_o the_o apostle_n he_o may_v as_o well_o be_v think_v to_o chide_v they_o for_o not_o inform_v he_o of_o the_o misdemeanour_n to_o the_o end_n the_o offender_n may_v be_v deliver_v unto_o satan_n by_o st._n paul_n himself_o the_o whole_a story_n as_o we_o shall_v show_v countenance_n this_o interpretation_n ay_o but_o say_v the_o minister_n the_o apostle_n enjoin_v the_o corinthian_n to_o avoid_v disorderly_a walker_n v_o 13._o ans._n but_o this_o be_v by_o the_o apostle_n express_v commandment_n still_o beside_o to_o put_v away_o from_o among_o themselves_o that_o wicked_a person_n be_v not_o to_o deliver_v he_o to_o satan_n or_o to_o expel_v he_o the_o church_n but_o not_o to_o eat_v with_o he_o v_o 11._o that_o be_v not_o to_o have_v any_o familiarity_n with_o he_o in_o civil_a conversation_n in_o this_o the_o apostle_n do_v indeed_o declare_v v_o 12._o that_o the_o corinthian_n have_v power_n to_o judge_n with_o who_o they_o may_v be_v familiar_a and_o with_o who_o not_o but_o it_o do_v not_o hence_o follow_v they_o have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v now_o that_o it_o be_v st._n paul_n who_o judge_v and_o decree_v and_o give_v thesentence_n of_o excommuncation_n against_o the_o offender_n will_v appear_v plain_o if_o we_o read_v the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o 3_o d_o verse_n with_o the_o 5_o the_o v_o for_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v a_o parenthesis_n thus_o then_o let_v we_o put_v they_o close_o together_o v_o 3._o for_o i_o very_o as_o absent_a in_o body_n but_o present_a in_o spirit_n have_v determine_v already_o then_o v._n 5._o to_o deliver_v such_o a_o one_o unto_o satan_n for_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d must_v be_v govern_v of_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o so_o the_o excommunication_n most_o certain_o proceed_v from_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v also_o worthy_a consideration_n that_o the_o corinthian_n do_v not_o receive_v again_o into_o their_o communion_n this_o excommunicate_v person_n until_o the_o apostle_n have_v absolve_v he_o and_o then_o beseech_v they_o to_o confirm_v their_o love_n towards_o he_o 2_o c._n 28._o 10._o in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o be_o accuse_v of_o alter_v and_o pervert_v the_o text._n ãâã_d heavy_a charge_n which_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v pass_v over_o light_o the_o accusation_n be_v that_o v_o 4._o i_o have_v put_v the_o word_n thus_o of_o my_o spirit_n whereas_o the_o translator_n leave_v out_o of_o render_v the_o place_n thus_o my_o spirit_n not_o of_o my_o spirit_n ans._n since_o the_o grammatical_a construction_n will_v bear_v it_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n of_o accuse_v i_o of_o pervert_v the_o text._n now_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d may_v be_v couple_v with_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v put_v absolute_a and_o into_o a_o parenthesis_n upon_o this_o supposition_n then_o thus_o the_o word_n may_v be_v lay_v in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o my_o spirit_n or_o of_o my_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n when_o you_o be_v gather_v together_o etc._n etc._n so_o that_o mr._n o._n can_v not_o have_v any_o just_a pretence_n for_o his_o accusation_n whatever_o become_v of_o my_o interpretation_n of_o the_o text._n this_o perhaps_o he_o may_v call_v into_o question_n and_o my_o purpose_n now_o be_v to_o vindicate_v it_o i_o can_v reconcile_v myself_o unto_o that_o opinion_n which_o couple_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d with_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d thus_o more_o plain_o in_o english_a when_o you_o and_o my_o spirit_n be_v gather_v together_o paul_n be_v now_o at_o ephesus_n both_o body_n and_o spirit_n i_o can_v form_v no_o idea_n of_o his_o spirit_n assemble_v with_o the_o corinthian_n at_o so_o great_a a_o distance_n true_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o he_o be_v present_a with_o they_o in_o spirit_n but_o correct_v himself_o immediate_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d as_o though_o i_o be_v present_a so_o that_o the_o sense_n be_v st._n paul_n be_v present_a with_o they_o in_o heart_n and_o affection_n study_v their_o welfare_n wish_v they_o well_o and_o pray_v that_o their_o soul_n may_v be_v save_v and_o their_o church_n edify_v in_o peace_n and_o purity_n or_o why_o not_o present_a among_o they_o by_o his_o authority_n as_o we_o say_v the_o king_n be_v every_o where_o present_a in_o his_o dominion_n by_o his_o influence_n and_o providence_n but_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o paul_n shall_v be_v gather_v or_o assemble_v with_o the_o corinthian_a congregation_n be_v a_o too_o harsh_a and_o improper_a expression_n at_o least_o in_o my_o fancy_n and_o opinion_n especial_o since_o so_o commodious_a and_o agreeable_a sense_n may_v be_v give_v of_o the_o word_n nor_o let_v any_o one_o suspect_v i_o to_o have_v advance_v this_o interpretation_n to_o serve_v a_o cause_n which_o stand_v in_o no_o need_n of_o it_o for_o if_o it_o shall_v still_o be_v think_v that_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v to_o be_v couple_v than_o the_o latter_a word_n must_v import_v the_o apostle_n authority_n as_o i_o former_o expound_v it_o and_o lest_o the_o apostle_n shall_v seem_v too_o assume_v in_o thus_o insist_v on_o his_o own_o '_o authority_n with_o great_a caution_n he_o add_v with_o the_o power_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v my_o authority_n but_o in_o conjunction_n with_o and_o subordination_n to_o the_o power_n of_o christ._n for_o so_o the_o apostle_n be_v wont_n ofttimes_o careful_o to_o prevent_v mistake_n leave_v he_o shall_v be_v think_v to_o haveusurpt_v his_o power_n thus_o he_o 2_o cor._n 10._o 8._o speak_v of_o his_o authority_n add_v which_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v we_o etc._n etc._n and_o chap._n 2._o 10._o which_o come_v near_o to_o our_o purpose_n when_o he_o have_v grant_v the_o absolution_n of_o the_o excommunicate_v person_n i_o forgive_v it_o say_v he_o in_o the_o person_n of_o christ._n upon_o the_o whole_a matter_n thus_o much_o at_o least_o may_v be_v say_v of_o this_o instance_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n that_o st._n paul_n direct_v and_o command_v it_o which_o be_v all_o i_o need_v to_o be_v concern_v for_o for_o than_o it_o can_v be_v no_o precedent_n for_o a_o college_n of_o presbyter_n much_o less_o for_o a_o particular_a minister_n of_o one_o single_a congregation_n to_o excommunicate_v which_o be_v the_o thing_n i_o intend_v to_o evince_v i_o proceed_v now_o to_o the_o story_n of_o ãâã_d '_o ordination_n brief_o relate_v 1_o tim._n 4._o 14._o 2_o tim._n 1._o 6._o of_o which_o in_o the_o first_o place_n i_o deliver_v this_o as_o my_o own_o settle_a opinion_n that_o timothy_n undergo_v two_o ordination_n the_o one_o for_o presbyter_n the_o other_o for_o ãâã_d or_o supreme_a ruler_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ãâã_d one_o of_o my_o reason_n for_o this_o be_v because_o paul_n himself_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o have_v be_v twice_o ordain_v once_o act._n 9_o 15_o ãâã_d 17._o and_o again_o chap._n 13._o the_o first_o unto_o the_o ordinary_a ministry_n of_o the_o word_n the_o second_o unto_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o gentile_n against_o this_o mr._n o._n argue_v 82._o 1._o that_o paul_n be_v more_o than_o a_o ordinary_a minister_n of_o the_o word_n gal._n 1._o 1._o meaning_n before_o he_o receive_v that_o imposition_n of_o hand_n act._n 13._o that_o be_v from_o the_o time_n of_o his_o conversion_n ans._n he_o may_v as_o well_o say_v that_o paul_n be_v a_o
and_o after_o also_o chap._n 16._o 25_o 17_o 15_o 18_o 5._o last_o that_o if_o nothing_o of_o this_o will_v be_v allow_v than_o it_o must_v be_v say_v that_o the_o presbyter_n by_o special_a revelation_n and_o prophecy_n appoint_v thereunto_o ordain_v timothy_n and_o i_o give_v mr._n o._n his_o choice_n of_o any_o of_o these_o exposition_n if_o he_o accept_v the_o last_o as_o most_o likely_a he_o will_v it_o be_v however_o no_o precedent_n or_o warrant_n for_o ordinary_a presbyter_n by_o virtue_n of_o their_o ordinary_a power_n and_o office_n to_o impose_v hand_n and_o confer_v order_n mr._n o._n in_o reply_n to_o this_o ãâã_d not_o offer_v one_o syllable_n but_o he_o have_v interpose_v some_o as_o he_o think_v witty_a descant_n upon_o the_o rector_n word_n and_o notion_n mere_o to_o evade_v the_o argument_n and_o to_o perplex_v it_o which_o i_o account_v not_o worth_a my_o particular_a notice_n but_o whereas_o he_o thus_o paraphrase_n on_o my_o word_n neglect_v not_o the_o gift_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o which_o be_v give_v by_o prophet_n with_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o prophet_n intimate_v it_o to_o be_v nonsense_n observe_v i_o once_o more_o and_o remember_v that_o the_o rector_n propose_v two_o way_n of_o interpret_n this_o passage_n in_o timothy_n first_o that_o by_o prophecy_n may_v be_v mean_v prophet_n in_o the_o concrete_a distinct_a from_o the_o presbyter_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o same_o period_n and_o then_o the_o sense_n must_v be_v neglect_v not_o the_o gift_n which_o be_v give_v thou_o by_o prophet_n direct_v and_o determine_v unto_o that_o action_n by_o some_o extraordinary_a and_o express_a command_n of_o god_n with_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presbyter_n as_o assistant_n in_o the_o solemnity_n either_o this_o be_v sense_n or_o i_o have_v none_o and_o be_v admit_v confirm_v my_o point_n that_o ordinary_a mere_a presbyter_n ordain_v not_o timothy_n by_o their_o ownsole_n power_n second_o or_o else_o the_o passage_n may_v thus_o be_v understand_v that_o prophecy_n be_v to_o be_v take_v in_o the_o abstract_n as_o it_o lie_v in_o the_o text_n and_o the_o presbyter_n be_v the_o person_n unto_o who_o the_o prophecy_n come_v appoint_v they_o to_o ordain_v timothy_n who_o therefore_o be_v prophet_n and_o not_o ordinary_a presbyter_n in_o that_o particular_a action_n on_o this_o supposition_n the_o word_n must_v run_v neglect_v not_o the_o gift_n which_o be_v give_v thou_o by_o prophecy_n with_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presbyter_n unto_o who_o the_o prophecy_n come_v and_o this_o aught_o to_o pass_v with_o mr._n o._n for_o sense_n if_o he_o be_v master_n of_o any_o and_o show_v that_o mere_a ordinary_a presbyter_n do_v not_o ordain_v timothy_n by_o virtue_n of_o their_o ordinary_a power_n but_o by_o special_a commission_n from_o god_n but_o mr._n o._n confound_v these_o two_o different_a interpretation_n put_v they_o together_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v consider_v separately_z contrary_a to_o all_o law_n of_o disputation_n and_o then_o pretend_v to_o have_v find_v out_o some_o absurdity_n or_o nonsense_n in_o the_o rector_n gloss._n moreover_o the_o gloss_n be_v not_o absurd_a even_o as_o mr._n o._n have_v lay_v it_o for_o suppose_v that_o by_o prophecy_n be_v mean_v prophet_n and_o that_o the_o presbyter_n be_v those_o prophet_n it_o be_v proper_a enough_o to_o say_v that_o timothy_n be_v ordain_v by_o prophet_n with_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o prophet_n the_o former_a clause_n donote_v who_o ordain_v he_o the_o latter_a by_o what_o ceremony_n or_o solemnity_n it_o be_v perform_v nor_o be_v it_o a_o degrade_n paul_n when_o we_o make_v he_o a_o prophet_n which_o be_v a_o order_n inferior_a to_o apostle_n as_o mr._n o._n weak_o enough_o argue_v it_o be_v 85._o not_o unusual_a to_o give_v person_n a_o inferior_a title_n st._n john_n and_o st._n peter_n 2._o be_v call_v presbyter_n saul_n and_o david_n prophet_n balaam_n a_o prince_n 1._o be_v a_o prophet_n so_o be_v daniel_n and_o so_o be_v caiaphas_n the_o highpriest_n 15._o and_o so_o be_v paul_n sometime_o who_o have_v vision_n and_o revelation_n i_o say_v ãâã_d for_o sometime_o also_o he_o speak_v and_o write_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o reasonable_a man_n only_o though_o at_o the_o same_o time_n with_o apostolical_a 25._o authority_n for_o the_o power_n of_o a_o apostle_n be_v permanent_a and_o ãâã_d his_o character_n indelible_a though_o that_o of_o a_o prophet_n be_v not_o so_o see_v concern_v this_o jerom_n comment_n on_o malachy_n and_o his_o prooem_n to_o comment_n on_o the_o epistle_n to_o philemon_n but_o mr._n o._n question_n whether_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o head_n of_o 89._o the_o presbytery_n in_o the_o church_n by_o they_o plant_v because_o then_o the_o church_n by_o they_o plant_v must_v have_v have_v two_o or_o more_o head_n ans._n if_o ever_o any_o man_n love_v to_o trifle_n and_o embroil_n matter_n with_o trivial_a and_o senseless_a difficulty_n the_o minister_n be_v he._n for_o what_o if_o ãâã_d be_v inferior_a to_o paul_n and_o as_o i_o may_v say_v a_o subaltern_n apostle_n then_o the_o objection_n be_v go_v and_o what_o if_o several_a person_n in_o equal_a power_n mav_v make_v up_o not_o head_n but_o one_o political_a head_n in_o a_o society_n then_o the_o wonder_n be_v over_o in_o dioclesian_n day_n there_o be_v several_a emperor_n socii_fw-la imperii_fw-la there_o be_v late_o two_o czar_n in_o moscovy_n and_o two_o prince_n in_o england_n it_o be_v indeed_o monstrous_a when_o a_o natural_a body_n have_v two_o or_o more_o head_n but_o that_o a_o political_a body_n or_o society_n shall_v be_v govern_v by_o two_o or_o more_o person_n joint_o in_o a_o parity_n nothing_o be_v more_o ordinary_a caesar_n indeed_o be_v of_o another_o mind_n and_o his_o maxim_n be_v imperium_fw-la non_fw-la capit_fw-la duos_fw-la but_o it_o be_v his_o pride_n and_o ambition_n which_o prompt_v he_o to_o say_v so_o for_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o his_o successor_n practise_v have_v abundant_o confute_v he_o but_o if_o mr._n o._n will_v not_o allow_v two_o or_o more_o governor_n of_o a_o body_n politic_a to_o be_v call_v the_o head_n of_o that_o society_n then_o be_v the_o presbyterian_a church_n and_o the_o independent_a congregation_n so_o many_o body_n without_o a_o head_n and_o i_o think_v a_o body_n without_o any_o head_n be_v altogether_o as_o monstrous_a as_o a_o body_n with_o two_o or_o more_o mr._n o._n add_v the_o presbyter_n at_o jerusalem_n have_v many_o apostle_n ibid._n to_o govern_v they_o beside_o prophet_n and_o evangelist_n unto_o who_o they_o be_v subject_a and_o not_o to_o any_o one_o in_o particular_a ans._n 1._o all_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n be_v instrumental_a in_o plant_v this_o church_n which_o therefore_o be_v subject_a to_o all_o for_o a_o good_a while_n as_o to_o one_o head_n second_o james_n afterward_o be_v make_v the_o ordinary_a resident_n church-governour_n as_o be_v very_o probable_a three_o the_o elder_n speak_v of_o act_v 15._o be_v not_o those_o of_o jerusalem_n only_o as_o i_o conceive_v but_o such_o also_o as_o come_v thither_o from_o other_o part_n judea_n syria_n etc._n etc._n and_o be_v member_n of_o the_o council_n and_o on_o that_o score_n not_o so_o much_o subject_a but_o assistant_n to_o the_o apostle_n ãâã_d the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n now_o assemble_v intermedle_v not_o in_o the_o government_n of_o this_o church_n at_o this_o time_n but_o meet_v here_o it_o may_v have_v be_v in_o any_o other_o place_n if_o they_o have_v so_o please_v to_o determine_v a_o question_n which_o concern_v all_o church_n wherein_o there_o be_v any_o jewish_a convert_v as_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o act_v 16._o 4._o but_o paul_n the_o apostle_n say_v the_o minister_n have_v power_n over_o 90._o all_o church_n why_o be_v he_o then_o make_v the_o governor_n of_o ephesus_n in_o particular_a though_o he_o plant_v it_o ans._n why_o not_o i_o require_v a_o reason_n it_o be_v his_o particular_a care_n for_o the_o reason_n assign_v a_o colonel_n have_v power_n over_o the_o whole_a regiment_n but_o '_o special_o over_v his_o own_o troop_n every_o apostle_n have_v a_o transcendent_a power_n over_o every_o presbytery_n grant_v it_o yet_o he_o be_v the_o ordinary_a governor_n of_o those_o church_n which_o he_o have_v form_v camerarius_fw-la comment_n upon_o the_o crit._n 2_o cor._n 10._o 15._o thus_o disignat_fw-la ãâã_d etc._n etc._n paul_n mean_v in_o this_o place_n that_o a_o district_n as_o it_o be_v a_o plat_v of_o ground_n be_v give_v he_o whereon_o he_o may_v build_v a_o church_n still_o the_o care_n of_o all_o the_o church_n lay_v upon_o the_o apostle_n as_o to_o right_a and_o power_n although_o for_o the_o better_a government_n of_o they_o they_o divide_v the_o ãâã_d as_o the_o ãâã_d of_o propagate_a the_o gospel_n require_v